This is a modern-English version of Jungle Tales of Tarzan, originally written by Burroughs, Edgar Rice.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
![[Illustration]](images/cover.jpg)
Jungle Tales of Tarzan
by Edgar Rice Burroughs
Contents
CHAPTER I
Tarzan’s First Love
Teeka, stretched at luxurious ease in the shade of the tropical forest, presented, unquestionably, a most alluring picture of young, feminine loveliness. Or at least so thought Tarzan of the Apes, who squatted upon a low-swinging branch in a near-by tree and looked down upon her.
Teeka lounged comfortably in the shade of the tropical forest, clearly striking a captivating image of youthful beauty. At least, that’s what Tarzan of the Apes thought as he sat on a low-hanging branch in a nearby tree, looking down at her.
Just to have seen him there, lolling upon the swaying bough of the jungle-forest giant, his brown skin mottled by the brilliant equatorial sunlight which percolated through the leafy canopy of green above him, his clean-limbed body relaxed in graceful ease, his shapely head partly turned in contemplative absorption and his intelligent, gray eyes dreamily devouring the object of their devotion, you would have thought him the reincarnation of some demigod of old.
Just seeing him there, lounging on the swaying branch of the jungle-forest giant, his brown skin patterned by the bright equatorial sunlight filtering through the leafy canopy above, his fit body relaxed in graceful ease, his handsome head partly turned in thoughtful absorption and his intelligent, gray eyes dreamily fixated on the object of their devotion, you would have believed he was the reincarnation of some ancient demigod.
You would not have guessed that in infancy he had suckled at the breast of a hideous, hairy she-ape, nor that in all his conscious past since his parents had passed away in the little cabin by the landlocked harbor at the jungle’s verge, he had known no other associates than the sullen bulls and the snarling cows of the tribe of Kerchak, the great ape.
You wouldn't have guessed that in his infancy he was nursed by a ugly, hairy female ape, or that throughout all his memories since his parents died in the small cabin by the secluded harbor at the edge of the jungle, he had had no other companions than the grumpy bulls and the growling cows of the Kerchak tribe, the great apes.
Nor, could you have read the thoughts which passed through that active, healthy brain, the longings and desires and aspirations which the sight of Teeka inspired, would you have been any more inclined to give credence to the reality of the origin of the ape-man. For, from his thoughts alone, you could never have gleaned the truth—that he had been born to a gentle English lady or that his sire had been an English nobleman of time-honored lineage.
Nor could you have read the thoughts racing through that lively, healthy brain, the longings, desires, and ambitions sparked by the sight of Teeka, you would not have been any more likely to believe in the reality of the ape-man's origin. Because, from his thoughts alone, you would never have figured out the truth—that he had been born to a gentle English lady or that his father had been an English nobleman from a respected lineage.
Lost to Tarzan of the Apes was the truth of his origin. That he was John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, with a seat in the House of Lords, he did not know, nor, knowing, would have understood.
Lost to Tarzan of the Apes was the truth of his origin. That he was John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, with a seat in the House of Lords, he did not know, nor, knowing, would have understood.
Yes, Teeka was indeed beautiful!
Yes, Teeka was really beautiful!
Of course Kala had been beautiful—one’s mother is always that—but Teeka was beautiful in a way all her own, an indescribable sort of way which Tarzan was just beginning to sense in a rather vague and hazy manner.
Of course, Kala had always been beautiful—mothers usually are—but Teeka had her own unique beauty, an indescribable quality that Tarzan was just starting to perceive in a somewhat vague and unclear way.
For years had Tarzan and Teeka been play-fellows, and Teeka still continued to be playful while the young bulls of her own age were rapidly becoming surly and morose. Tarzan, if he gave the matter much thought at all, probably reasoned that his growing attachment for the young female could be easily accounted for by the fact that of the former playmates she and he alone retained any desire to frolic as of old.
For years, Tarzan and Teeka had been playmates, and Teeka still enjoyed being playful while the young bulls her age were quickly becoming grumpy and moody. If Tarzan thought about it, he probably figured his growing affection for her was simply because, out of all his former playmates, she was the only one who still wanted to have fun like they used to.
But today, as he sat gazing upon her, he found himself noting the beauties of Teeka’s form and features—something he never had done before, since none of them had aught to do with Teeka’s ability to race nimbly through the lower terraces of the forest in the primitive games of tag and hide-and-go-seek which Tarzan’s fertile brain evolved.
But today, as he sat looking at her, he started to notice the beauty of Teeka's body and face—something he had never done before, since none of that had anything to do with Teeka’s skill in running swiftly through the lower levels of the forest in the basic games of tag and hide-and-seek that Tarzan's imaginative mind created.
Tarzan scratched his head, running his fingers deep into the shock of black hair which framed his shapely, boyish face—he scratched his head and sighed. Teeka’s new-found beauty became as suddenly his despair. He envied her the handsome coat of hair which covered her body. His own smooth, brown hide he hated with a hatred born of disgust and contempt. Years back he had harbored a hope that some day he, too, would be clothed in hair as were all his brothers and sisters; but of late he had been forced to abandon the delectable dream.
Tarzan scratched his head, running his fingers deep into the thick black hair framing his attractive, youthful face—he scratched his head and sighed. Teeka’s newfound beauty suddenly filled him with despair. He envied her the beautiful coat of fur covering her body. He hated his own smooth, brown skin with a disgust and contempt that had grown deep over time. Years ago, he had hoped that someday he, too, would be covered in fur like all his brothers and sisters; but lately, he had to give up that appealing dream.
Then there were Teeka’s great teeth, not so large as the males, of course, but still mighty, handsome things by comparison with Tarzan’s feeble white ones. And her beetling brows, and broad, flat nose, and her mouth! Tarzan had often practiced making his mouth into a little round circle and then puffing out his cheeks while he winked his eyes rapidly; but he felt that he could never do it in the same cute and irresistible way in which Teeka did it.
Then there were Teeka’s impressive teeth, not as big as the males', of course, but still powerful and good-looking compared to Tarzan’s weak white ones. And her prominent brows, broad flat nose, and her mouth! Tarzan had often practiced making his mouth into a little circle and then puffing out his cheeks while quickly winking his eyes; but he felt he could never do it in the same adorable and charming way that Teeka did.
And as he watched her that afternoon, and wondered, a young bull ape who had been lazily foraging for food beneath the damp, matted carpet of decaying vegetation at the roots of a near-by tree lumbered awkwardly in Teeka’s direction. The other apes of the tribe of Kerchak moved listlessly about or lolled restfully in the midday heat of the equatorial jungle. From time to time one or another of them had passed close to Teeka, and Tarzan had been uninterested. Why was it then that his brows contracted and his muscles tensed as he saw Taug pause beside the young she and then squat down close to her?
And as he watched her that afternoon, wondering, a young bull ape who had been lazily searching for food under the damp, tangled mess of decaying plants at the base of a nearby tree moved clumsily in Teeka’s direction. The other apes in Kerchak's tribe moved around aimlessly or rested in the midday heat of the tropical jungle. Occasionally, one or another would come close to Teeka, and Tarzan had shown no interest. So why did his brows furrow and his muscles tighten when he saw Taug stop next to the young female and then squat down close to her?
Tarzan always had liked Taug. Since childhood they had romped together. Side by side they had squatted near the water, their quick, strong fingers ready to leap forth and seize Pisah, the fish, should that wary denizen of the cool depths dart surfaceward to the lure of the insects Tarzan tossed upon the face of the pool.
Tarzan had always liked Taug. They had played together since childhood. Side by side, they would sit near the water, their quick, strong fingers ready to spring out and catch Pisah, the fish, if that cautious creature from the cool depths darted up to the surface, drawn by the insects Tarzan tossed onto the water.
Together they had baited Tublat and teased Numa, the lion. Why, then, should Tarzan feel the rise of the short hairs at the nape of his neck merely because Taug sat close to Teeka?
Together they had baited Tublat and teased Numa, the lion. So why should Tarzan feel the hair on the back of his neck stand up just because Taug was sitting close to Teeka?
It is true that Taug was no longer the frolicsome ape of yesterday. When his snarling-muscles bared his giant fangs no one could longer imagine that Taug was in as playful a mood as when he and Tarzan had rolled upon the turf in mimic battle. The Taug of today was a huge, sullen bull ape, somber and forbidding. Yet he and Tarzan never had quarreled.
It’s true that Taug was no longer the playful ape he used to be. When his snarling muscles revealed his massive fangs, no one could picture Taug in as playful a mood as when he and Tarzan had wrestled on the grass in pretend battles. The Taug of today was a huge, gloomy bull ape, serious and intimidating. Still, he and Tarzan had never fought.
For a few minutes the young ape-man watched Taug press closer to Teeka. He saw the rough caress of the huge paw as it stroked the sleek shoulder of the she, and then Tarzan of the Apes slipped catlike to the ground and approached the two.
For a few minutes, the young ape-man watched Taug get closer to Teeka. He saw the rough touch of the huge paw as it stroked her smooth shoulder, and then Tarzan of the Apes quietly dropped to the ground and moved towards the two.
As he came his upper lip curled into a snarl, exposing his fighting fangs, and a deep growl rumbled from his cavernous chest. Taug looked up, batting his blood-shot eyes. Teeka half raised herself and looked at Tarzan. Did she guess the cause of his perturbation? Who may say? At any rate, she was feminine, and so she reached up and scratched Taug behind one of his small, flat ears.
As he approached, his upper lip curled into a snarl, revealing his sharp teeth, and a deep growl rumbled from his chest. Taug looked up, blinking his bloodshot eyes. Teeka partially sat up and glanced at Tarzan. Could she understand what was troubling him? Who knows? In any case, being a woman, she reached up and scratched Taug behind one of his small, flat ears.
Tarzan saw, and in the instant that he saw, Teeka was no longer the little playmate of an hour ago; instead she was a wondrous thing—the most wondrous in the world—and a possession for which Tarzan would fight to the death against Taug or any other who dared question his right of proprietorship.
Tarzan saw, and in that moment, Teeka was no longer the little playmate from an hour ago; instead, she was an incredible being—the most incredible in the world—and a treasure that Tarzan would fight to the death for against Taug or anyone else who dared challenge his claim.
Stooped, his muscles rigid and one great shoulder turned toward the young bull, Tarzan of the Apes sidled nearer and nearer. His face was partly averted, but his keen gray eyes never left those of Taug, and as he came, his growls increased in depth and volume.
Stooped, his muscles tense and one broad shoulder angled toward the young bull, Tarzan of the Apes crept closer and closer. His face was slightly turned away, but his sharp gray eyes stayed locked on Taug's, and as he approached, his growls grew deeper and louder.
Taug rose upon his short legs, bristling. His fighting fangs were bared. He, too, sidled, stiff-legged, and growled.
Taug stood up on his short legs, bristling. His sharp teeth were exposed. He also moved sideways, legs stiff, and growled.
“Teeka is Tarzan’s,” said the ape-man, in the low gutturals of the great anthropoids.
“Teeka is Tarzan’s,” said the ape-man, in the low growls of the great anthropoids.
“Teeka is Taug’s,” replied the bull ape.
“Teeka is Taug’s,” replied the bull ape.
Thaka and Numgo and Gunto, disturbed by the growlings of the two young bulls, looked up half apathetic, half interested. They were sleepy, but they sensed a fight. It would break the monotony of the humdrum jungle life they led.
Thaka, Numgo, and Gunto, annoyed by the growling of the two young bulls, glanced up with a mix of boredom and curiosity. They were tired, but they could feel a fight brewing. It would interrupt the dull routine of their everyday lives in the jungle.
Coiled about his shoulders was Tarzan’s long grass rope, in his hand was the hunting knife of the long-dead father he had never known. In Taug’s little brain lay a great respect for the shiny bit of sharp metal which the ape-boy knew so well how to use. With it had he slain Tublat, his fierce foster father, and Bolgani, the gorilla. Taug knew these things, and so he came warily, circling about Tarzan in search of an opening. The latter, made cautious because of his lesser bulk and the inferiority of his natural armament, followed similar tactics.
Coiled around his shoulders was Tarzan's long grass rope, and in his hand was the hunting knife of his long-dead father whom he had never known. Taug’s small brain held a deep respect for the shiny, sharp piece of metal that the ape-boy knew how to use so well. With it, he had killed Tublat, his fierce foster father, and Bolgani, the gorilla. Taug understood this, and so he approached cautiously, circling around Tarzan in search of an opportunity. Tarzan, aware of his smaller size and his inferior natural weapons, used similar tactics.
For a time it seemed that the altercation would follow the way of the majority of such differences between members of the tribe and that one of them would finally lose interest and wander off to prosecute some other line of endeavor. Such might have been the end of it had the CASUS BELLI been other than it was; but Teeka was flattered at the attention that was being drawn to her and by the fact that these two young bulls were contemplating battle on her account. Such a thing never before had occurred in Teeka’s brief life. She had seen other bulls battling for other and older shes, and in the depth of her wild little heart she had longed for the day when the jungle grasses would be reddened with the blood of mortal combat for her fair sake.
For a while, it looked like the argument would end like most disagreements among the tribe, with one of them losing interest and wandering off to pursue something else. That might have been the case if the reason for the conflict had been different, but Teeka was flattered by the attention she was receiving and the fact that these two young bulls were ready to fight over her. That had never happened before in Teeka’s short life. She had watched other bulls fight for older females, and deep down in her wild little heart, she had wished for the day when the jungle grasses would be stained red with the blood of a fierce battle fought for her sake.
So now she squatted upon her haunches and insulted both her admirers impartially. She hurled taunts at them for their cowardice, and called them vile names, such as Histah, the snake, and Dango, the hyena. She threatened to call Mumga to chastise them with a stick—Mumga, who was so old that she could no longer climb and so toothless that she was forced to confine her diet almost exclusively to bananas and grubworms.
So now she squatted on her heels and insulted both her admirers equally. She threw taunts at them for being cowards and called them nasty names, like Histah, the snake, and Dango, the hyena. She threatened to call Mumga to punish them with a stick—Mumga, who was so old that she couldn't climb anymore and so toothless that she had to limit her diet almost entirely to bananas and grubworms.
The apes who were watching heard and laughed. Taug was infuriated. He made a sudden lunge for Tarzan, but the ape-boy leaped nimbly to one side, eluding him, and with the quickness of a cat wheeled and leaped back again to close quarters. His hunting knife was raised above his head as he came in, and he aimed a vicious blow at Taug’s neck. The ape wheeled to dodge the weapon so that the keen blade struck him but a glancing blow upon the shoulder.
The apes watching heard and laughed. Taug was furious. He suddenly lunged at Tarzan, but the ape-boy nimbly jumped to the side, dodging him. With the quickness of a cat, he turned and leaped back into close range. His hunting knife was raised above his head as he approached, and he aimed a vicious strike at Taug's neck. The ape turned to avoid the weapon, so the sharp blade only grazed his shoulder.
The spurt of red blood brought a shrill cry of delight from Teeka. Ah, but this was something worth while! She glanced about to see if others had witnessed this evidence of her popularity. Helen of Troy was never one whit more proud than was Teeka at that moment.
The burst of red blood made Teeka let out a sharp cry of joy. Wow, this was something special! She looked around to see if anyone else had seen this sign of her popularity. Helen of Troy was never any prouder than Teeka was at that moment.
If Teeka had not been so absorbed in her own vaingloriousness she might have noted the rustling of leaves in the tree above her—a rustling which was not caused by any movement of the wind, since there was no wind. And had she looked up she might have seen a sleek body crouching almost directly over her and wicked yellow eyes glaring hungrily down upon her, but Teeka did not look up.
If Teeka hadn’t been so caught up in her own arrogance, she might have noticed the rustling leaves in the tree above her—a rustling that wasn’t caused by the wind, since there was no wind. And if she had looked up, she might have seen a sleek body crouching almost directly above her, with wicked yellow eyes glaring hungrily down at her, but Teeka didn’t look up.
With his wound Taug had backed off growling horribly. Tarzan had followed him, screaming insults at him, and menacing him with his brandishing blade. Teeka moved from beneath the tree in an effort to keep close to the duelists.
With his injury, Taug had pulled back, growling fiercely. Tarzan had pursued him, shouting insults and threatening him with his raised blade. Teeka stepped out from under the tree to stay close to the fighters.
The branch above Teeka bent and swayed a trifle with the movement of the body of the watcher stretched along it. Taug had halted now and was preparing to make a new stand. His lips were flecked with foam, and saliva drooled from his jowls. He stood with head lowered and arms outstretched, preparing for a sudden charge to close quarters. Could he but lay his mighty hands upon that soft, brown skin the battle would be his. Taug considered Tarzan’s manner of fighting unfair. He would not close. Instead, he leaped nimbly just beyond the reach of Taug’s muscular fingers.
The branch above Teeka bent and swayed slightly with the movement of the watcher stretched along it. Taug had stopped and was getting ready to make a new move. His lips were laced with foam, and saliva dripped from his jowls. He stood with his head down and arms outstretched, preparing for a sudden charge to get in close. If he could just grab that soft, brown skin, the battle would be his. Taug thought Tarzan's fighting style was unfair. He wouldn't close in. Instead, he jumped nimbly just out of reach of Taug’s strong fingers.
The ape-boy had as yet never come to a real trial of strength with a bull ape, other than in play, and so he was not at all sure that it would be safe to put his muscles to the test in a life and death struggle. Not that he was afraid, for Tarzan knew nothing of fear. The instinct of self-preservation gave him caution—that was all. He took risks only when it seemed necessary, and then he would hesitate at nothing.
The ape-boy had never really tested his strength against a bull ape, except in play, so he wasn't sure it would be safe to push his muscles in a serious life-and-death fight. Not that he was scared, because Tarzan didn't know fear. His instinct for self-preservation made him cautious—that was it. He only took risks when he felt it was necessary, and then he held back from nothing.
His own method of fighting seemed best fitted to his build and to his armament. His teeth, while strong and sharp, were, as weapons of offense, pitifully inadequate by comparison with the mighty fighting fangs of the anthropoids. By dancing about, just out of reach of an antagonist, Tarzan could do infinite injury with his long, sharp hunting knife, and at the same time escape many of the painful and dangerous wounds which would be sure to follow his falling into the clutches of a bull ape.
His fighting style seemed perfectly suited to his physique and weapons. His teeth, though strong and sharp, were sadly lacking as offensive weapons compared to the powerful fangs of the anthropoids. By keeping just out of reach of his opponent, Tarzan could inflict serious damage with his long, sharp hunting knife while avoiding many of the painful and dangerous injuries that would come if he fell into the grasp of a bull ape.
And so Taug charged and bellowed like a bull, and Tarzan of the Apes danced lightly to this side and that, hurling jungle billingsgate at his foe, the while he nicked him now and again with his knife.
And so Taug charged and roared like a bull, while Tarzan of the Apes stepped nimbly to the side and back, throwing insults at his opponent, all the while landing a few quick cuts with his knife.
There were lulls in the fighting when the two would stand panting for breath, facing each other, mustering their wits and their forces for a new onslaught. It was during a pause such as this that Taug chanced to let his eyes rove beyond his foeman. Instantly the entire aspect of the ape altered. Rage left his countenance to be supplanted by an expression of fear.
There were breaks in the fighting when the two stood there, panting for breath, facing each other, gathering their wits and strength for a new attack. It was during one of these pauses that Taug accidentally let his eyes drift beyond his opponent. In an instant, the whole demeanor of the ape changed. Anger faded from his face, replaced by an expression of fear.
With a cry that every ape there recognized, Taug turned and fled. No need to question him—his warning proclaimed the near presence of their ancient enemy.
With a cry that every ape there understood, Taug turned and ran. No need to ask him—his warning signaled the close presence of their age-old enemy.
Tarzan started to seek safety, as did the other members of the tribe, and as he did so he heard a panther’s scream mingled with the frightened cry of a she-ape. Taug heard, too; but he did not pause in his flight.
Tarzan began to look for safety, just like the others in the tribe, and while doing so, he heard a panther's scream mixed with the scared cry of a female ape. Taug heard it too, but he didn’t stop running.
With the ape-boy, however, it was different. He looked back to see if any member of the tribe was close pressed by the beast of prey, and the sight that met his eyes filled them with an expression of horror.
With the ape-boy, though, it was different. He glanced back to check if any tribe member was in danger from the predator, and the sight that met his eyes filled them with a look of horror.
Teeka it was who cried out in terror as she fled across a little clearing toward the trees upon the opposite side, for after her leaped Sheeta, the panther, in easy, graceful bounds. Sheeta appeared to be in no hurry. His meat was assured, since even though the ape reached the trees ahead of him she could not climb beyond his clutches before he could be upon her.
Teeka was the one who screamed in fear as she ran across a small clearing toward the trees on the other side, with Sheeta, the panther, leaping after her gracefully and effortlessly. Sheeta didn’t seem rushed. He was certain of his meal, since even though the ape got to the trees before him, she wouldn't be able to climb high enough to escape his reach before he caught up to her.
Tarzan saw that Teeka must die. He cried to Taug and the other bulls to hasten to Teeka’s assistance, and at the same time he ran toward the pursuing beast, taking down his rope as he came. Tarzan knew that once the great bulls were aroused none of the jungle, not even Numa, the lion, was anxious to measure fangs with them, and that if all those of the tribe who chanced to be present today would charge, Sheeta, the great cat, would doubtless turn tail and run for his life.
Tarzan realized that Teeka was in grave danger. He shouted to Taug and the other bulls to hurry and help Teeka while he raced toward the attacking beast, pulling out his rope as he ran. Tarzan understood that once the powerful bulls were stirred up, no creature in the jungle, not even Numa the lion, would want to confront them, and that if all the tribe members who were there today charged, Sheeta the big cat would likely flee for his life.
Taug heard, as did the others, but no one came to Tarzan’s assistance or Teeka’s rescue, and Sheeta was rapidly closing up the distance between himself and his prey.
Taug heard, just like the others, but no one came to help Tarzan or save Teeka, and Sheeta was quickly getting closer to his prey.
The ape-boy, leaping after the panther, cried aloud to the beast in an effort to turn it from Teeka or otherwise distract its attention until the she-ape could gain the safety of the higher branches where Sheeta dare not go. He called the panther every opprobrious name that fell to his tongue. He dared him to stop and do battle with him; but Sheeta only loped on after the luscious titbit now almost within his reach.
The ape-boy, jumping after the panther, shouted at the animal in an attempt to divert it from Teeka or distract it long enough for the she-ape to reach the safety of the higher branches where Sheeta wouldn’t follow. He yelled every insult he could think of at the panther. He challenged it to stop and fight him, but Sheeta just kept moving towards the tasty treat that was nearly within his grasp.
Tarzan was not far behind and he was gaining, but the distance was so short that he scarce hoped to overhaul the carnivore before it had felled Teeka. In his right hand the boy swung his grass rope above his head as he ran. He hated to chance a miss, for the distance was much greater than he ever had cast before except in practice. It was the full length of his grass rope which separated him from Sheeta, and yet there was no other thing to do. He could not reach the brute’s side before it overhauled Teeka. He must chance a throw.
Tarzan was close behind and gaining ground, but the distance was so short that he hardly hoped to catch up to the predator before it took down Teeka. In his right hand, the boy swung his grass rope above his head as he ran. He dreaded missing, as this distance was much greater than he had ever thrown before, except in practice. The full length of his grass rope separated him from Sheeta, and yet there was nothing else he could do. He couldn’t reach the beast's side before it got to Teeka. He had to take a shot.
And just as Teeka sprang for the lower limb of a great tree, and Sheeta rose behind her in a long, sinuous leap, the coils of the ape-boy’s grass rope shot swiftly through the air, straightening into a long thin line as the open noose hovered for an instant above the savage head and the snarling jaws. Then it settled—clean and true about the tawny neck it settled, and Tarzan, with a quick twist of his rope-hand, drew the noose taut, bracing himself for the shock when Sheeta should have taken up the slack.
And just as Teeka jumped for the lower branch of a huge tree, and Sheeta leaped up behind her in a long, flowing motion, the coils of the ape-boy’s grass rope flew swiftly through the air, straightening into a long, thin line as the open noose hovered for a moment above the fierce head and snarling jaws. Then it settled—neatly and perfectly around the tawny neck, and Tarzan, with a quick twist of his rope hand, pulled the noose tight, bracing himself for the jolt when Sheeta took up the slack.
Just short of Teeka’s glossy rump the cruel talons raked the air as the rope tightened and Sheeta was brought to a sudden stop—a stop that snapped the big beast over upon his back. Instantly Sheeta was up—with glaring eyes, and lashing tail, and gaping jaws, from which issued hideous cries of rage and disappointment.
Just before Teeka’s shiny backside, the vicious claws sliced through the air as the rope tightened, yanking Sheeta to an abrupt halt—a stop that flipped the large creature onto its back. In an instant, Sheeta was back up—eyes blazing, tail whipping, and jaws wide open, emitting horrifying screams of anger and frustration.
He saw the ape-boy, the cause of his discomfiture, scarce forty feet before him, and Sheeta charged.
He saw the ape-boy, the source of his discomfort, barely forty feet ahead of him, and Sheeta charged.
Teeka was safe now; Tarzan saw to that by a quick glance into the tree whose safety she had gained not an instant too soon, and Sheeta was charging. It were useless to risk his life in idle and unequal combat from which no good could come; but could he escape a battle with the enraged cat? And if he was forced to fight, what chance had he to survive? Tarzan was constrained to admit that his position was aught but a desirable one. The trees were too far to hope to reach in time to elude the cat. Tarzan could but stand facing that hideous charge. In his right hand he grasped his hunting knife—a puny, futile thing indeed by comparison with the great rows of mighty teeth which lined Sheeta’s powerful jaws, and the sharp talons encased within his padded paws; yet the young Lord Greystoke faced it with the same courageous resignation with which some fearless ancestor went down to defeat and death on Senlac Hill by Hastings.
Teeka was safe now; Tarzan made sure of that with a quick glance at the tree she had just reached, not a moment too soon, as Sheeta was charging at her. It was pointless to risk his life in a pointless and uneven fight that would lead to no good; but could he avoid a battle with the furious cat? And if he had to fight, what chance did he have of surviving? Tarzan had to admit that his situation was far from ideal. The trees were too far away to hope to reach in time to escape the cat. He could only stand there facing that terrifying charge. In his right hand, he gripped his hunting knife—a small, useless thing compared to the rows of sharp teeth in Sheeta’s powerful jaws and the lethal claws hidden in his padded paws; yet the young Lord Greystoke faced it with the same brave acceptance that some fearless ancestor had shown going down to defeat and death on Senlac Hill at Hastings.
From safety points in the trees the great apes watched, screaming hatred at Sheeta and advice at Tarzan, for the progenitors of man have, naturally, many human traits. Teeka was frightened. She screamed at the bulls to hasten to Tarzan’s assistance; but the bulls were otherwise engaged—principally in giving advice and making faces. Anyway, Tarzan was not a real Mangani, so why should they risk their lives in an effort to protect him?
From their safe spots in the trees, the great apes watched, shouting insults at Sheeta and yelling advice at Tarzan, since the ancestors of humans, naturally, have many human traits. Teeka was scared. She screamed at the bulls to hurry and help Tarzan; but the bulls were busy doing something else—mainly giving advice and pulling faces. Besides, Tarzan wasn't a true Mangani, so why should they put their lives on the line to protect him?
And now Sheeta was almost upon the lithe, naked body, and—the body was not there. Quick as was the great cat, the ape-boy was quicker. He leaped to one side almost as the panther’s talons were closing upon him, and as Sheeta went hurtling to the ground beyond, Tarzan was racing for the safety of the nearest tree.
And now Sheeta was almost upon the agile, naked body, and—the body was gone. As fast as the big cat was, the ape-boy was faster. He jumped to the side just as the panther's claws were about to catch him, and while Sheeta went crashing to the ground beyond, Tarzan was sprinting toward the safety of the nearest tree.
The panther recovered himself almost immediately and, wheeling, tore after his prey, the ape-boy’s rope dragging along the ground behind him. In doubling back after Tarzan, Sheeta had passed around a low bush. It was a mere nothing in the path of any jungle creature of the size and weight of Sheeta—provided it had no trailing rope dangling behind. But Sheeta was handicapped by such a rope, and as he leaped once again after Tarzan of the Apes the rope encircled the small bush, became tangled in it and brought the panther to a sudden stop. An instant later Tarzan was safe among the higher branches of a small tree into which Sheeta could not follow him.
The panther quickly regained his balance and, turning around, chased after his prey, with the ape-boy's rope dragging behind him. As Sheeta doubled back to pursue Tarzan, he maneuvered around a small bush. It was nothing for any jungle animal of Sheeta's size and weight—unless it had a trailing rope hanging behind. But Sheeta was slowed down by the rope, and as he jumped after Tarzan again, the rope wrapped around the little bush, got tangled, and brought the panther to a sudden stop. A moment later, Tarzan was safe up in the higher branches of a small tree that Sheeta couldn't climb after him.
Here he perched, hurling twigs and epithets at the raging feline beneath him. The other members of the tribe now took up the bombardment, using such hard-shelled fruits and dead branches as came within their reach, until Sheeta, goaded to frenzy and snapping at the grass rope, finally succeeded in severing its strands. For a moment the panther stood glaring first at one of his tormentors and then at another, until, with a final scream of rage, he turned and slunk off into the tangled mazes of the jungle.
Here he sat, throwing sticks and insults at the angry cat below him. The other tribe members joined in, pelting it with the hardest fruits and dead branches they could find, until Sheeta, pushed to the edge and snapping at the grass rope, finally managed to break it. For a moment, the panther glared at one tormentor and then another, until, with a final scream of anger, he turned and disappeared into the dense jungle.
A half hour later the tribe was again upon the ground, feeding as though naught had occurred to interrupt the somber dullness of their lives. Tarzan had recovered the greater part of his rope and was busy fashioning a new noose, while Teeka squatted close beside him, in evident token that her choice was made.
A half hour later, the tribe was back on the ground, eating as if nothing had happened to break the monotony of their lives. Tarzan had retrieved most of his rope and was busy making a new noose, while Teeka sat close beside him, clearly showing that she had made her choice.
Taug eyed them sullenly. Once when he came close, Teeka bared her fangs and growled at him, and Tarzan showed his canines in an ugly snarl; but Taug did not provoke a quarrel. He seemed to accept after the manner of his kind the decision of the she as an indication that he had been vanquished in his battle for her favors.
Taug watched them gloomily. Once when he got close, Teeka bared her teeth and growled at him, and Tarzan showed his teeth in a nasty snarl; but Taug didn’t start a fight. He seemed to take the she’s decision as a sign that he had lost in his quest for her affection, just like his kind would.
Later in the day, his rope repaired, Tarzan took to the trees in search of game. More than his fellows he required meat, and so, while they were satisfied with fruits and herbs and beetles, which could be discovered without much effort upon their part, Tarzan spent considerable time hunting the game animals whose flesh alone satisfied the cravings of his stomach and furnished sustenance and strength to the mighty thews which, day by day, were building beneath the soft, smooth texture of his brown hide.
Later in the day, after fixing his rope, Tarzan climbed into the trees looking for food. He needed meat more than his peers did, so while they were content with fruits, herbs, and beetles that were easy to find, Tarzan spent a lot of time hunting the game animals whose flesh alone satisfied his hunger and provided the nourishment and strength to the powerful muscles that were developing beneath the smooth, soft skin of his brown body.
Taug saw him depart, and then, quite casually, the big beast hunted closer and closer to Teeka in his search for food. At last he was within a few feet of her, and when he shot a covert glance at her he saw that she was appraising him and that there was no evidence of anger upon her face.
Taug watched him leave, and then, rather casually, the large creature moved in closer to Teeka as it looked for food. Finally, it was just a few feet away from her, and when it glanced at her, it noticed she was looking him over and that there was no sign of anger on her face.
Taug expanded his great chest and rolled about on his short legs, making strange growlings in his throat. He raised his lips, baring his fangs. My, but what great, beautiful fangs he had! Teeka could not but notice them. She also let her eyes rest in admiration upon Taug’s beetling brows and his short, powerful neck. What a beautiful creature he was indeed!
Taug puffed out his chest and moved around on his short legs, making odd growling sounds. He curled his lips back, showing off his sharp teeth. Wow, he had some impressive, beautiful teeth! Teeka couldn’t help but admire them. She also admired Taug’s pronounced brows and his strong, thick neck. He was truly a magnificent creature!
Taug, flattered by the unconcealed admiration in her eyes, strutted about, as proud and as vain as a peacock. Presently he began to inventory his assets, mentally, and shortly he found himself comparing them with those of his rival.
Taug, flattered by the obvious admiration in her eyes, walked around, as proud and vain as a peacock. Soon, he started to mentally assess his advantages, and before long, he found himself comparing them to those of his rival.
Taug grunted, for there was no comparison. How could one compare his beautiful coat with the smooth and naked hideousness of Tarzan’s bare hide? Who could see beauty in the stingy nose of the Tarmangani after looking at Taug’s broad nostrils? And Tarzan’s eyes! Hideous things, showing white about them, and entirely unrimmed with red. Taug knew that his own blood-shot eyes were beautiful, for he had seen them reflected in the glassy surface of many a drinking pool.
Taug grunted, as there was no comparison. How could anyone compare his beautiful coat to the smooth and ugly bare skin of Tarzan? Who could see beauty in the narrow nose of the Tarmangani after looking at Taug’s wide nostrils? And Tarzan’s eyes! They were ugly, showing too much white, and completely lacking the red rim. Taug knew that his own bloodshot eyes were beautiful, as he had seen them reflected in the clear surface of many a watering hole.
The bull drew nearer to Teeka, finally squatting close against her. When Tarzan returned from his hunting a short time later it was to see Teeka contentedly scratching the back of his rival.
The bull moved closer to Teeka, eventually settling in right next to her. When Tarzan came back from his hunt a little while later, he found Teeka happily scratching the back of his rival.
Tarzan was disgusted. Neither Taug nor Teeka saw him as he swung through the trees into the glade. He paused a moment, looking at them; then, with a sorrowful grimace, he turned and faded away into the labyrinth of leafy boughs and festooned moss out of which he had come.
Tarzan felt sickened. Neither Taug nor Teeka noticed him as he swung through the trees into the clearing. He stopped for a moment, watching them; then, with a sad expression, he turned and disappeared into the maze of leafy branches and hanging moss from which he had come.
Tarzan wished to be as far away from the cause of his heartache as he could. He was suffering the first pangs of blighted love, and he didn’t quite know what was the matter with him. He thought that he was angry with Taug, and so he couldn’t understand why it was that he had run away instead of rushing into mortal combat with the destroyer of his happiness.
Tarzan wanted to be as far away from the source of his heartache as possible. He was experiencing the first waves of unrequited love, and he wasn’t sure what was wrong with him. He thought he was angry with Taug, so he couldn’t understand why he had fled instead of confronting the one who had shattered his happiness.
He also thought that he was angry with Teeka, yet a vision of her many beauties persisted in haunting him, so that he could only see her in the light of love as the most desirable thing in the world.
He also believed he was angry with Teeka, yet a vision of her many beauties kept haunting him, making it so he could only see her in a loving way as the most desirable thing in the world.
The ape-boy craved affection. From babyhood until the time of her death, when the poisoned arrow of Kulonga had pierced her savage heart, Kala had represented to the English boy the sole object of love which he had known.
The ape-boy longed for love. From his infancy until her death, when Kulonga's poisoned arrow struck her fierce heart, Kala had been the only source of love he had ever known.
In her wild, fierce way Kala had loved her adopted son, and Tarzan had returned that love, though the outward demonstrations of it were no greater than might have been expected from any other beast of the jungle. It was not until he was bereft of her that the boy realized how deep had been his attachment for his mother, for as such he looked upon her.
In her wild, fierce way, Kala loved her adopted son, and Tarzan returned that love, even though his outward expressions were no more than what could be expected from any other jungle animal. It wasn’t until he lost her that he understood how deep his attachment to her really was, as he considered her his mother.
In Teeka he had seen within the past few hours a substitute for Kala—someone to fight for and to hunt for—someone to caress; but now his dream was shattered. Something hurt within his breast. He placed his hand over his heart and wondered what had happened to him. Vaguely he attributed his pain to Teeka. The more he thought of Teeka as he had last seen her, caressing Taug, the more the thing within his breast hurt him.
In Teeka, he had found, just a few hours ago, a substitute for Kala—someone to fight for and hunt for—someone to hold close; but now his dream was broken. He felt a pain in his chest. He put his hand over his heart and wondered what had happened to him. He vaguely blamed his discomfort on Teeka. The more he thought about the last time he saw Teeka, gently touching Taug, the more that pain in his chest intensified.
Tarzan shook his head and growled; then on and on through the jungle he swung, and the farther he traveled and the more he thought upon his wrongs, the nearer he approached becoming an irreclaimable misogynist.
Tarzan shook his head and growled; then he swung on through the jungle, and the further he traveled and the more he reflected on his grievances, the closer he came to becoming an unredeemable misogynist.
Two days later he was still hunting alone—very morose and very unhappy; but he was determined never to return to the tribe. He could not bear the thought of seeing Taug and Teeka always together. As he swung upon a great limb Numa, the lion, and Sabor, the lioness, passed beneath him, side by side, and Sabor leaned against the lion and bit playfully at his cheek. It was a half caress. Tarzan sighed and hurled a nut at them.
Two days later, he was still hunting alone—very gloomy and very unhappy; but he was set on never going back to the tribe. He couldn’t stand the thought of seeing Taug and Teeka always together. As he swung onto a large branch, Numa, the lion, and Sabor, the lioness, walked underneath him, side by side, and Sabor leaned against the lion and playfully nibbled at his cheek. It was a half caress. Tarzan sighed and threw a nut at them.
Later he came upon several of Mbonga’s black warriors. He was upon the point of dropping his noose about the neck of one of them, who was a little distance from his companions, when he became interested in the thing which occupied the savages. They were building a cage in the trail and covering it with leafy branches. When they had completed their work the structure was scarcely visible.
Later, he encountered several of Mbonga’s black warriors. He was just about to throw his noose around the neck of one of them, who was a short distance away from his companions, when he became intrigued by what the savages were doing. They were constructing a cage in the path and camouflaging it with leafy branches. Once they finished their work, the structure was barely noticeable.
Tarzan wondered what the purpose of the thing might be, and why, when they had built it, they turned away and started back along the trail in the direction of their village.
Tarzan wondered what the purpose of it was, and why, after they had built it, they turned away and started back along the path toward their village.
It had been some time since Tarzan had visited the blacks and looked down from the shelter of the great trees which overhung their palisade upon the activities of his enemies, from among whom had come the slayer of Kala.
It had been a while since Tarzan had visited the villagers and watched from the cover of the tall trees that shaded their palisade, observing the activities of his enemies, including the one who had killed Kala.
Although he hated them, Tarzan derived considerable entertainment in watching them at their daily life within the village, and especially at their dances, when the fires glared against their naked bodies as they leaped and turned and twisted in mimic warfare. It was rather in the hope of witnessing something of the kind that he now followed the warriors back toward their village, but in this he was disappointed, for there was no dance that night.
Although he hated them, Tarzan found a lot of entertainment in watching their daily life in the village, especially their dances, when the fires illuminated their bare bodies as they jumped, twisted, and turned in mock battles. It was mostly because he hoped to see something like that again that he followed the warriors back to their village, but he was disappointed this time because there was no dance that night.
Instead, from the safe concealment of his tree, Tarzan saw little groups seated about tiny fires discussing the events of the day, and in the darker corners of the village he descried isolated couples talking and laughing together, and always one of each couple was a young man and the other a young woman.
Instead, from the safe hideout in his tree, Tarzan observed small groups gathered around little fires chatting about the day’s events. In the shadowy corners of the village, he noticed couples talking and laughing together, and in each couple, one was a young man and the other a young woman.
Tarzan cocked his head upon one side and thought, and before he went to sleep that night, curled in the crotch of the great tree above the village, Teeka filled his mind, and afterward she filled his dreams—she and the young black men laughing and talking with the young black women.
Tarzan tilted his head to one side and thought, and before he fell asleep that night, curled in the fork of the enormous tree above the village, Teeka filled his mind, and later she filled his dreams—along with the young black men laughing and chatting with the young black women.
Taug, hunting alone, had wandered some distance from the balance of the tribe. He was making his way slowly along an elephant path when he discovered that it was blocked with undergrowth. Now Taug, come into maturity, was an evil-natured brute of an exceeding short temper. When something thwarted him, his sole idea was to overcome it by brute strength and ferocity, and so now when he found his way blocked, he tore angrily into the leafy screen and an instant later found himself within a strange lair, his progress effectually blocked, notwithstanding his most violent efforts to forge ahead.
Taug, hunting alone, had strayed far from the rest of the tribe. He was slowly moving along an elephant trail when he realized it was blocked by thick underbrush. Now mature, Taug was a vicious brute with a very short temper. When something got in his way, his only thought was to force his way through with sheer strength and aggression. So when he found his path blocked, he angrily tore into the leafy barrier and, moments later, found himself inside a strange den, unable to move forward despite his most furious attempts.
Biting and striking at the barrier, Taug finally worked himself into a frightful rage, but all to no avail; and at last he became convinced that he must turn back. But when he would have done so, what was his chagrin to discover that another barrier had dropped behind him while he fought to break down the one before him! Taug was trapped. Until exhaustion overcame him he fought frantically for his freedom; but all for naught.
Biting and hitting the barrier, Taug finally worked himself into a furious rage, but it was all pointless; and in the end, he realized he had to turn back. But when he tried to do that, to his dismay, he found that another barrier had closed behind him while he struggled to break through the one in front! Taug was trapped. He fought desperately for his freedom until exhaustion took over, but it was all in vain.
In the morning a party of blacks set out from the village of Mbonga in the direction of the trap they had constructed the previous day, while among the branches of the trees above them hovered a naked young giant filled with the curiosity of the wild things. Manu, the monkey, chattered and scolded as Tarzan passed, and though he was not afraid of the familiar figure of the ape-boy, he hugged closer to him the little brown body of his life’s companion. Tarzan laughed as he saw it; but the laugh was followed by a sudden clouding of his face and a deep sigh.
In the morning, a group of Black villagers left Mbonga, heading toward the trap they had built the day before, while above them, a naked young giant hovered among the tree branches, filled with the curiosity of the wild. Manu, the monkey, chattered and scolded as Tarzan walked by, and although he wasn’t scared of the familiar figure of the ape-boy, he held his little brown companion tighter. Tarzan chuckled when he saw it, but the laughter was quickly replaced by a sudden frown and a deep sigh.
A little farther on, a gaily feathered bird strutted about before the admiring eyes of his somber-hued mate. It seemed to Tarzan that everything in the jungle was combining to remind him that he had lost Teeka; yet every day of his life he had seen these same things and thought nothing of them.
A little further along, a brightly colored bird showed off in front of his dark-colored mate. It seemed to Tarzan that everything in the jungle was reminding him that he had lost Teeka; yet every day of his life he had seen these same things and thought nothing of them.
When the blacks reached the trap, Taug set up a great commotion. Seizing the bars of his prison, he shook them frantically, and all the while he roared and growled terrifically. The blacks were elated, for while they had not built their trap for this hairy tree man, they were delighted with their catch.
When the Black people reached the trap, Taug made a huge scene. Grabbing the bars of his prison, he shook them wildly, and all the while he roared and growled loudly. The Black people were thrilled, because even though they hadn't built their trap for this furry tree man, they were pleased with their catch.
Tarzan pricked up his ears when he heard the voice of a great ape and, circling quickly until he was down wind from the trap, he sniffed at the air in search of the scent spoor of the prisoner. Nor was it long before there came to those delicate nostrils the familiar odor that told Tarzan the identity of the captive as unerringly as though he had looked upon Taug with his eyes. Yes, it was Taug, and he was alone.
Tarzan perked up when he heard the voice of a huge ape and quickly circled around until he was downwind from the trap. He sniffed the air, searching for the scent of the prisoner. It didn't take long for the familiar smell to reach his sensitive nose, revealing the identity of the captive as clearly as if he had seen Taug with his own eyes. Yes, it was Taug, and he was alone.
Tarzan grinned as he approached to discover what the blacks would do to their prisoner. Doubtless they would slay him at once. Again Tarzan grinned. Now he could have Teeka for his own, with none to dispute his right to her. As he watched, he saw the black warriors strip the screen from about the cage, fasten ropes to it and drag it away along the trail in the direction of their village.
Tarzan grinned as he got closer to see what the locals would do to their prisoner. They would surely kill him right away. Tarzan smiled again. Now he could have Teeka for himself, with no one to challenge his claim to her. As he watched, he saw the warriors remove the cover from the cage, tie ropes to it, and drag it along the path toward their village.
Tarzan watched until his rival passed out of sight, still beating upon the bars of his prison and growling out his anger and his threats. Then the ape-boy turned and swung rapidly off in search of the tribe, and Teeka.
Tarzan watched until his rival disappeared from view, still banging on the bars of his cage and growling in anger and making threats. Then, the ape-boy turned and quickly headed off to find the tribe and Teeka.
Once, upon the journey, he surprised Sheeta and his family in a little overgrown clearing. The great cat lay stretched upon the ground, while his mate, one paw across her lord’s savage face, licked at the soft white fur at his throat.
Once, during the journey, he caught Sheeta and his family by surprise in a small, overgrown clearing. The big cat was sprawled on the ground, while his mate, one paw resting on her partner’s fierce face, groomed the soft white fur on his throat.
Tarzan increased his speed then until he fairly flew through the forest, nor was it long before he came upon the tribe. He saw them before they saw him, for of all the jungle creatures, none passed more quietly than Tarzan of the Apes. He saw Kamma and her mate feeding side by side, their hairy bodies rubbing against each other. And he saw Teeka feeding by herself. Not for long would she feed thus in loneliness, thought Tarzan, as with a bound he landed amongst them.
Tarzan picked up his speed until he was almost flying through the forest, and it didn’t take long before he found the tribe. He spotted them before they noticed him, because among all the jungle creatures, none moved more silently than Tarzan of the Apes. He saw Kamma and her mate eating side by side, their furry bodies brushing against each other. And he noticed Teeka feeding alone. Tarzan thought that she wouldn’t be alone for long, and with a leap, he landed among them.
There was a startled rush and a chorus of angry and frightened snarls, for Tarzan had surprised them; but there was more, too, than mere nervous shock to account for the bristling neck hair which remained standing long after the apes had discovered the identity of the newcomer.
There was a sudden rush and a mix of angry and scared growls because Tarzan had caught them off guard; but there was more than just a nervous shock to explain the raised hair on their necks, which stayed that way long after the apes figured out who the newcomer was.
Tarzan noticed this as he had noticed it many times in the past—that always his sudden coming among them left them nervous and unstrung for a considerable time, and that they one and all found it necessary to satisfy themselves that he was indeed Tarzan by smelling about him a half dozen or more times before they calmed down.
Tarzan observed this, as he had many times before—that his sudden appearances always made them anxious and on edge for quite a while, and they all felt the need to reassure themselves that he was truly Tarzan by sniffing around him multiple times before they settled down.
Pushing through them, he made his way toward Teeka; but as he approached her the ape drew away.
Pushing through them, he made his way toward Teeka; but as he got closer to her, the ape backed off.
“Teeka,” he said, “it is Tarzan. You belong to Tarzan. I have come for you.”
“Teeka,” he said, “it's Tarzan. You belong to Tarzan. I’m here for you.”
The ape drew closer, looking him over carefully. Finally she sniffed at him, as though to make assurance doubly sure.
The ape got closer, examining him closely. Eventually, she sniffed him, as if to be absolutely certain.
“Where is Taug?” she asked.
“Where's Taug?” she asked.
“The Gomangani have him,” replied Tarzan. “They will kill him.”
“The Gomangani have him,” Tarzan replied. “They’re going to kill him.”
In the eyes of the she, Tarzan saw a wistful expression and a troubled look of sorrow as he told her of Taug’s fate; but she came quite close and snuggled against him, and Tarzan, Lord Greystoke, put his arm about her.
In her eyes, Tarzan saw a longing expression and a troubled look of sadness as he shared Taug’s fate; but she moved in close and cuddled against him, and Tarzan, Lord Greystoke, wrapped his arm around her.
As he did so he noticed, with a start, the strange incongruity of that smooth, brown arm against the black and hairy coat of his lady-love. He recalled the paw of Sheeta’s mate across Sheeta’s face—no incongruity there. He thought of little Manu hugging his she, and how the one seemed to belong to the other. Even the proud male bird, with his gay plumage, bore a close resemblance to his quieter spouse, while Numa, but for his shaggy mane, was almost a counterpart of Sabor, the lioness. The males and the females differed, it was true; but not with such differences as existed between Tarzan and Teeka.
As he did this, he suddenly noticed the weird contrast of that smooth, brown arm against the black and hairy coat of his love. He remembered the paw of Sheeta’s mate across Sheeta’s face—there was no contrast there. He thought about little Manu hugging his mate, and how they seemed like they belonged together. Even the proud male bird, with his bright feathers, looked closely related to his quieter partner, while Numa, except for his shaggy mane, was almost a match for Sabor, the lioness. It was true that males and females were different; but not with the kind of differences that existed between Tarzan and Teeka.
Tarzan was puzzled. There was something wrong. His arm dropped from the shoulder of Teeka. Very slowly he drew away from her. She looked at him with her head cocked upon one side. Tarzan rose to his full height and beat upon his breast with his fists. He raised his head toward the heavens and opened his mouth. From the depths of his lungs rose the fierce, weird challenge of the victorious bull ape. The tribe turned curiously to eye him. He had killed nothing, nor was there any antagonist to be goaded to madness by the savage scream. No, there was no excuse for it, and they turned back to their feeding, but with an eye upon the ape-man lest he be preparing to suddenly run amuck.
Tarzan was confused. Something wasn't right. His arm slipped from Teeka’s shoulder. Slowly, he pulled away from her. She looked at him with her head tilted to one side. Tarzan stood tall and pounded his chest with his fists. He raised his head to the sky and opened his mouth. From deep within him came the fierce, strange call of the victorious bull ape. The tribe turned to look at him curiously. He hadn’t killed anything, and there was no enemy to provoke with his wild scream. No, there was no reason for it, so they returned to their feeding, keeping an eye on the ape-man in case he suddenly went wild.
As they watched him they saw him swing into a near-by tree and disappear from sight. Then they forgot him, even Teeka.
As they watched him, they saw him swing into a nearby tree and vanish from sight. Then they forgot about him, even Teeka.
Mbonga’s black warriors, sweating beneath their strenuous task, and resting often, made slow progress toward their village. Always the savage beast in the primitive cage growled and roared when they moved him. He beat upon the bars and slavered at the mouth. His noise was hideous.
Mbonga’s black warriors, sweating from their hard work and taking frequent breaks, made slow progress toward their village. The wild beast in its primitive cage always growled and roared whenever they moved it. It thrashed against the bars and drooled. Its noise was awful.
They had almost completed their journey and were making their final rest before forging ahead to gain the clearing in which lay their village. A few more minutes would have taken them out of the forest, and then, doubtless, the thing would not have happened which did happen.
They had almost finished their journey and were taking their last break before moving on to reach the clearing where their village was located. Just a few more minutes would have brought them out of the forest, and then, without a doubt, the event that did happen would not have occurred.
A silent figure moved through the trees above them. Keen eyes inspected the cage and counted the number of warriors. An alert and daring brain figured upon the chances of success when a certain plan should be put to the test.
A quiet figure moved through the trees above them. Sharp eyes examined the cage and counted the number of warriors. A watchful and bold mind calculated the chances of success when a specific plan would be put to the test.
Tarzan watched the blacks lolling in the shade. They were exhausted. Already several of them slept. He crept closer, pausing just above them. Not a leaf rustled before his stealthy advance. He waited in the infinite patience of the beast of prey. Presently but two of the warriors remained awake, and one of these was dozing.
Tarzan observed the Black people lounging in the shade. They were tired. Several of them were already asleep. He moved in closer, stopping just above them. Not a single leaf rustled as he approached quietly. He remained as patiently as a predator. Soon, only two of the warriors were still awake, and one of them was dozing off.
Tarzan of the Apes gathered himself, and as he did so the black who did not sleep arose and passed around to the rear of the cage. The ape-boy followed just above his head. Taug was eyeing the warrior and emitting low growls. Tarzan feared that the anthropoid would awaken the sleepers.
Tarzan of the Apes collected himself, and as he did, the awake black man moved around to the back of the cage. The ape-boy followed just above his head. Taug was watching the warrior and letting out low growls. Tarzan was worried that the anthropoid would wake the others.
In a whisper which was inaudible to the ears of the Negro, Tarzan whispered Taug’s name, cautioning the ape to silence, and Taug’s growling ceased.
In a whisper that the Negro couldn’t hear, Tarzan called out Taug’s name, warning the ape to be quiet, and Taug stopped growling.
The black approached the rear of the cage and examined the fastenings of the door, and as he stood there the beast above him launched itself from the tree full upon his back. Steel fingers circled his throat, choking the cry which sprang to the lips of the terrified man. Strong teeth fastened themselves in his shoulder, and powerful legs wound themselves about his torso.
The black man moved to the back of the cage and looked over the door's locks, and while he was there, the creature above him leaped from the tree right onto his back. Steel-like fingers gripped his throat, silencing the scream that was about to escape his lips. Strong teeth dug into his shoulder, and powerful legs wrapped around his torso.
The black in a frenzy of terror tried to dislodge the silent thing which clung to him. He threw himself to the ground and rolled about; but still those mighty fingers closed more and more tightly their deadly grip.
The black person, filled with terror, tried to shake off the silent thing that was holding onto him. He threw himself to the ground and rolled around, but those powerful fingers tightened their deadly grip even more.
The man’s mouth gaped wide, his swollen tongue protruded, his eyes started from their sockets; but the relentless fingers only increased their pressure.
The man's mouth hung open, his swollen tongue sticking out, his eyes bulging from their sockets; yet the unyielding fingers only tightened their grip.
Taug was a silent witness of the struggle. In his fierce little brain he doubtless wondered what purpose prompted Tarzan to attack the black. Taug had not forgotten his recent battle with the ape-boy, nor the cause of it. Now he saw the form of the Gomangani suddenly go limp. There was a convulsive shiver and the man lay still.
Taug was a quiet observer of the struggle. In his fierce little mind, he must have questioned what drove Tarzan to attack the black man. Taug hadn’t forgotten his recent fight with the ape-boy, nor the reason behind it. Now he watched as the Gomangani suddenly went limp. There was a convulsive shudder, and the man lay still.
Tarzan sprang from his prey and ran to the door of the cage. With nimble fingers he worked rapidly at the thongs which held the door in place. Taug could only watch—he could not help. Presently Tarzan pushed the thing up a couple of feet and Taug crawled out. The ape would have turned upon the sleeping blacks that he might wreak his pent vengeance; but Tarzan would not permit it.
Tarzan leaped away from his prey and hurried to the cage door. With quick fingers, he swiftly untied the thongs that held the door shut. Taug could only watch—he could do nothing to help. Soon, Tarzan pushed the door up a couple of feet, and Taug crawled out. The ape wanted to attack the sleeping black men to unleash his built-up rage, but Tarzan wouldn’t allow it.
Instead, the ape-boy dragged the body of the black within the cage and propped it against the side bars. Then he lowered the door and made fast the thongs as they had been before.
Instead, the ape-boy pulled the body of the black into the cage and leaned it against the side bars. Then he closed the door and secured the thongs just like they were before.
A happy smile lighted his features as he worked, for one of his principal diversions was the baiting of the blacks of Mbonga’s village. He could imagine their terror when they awoke and found the dead body of their comrade fast in the cage where they had left the great ape safely secured but a few minutes before.
A happy smile lit up his face as he worked, because one of his main pastimes was teasing the locals from Mbonga’s village. He could picture their fear when they woke up and discovered their comrade's dead body trapped in the cage where they had just left the great ape securely locked a few minutes earlier.
Tarzan and Taug took to the trees together, the shaggy coat of the fierce ape brushing the sleek skin of the English lordling as they passed through the primeval jungle side by side.
Tarzan and Taug climbed the trees together, the rough fur of the fierce ape brushing against the smooth skin of the English lord as they moved through the ancient jungle side by side.
“Go back to Teeka,” said Tarzan. “She is yours. Tarzan does not want her.”
“Go back to Teeka,” said Tarzan. “She’s yours. Tarzan doesn’t want her.”
“Tarzan has found another she?” asked Taug.
“Tarzan has found another woman?” asked Taug.
The ape-boy shrugged.
The ape kid shrugged.
“For the Gomangani there is another Gomangani,” he said; “for Numa, the lion, there is Sabor, the lioness; for Sheeta there is a she of his own kind; for Bara, the deer; for Manu, the monkey; for all the beasts and the birds of the jungle is there a mate. Only for Tarzan of the Apes is there none. Taug is an ape. Teeka is an ape. Go back to Teeka. Tarzan is a man. He will go alone.”
“For every Gomangani, there's another Gomangani,” he said; “for Numa, the lion, there's Sabor, the lioness; for Sheeta, there's a female of his kind; for Bara, the deer; for Manu, the monkey; every beast and bird in the jungle has a mate. Only Tarzan of the Apes has none. Taug is an ape. Teeka is an ape. Go back to Teeka. Tarzan is a man. He will go alone.”
CHAPTER II
The Capture of Tarzan
The black warriors labored in the humid heat of the jungle’s stifling shade. With war spears they loosened the thick, black loam and the deep layers of rotting vegetation. With heavy-nailed fingers they scooped away the disintegrated earth from the center of the age-old game trail. Often they ceased their labors to squat, resting and gossiping, with much laughter, at the edge of the pit they were digging.
The Black warriors worked hard in the humid heat of the jungle's stifling shade. With war spears, they loosened the thick, dark soil and the deep layers of decaying plants. Using their heavy-nailed fingers, they scooped away the crumbling earth from the center of the ancient game trail. They often took breaks to squat down, resting and chatting, laughing a lot at the edge of the pit they were digging.
Against the boles of near-by trees leaned their long, oval shields of thick buffalo hide, and the spears of those who were doing the scooping. Sweat glistened upon their smooth, ebon skins, beneath which rolled rounded muscles, supple in the perfection of nature’s uncontaminated health.
Against the trunks of nearby trees rested their long, oval shields made from thick buffalo hide, along with the spears of those who were doing the scooping. Sweat shone on their smooth, dark skin, under which rounded muscles rolled, supple in the perfection of nature’s untouched health.
A reed buck, stepping warily along the trail toward water, halted as a burst of laughter broke upon his startled ears. For a moment he stood statuesque but for his sensitively dilating nostrils; then he wheeled and fled noiselessly from the terrifying presence of man.
A reed buck, carefully making its way along the path to the water, stopped when a sudden burst of laughter reached its alert ears. For a moment, it stood still except for its flaring nostrils; then it turned and quietly escaped from the frightening presence of humans.
A hundred yards away, deep in the tangle of impenetrable jungle, Numa, the lion, raised his massive head. Numa had dined well until almost daybreak and it had required much noise to awaken him. Now he lifted his muzzle and sniffed the air, caught the acrid scent spoor of the reed buck and the heavy scent of man. But Numa was well filled. With a low, disgusted grunt he rose and slunk away.
A hundred yards away, deep in the dense jungle, Numa, the lion, lifted his huge head. Numa had eaten well until almost dawn, and it took a lot of noise to wake him up. Now he raised his nose and sniffed the air, picking up the sharp scent of the reed buck and the strong odor of humans. But Numa was satisfied. With a low, displeased grunt, he got up and crept away.
Brilliantly plumaged birds with raucous voices darted from tree to tree. Little monkeys, chattering and scolding, swung through the swaying limbs above the black warriors. Yet they were alone, for the teeming jungle with all its myriad life, like the swarming streets of a great metropolis, is one of the loneliest spots in God’s great universe.
Brilliantly colored birds with loud voices flitted from tree to tree. Small monkeys, chattering and scolding, swung through the swaying branches above the Black warriors. Yet they were alone, because the bustling jungle with all its countless life, like the crowded streets of a big city, is one of the loneliest places in God’s vast universe.
But were they alone?
But were they by themselves?
Above them, lightly balanced upon a leafy tree limb, a gray-eyed youth watched with eager intentness their every move. The fire of hate, restrained, smoldered beneath the lad’s evident desire to know the purpose of the black men’s labors. Such a one as these it was who had slain his beloved Kala. For them there could be naught but enmity, yet he liked well to watch them, avid as he was for greater knowledge of the ways of man.
Above them, lightly balanced on a leafy branch, a gray-eyed young man watched intently, eager for every detail of their actions. A restrained fire of hatred smoldered beneath his clear desire to understand what the black men were doing. These were the ones who had killed his beloved Kala. For them, there could be no feelings other than hostility, yet he enjoyed watching them, driven by a strong curiosity about the ways of humanity.
He saw the pit grow in depth until a great hole yawned the width of the trail—a hole which was amply large enough to hold at one time all of the six excavators. Tarzan could not guess the purpose of so great a labor. And when they cut long stakes, sharpened at their upper ends, and set them at intervals upright in the bottom of the pit, his wonderment but increased, nor was it satisfied with the placing of the light cross-poles over the pit, or the careful arrangement of leaves and earth which completely hid from view the work the black men had performed.
He watched as the pit deepened until a massive hole opened up, wide enough to fit all six excavators at once. Tarzan couldn't figure out why so much effort was being put into this. His curiosity only grew when they cut long stakes, sharpened at the top, and set them up at intervals in the bottom of the pit. It didn’t stop there; his confusion continued as they laid light cross-poles over the pit and meticulously covered everything with leaves and dirt, completely concealing the work the men had done.
When they were done they surveyed their handiwork with evident satisfaction, and Tarzan surveyed it, too. Even to his practiced eye there remained scarce a vestige of evidence that the ancient game trail had been tampered with in any way.
When they finished, they looked over their work with clear satisfaction, and Tarzan examined it as well. Even with his trained eye, there was hardly a trace left showing that the old game trail had been disturbed at all.
So absorbed was the ape-man in speculation as to the purpose of the covered pit that he permitted the blacks to depart in the direction of their village without the usual baiting which had rendered him the terror of Mbonga’s people and had afforded Tarzan both a vehicle of revenge and a source of inexhaustible delight.
So caught up was the ape-man in thinking about what the covered pit was for that he let the villagers leave toward their village without the usual teasing that had made him a nightmare for Mbonga’s people and had given Tarzan both a way to get back at them and a source of endless enjoyment.
Puzzle as he would, however, he could not solve the mystery of the concealed pit, for the ways of the blacks were still strange ways to Tarzan. They had entered his jungle but a short time before—the first of their kind to encroach upon the age-old supremacy of the beasts which laired there. To Numa, the lion, to Tantor, the elephant, to the great apes and the lesser apes, to each and all of the myriad creatures of this savage wild, the ways of man were new. They had much to learn of these black, hairless creatures that walked erect upon their hind paws—and they were learning it slowly, and always to their sorrow.
Puzzle as he might, he couldn't figure out the mystery of the hidden pit, since the ways of the black people were still unfamiliar to Tarzan. They had just entered his jungle a short while ago—the first of their kind to intrude on the ancient dominance of the beasts that inhabited it. For Numa, the lion; for Tantor, the elephant; for the great apes and the smaller apes; and for all the countless creatures of this wild place, the ways of humans were something new. They had a lot to learn about these black, hairless beings that walked upright on their hind legs—and they were learning it slowly, and always with regret.
Shortly after the blacks had departed, Tarzan swung easily to the trail. Sniffing suspiciously, he circled the edge of the pit. Squatting upon his haunches, he scraped away a little earth to expose one of the cross-bars. He sniffed at this, touched it, cocked his head upon one side, and contemplated it gravely for several minutes. Then he carefully recovered it, arranging the earth as neatly as had the blacks. This done, he swung himself back among the branches of the trees and moved off in search of his hairy fellows, the great apes of the tribe of Kerchak.
Shortly after the group of Black men left, Tarzan effortlessly made his way to the trail. Sniffing cautiously, he circled the edge of the pit. Squatting down, he scraped away some dirt to uncover one of the cross-bars. He sniffed it, touched it, tilted his head to one side, and studied it seriously for several minutes. Then he carefully covered it back up, arranging the dirt as neatly as the men had done. Once that was finished, he swung back into the trees and set off to find his furry companions, the great apes of the Kerchak tribe.
Once he crossed the trail of Numa, the lion, pausing for a moment to hurl a soft fruit at the snarling face of his enemy, and to taunt and insult him, calling him eater of carrion and brother of Dango, the hyena. Numa, his yellow-green eyes round and burning with concentrated hate, glared up at the dancing figure above him. Low growls vibrated his heavy jowls and his great rage transmitted to his sinuous tail a sharp, whiplike motion; but realizing from past experience the futility of long distance argument with the ape-man, he turned presently and struck off into the tangled vegetation which hid him from the view of his tormentor. With a final scream of jungle invective and an apelike grimace at his departing foe, Tarzan continued along his way.
Once he crossed paths with Numa, the lion, he paused for a moment to throw a soft fruit at the snarling face of his enemy, taunting and insulting him, calling him a scavenger and a brother of Dango, the hyena. Numa, with his yellow-green eyes wide and burning with intense hate, glared up at the dancing figure above him. Low growls rumbled deep within his heavy jaws, and his great rage sent a sharp, whip-like motion through his sinuous tail; but knowing from past experience that arguing from a distance with the ape-man was pointless, he eventually turned and slipped into the thick vegetation that concealed him from his tormentor's view. With one last scream of jungle insults and an apelike grimace at his departing foe, Tarzan continued on his way.
Another mile and a shifting wind brought to his keen nostrils a familiar, pungent odor close at hand, and a moment later there loomed beneath him a huge, gray-black bulk forging steadily along the jungle trail. Tarzan seized and broke a small tree limb, and at the sudden cracking sound the ponderous figure halted. Great ears were thrown forward, and a long, supple trunk rose quickly to wave to and fro in search of the scent of an enemy, while two weak, little eyes peered suspiciously and futilely about in quest of the author of the noise which had disturbed his peaceful way.
Another mile and a shifting wind carried a familiar, strong smell to his sharp nostrils, and a moment later, he saw a massive, gray-black figure moving steadily along the jungle path. Tarzan grabbed and broke a small tree branch, and at the sudden snap, the huge creature stopped. Its large ears perked up, and a long, flexible trunk rose quickly to wave back and forth, searching for the scent of a threat, while two small, weak eyes looked around suspiciously, trying to find the source of the noise that had interrupted its peaceful path.
Tarzan laughed aloud and came closer above the head of the pachyderm.
Tarzan laughed out loud and moved closer above the head of the elephant.
“Tantor! Tantor!” he cried. “Bara, the deer, is less fearful than you—you, Tantor, the elephant, greatest of the jungle folk with the strength of as many Numas as I have toes upon my feet and fingers upon my hands. Tantor, who can uproot great trees, trembles with fear at the sound of a broken twig.”
“Tantor! Tantor!” he shouted. “Bara, the deer, is braver than you—you, Tantor, the elephant, the mightiest of the jungle creatures with the strength of as many Numas as I have toes on my feet and fingers on my hands. Tantor, who can pull up huge trees, shakes with fear at the sound of a snapped twig.”
A rumbling noise, which might have been either a sign of contempt or a sigh of relief, was Tantor’s only reply as the uplifted trunk and ears came down and the beast’s tail dropped to normal; but his eyes still roved about in search of Tarzan. He was not long kept in suspense, however, as to the whereabouts of the ape-man, for a second later the youth dropped lightly to the broad head of his old friend. Then stretching himself at full length, he drummed with his bare toes upon the thick hide, and as his fingers scratched the more tender surfaces beneath the great ears, he talked to Tantor of the gossip of the jungle as though the great beast understood every word that he said.
A low rumble, which could have been either a sound of annoyance or a breath of relief, was Tantor’s only response as his trunk and ears returned to their normal position and his tail settled down; but his eyes continued to search for Tarzan. However, he didn’t have to wait long to find out where the ape-man was, because a moment later, the young man dropped gracefully onto the large head of his old friend. Then, lying flat, he tapped his bare toes against the thick skin, and as his fingers scratched the softer areas beneath the great ears, he chatted with Tantor about the latest jungle news as if the massive creature understood every word he said.
Much there was which Tarzan could make Tantor understand, and though the small talk of the wild was beyond the great, gray dreadnaught of the jungle, he stood with blinking eyes and gently swaying trunk as though drinking in every word of it with keenest appreciation. As a matter of fact it was the pleasant, friendly voice and caressing hands behind his ears which he enjoyed, and the close proximity of him whom he had often borne upon his back since Tarzan, as a little child, had once fearlessly approached the great bull, assuming upon the part of the pachyderm the same friendliness which filled his own heart.
There was a lot that Tarzan could communicate to Tantor, and even though the casual chatter of the wild was beyond the understanding of the huge, gray beast of the jungle, he stood there with blinking eyes and a gently swaying trunk, as if absorbing every word with great appreciation. In reality, it was the warm, friendly tone and the gentle touch behind his ears that he truly enjoyed, along with the closeness of the one he had often carried on his back since the time Tarzan, as a young child, had bravely approached the powerful bull, sharing the same friendliness that filled his own heart.
In the years of their association Tarzan had discovered that he possessed an inexplicable power to govern and direct his mighty friend. At his bidding, Tantor would come from a great distance—as far as his keen ears could detect the shrill and piercing summons of the ape-man—and when Tarzan was squatted upon his head, Tantor would lumber through the jungle in any direction which his rider bade him go. It was the power of the man-mind over that of the brute and it was just as effective as though both fully understood its origin, though neither did.
In the time they spent together, Tarzan found out that he had an unexplainable ability to control and lead his massive friend. At his command, Tantor would come from far away—any distance his sharp ears could pick up the loud and sharp call of the ape-man—and when Tarzan was sitting on his head, Tantor would trudge through the jungle in whatever direction his rider instructed. It was the power of a human mind over a beast's, and it was just as effective as if both fully understood where it came from, even though neither did.
For half an hour Tarzan sprawled there upon Tantor’s back. Time had no meaning for either of them. Life, as they saw it, consisted principally in keeping their stomachs filled. To Tarzan this was a less arduous labor than to Tantor, for Tarzan’s stomach was smaller, and being omnivorous, food was less difficult to obtain. If one sort did not come readily to hand, there were always many others to satisfy his hunger. He was less particular as to his diet than Tantor, who would eat only the bark of certain trees, and the wood of others, while a third appealed to him only through its leaves, and these, perhaps, just at certain seasons of the year.
For thirty minutes, Tarzan lay on Tantor’s back. Time didn’t matter to either of them. Their lives were mostly about keeping their stomachs full. For Tarzan, this was easier than it was for Tantor, since Tarzan’s stomach was smaller, and he could eat anything, making food easier to find. If one type of food wasn’t available, there were always plenty of others to satisfy his hunger. He was less picky about what he ate compared to Tantor, who would only eat the bark of specific trees, the wood of others, and only the leaves of some trees at certain times of the year.
Tantor must needs spend the better part of his life in filling his immense stomach against the needs of his mighty thews. It is thus with all the lower orders—their lives are so occupied either with searching for food or with the processes of digestion that they have little time for other considerations. Doubtless it is this handicap which has kept them from advancing as rapidly as man, who has more time to give to thought upon other matters.
Tantor has to spend most of his life filling his huge stomach to meet the demands of his powerful muscles. This is the case for all lower creatures—their lives are so consumed with either finding food or digesting it that they have little time for anything else. It's probably this limitation that has held them back from progressing as quickly as humans, who have more time to think about other things.
However, these questions troubled Tarzan but little, and Tantor not at all. What the former knew was that he was happy in the companionship of the elephant. He did not know why. He did not know that because he was a human being—a normal, healthy human being—he craved some living thing upon which to lavish his affection. His childhood playmates among the apes of Kerchak were now great, sullen brutes. They felt nor inspired but little affection. The younger apes Tarzan still played with occasionally. In his savage way he loved them; but they were far from satisfying or restful companions. Tantor was a great mountain of calm, of poise, of stability. It was restful and satisfying to sprawl upon his rough pate and pour one’s vague hopes and aspirations into the great ears which flapped ponderously to and fro in apparent understanding. Of all the jungle folk, Tantor commanded Tarzan’s greatest love since Kala had been taken from him. Sometimes Tarzan wondered if Tantor reciprocated his affection. It was difficult to know.
However, these questions hardly bothered Tarzan and not at all for Tantor. What Tarzan understood was that he was happy in the company of the elephant. He didn’t know why. He didn't realize that, being a normal, healthy human being, he needed some living creature to shower with his affection. His childhood playmates among the apes of Kerchak had grown into big, sulky beasts. They felt little affection and inspired even less. The younger apes that Tarzan occasionally played with were loved by him in his wild way, but they weren’t very satisfying or comforting companions. Tantor was a massive presence of calm, poise, and stability. It felt peaceful and fulfilling to lie on his rough head and share his vague hopes and dreams into the huge ears that flopped back and forth as if they understood. Of all the jungle creatures, Tantor held Tarzan’s deepest affection since Kala had been taken from him. Sometimes, Tarzan wondered if Tantor felt the same way. It was hard to tell.
It was the call of the stomach—the most compelling and insistent call which the jungle knows—that took Tarzan finally back to the trees and off in search of food, while Tantor continued his interrupted journey in the opposite direction.
It was the call of hunger—the strongest and most relentless call in the jungle—that finally drove Tarzan back to the trees to search for food, while Tantor continued his interrupted journey in the other direction.
For an hour the ape-man foraged. A lofty nest yielded its fresh, warm harvest. Fruits, berries, and tender plantain found a place upon his menu in the order that he happened upon them, for he did not seek such foods. Meat, meat, meat! It was always meat that Tarzan of the Apes hunted; but sometimes meat eluded him, as today.
For an hour, the ape-man searched for food. A high nest provided its fresh, warm bounty. Fruits, berries, and tender plantain were added to his menu in the order he discovered them, as he didn't actively look for such foods. Meat, meat, meat! It was always meat that Tarzan of the Apes hunted; but sometimes, meat got away from him, like today.
And as he roamed the jungle his active mind busied itself not alone with his hunting, but with many other subjects. He had a habit of recalling often the events of the preceding days and hours. He lived over his visit with Tantor; he cogitated upon the digging blacks and the strange, covered pit they had left behind them. He wondered again and again what its purpose might be. He compared perceptions and arrived at judgments. He compared judgments, reaching conclusions—not always correct ones, it is true, but at least he used his brain for the purpose God intended it, which was the less difficult because he was not handicapped by the second-hand, and usually erroneous, judgments of others.
As he wandered through the jungle, his active mind occupied itself not just with hunting, but with many other thoughts. He often found himself reflecting on the events of the past days and hours. He relived his visit with Tantor and pondered the digging by the black men and the strange, covered pit they had left behind. He repeatedly wondered what its purpose could be. He compared different observations and made judgments. He evaluated those judgments, reaching conclusions—not always correct, it's true, but at least he was using his brain for the purpose it was intended, which was made easier since he wasn't influenced by the second-hand and often wrong judgments of others.
And as he puzzled over the covered pit, there loomed suddenly before his mental vision a huge, gray-black bulk which lumbered ponderously along a jungle trail. Instantly Tarzan tensed to the shock of a sudden fear. Decision and action usually occurred simultaneously in the life of the ape-man, and now he was away through the leafy branches ere the realization of the pit’s purpose had scarce formed in his mind.
And as he thought about the covered pit, a massive, gray-black figure suddenly appeared in his mind, moving clumsily down a jungle path. Immediately, Tarzan felt a jolt of fear. His decisions and actions typically happened at the same time, and now he was off through the leafy branches before he even fully understood what the pit was for.
Swinging from swaying limb to swaying limb, he raced through the middle terraces where the trees grew close together. Again he dropped to the ground and sped, silently and light of foot, over the carpet of decaying vegetation, only to leap again into the trees where the tangled undergrowth precluded rapid advance upon the surface.
Swinging from one branch to another, he dashed through the central terraces where the trees were tightly packed. He dropped to the ground again and rushed, quietly and lightly, over the layer of decaying leaves, only to jump back into the trees where the thick underbrush made it hard to move quickly on the surface.
In his anxiety he cast discretion to the winds. The caution of the beast was lost in the loyalty of the man, and so it came that he entered a large clearing, denuded of trees, without a thought of what might lie there or upon the farther edge to dispute the way with him.
In his anxiety, he threw caution to the wind. The creature's wariness was overshadowed by the man's loyalty, and so he walked into a vast clearing, stripped of trees, without considering what might be waiting there or on the other side to challenge him.
He was half way across when directly in his path and but a few yards away there rose from a clump of tall grasses a half dozen chattering birds. Instantly Tarzan turned aside, for he knew well enough what manner of creature the presence of these little sentinels proclaimed. Simultaneously Buto, the rhinoceros, scrambled to his short legs and charged furiously. Haphazard charges Buto, the rhinoceros. With his weak eyes he sees but poorly even at short distances, and whether his erratic rushes are due to the panic of fear as he attempts to escape, or to the irascible temper with which he is generally credited, it is difficult to determine. Nor is the matter of little moment to one whom Buto charges, for if he be caught and tossed, the chances are that naught will interest him thereafter.
He was halfway across when, right in front of him and just a few yards away, a group of chattering birds suddenly flew up from a patch of tall grass. Tarzan quickly changed direction because he knew exactly what these little scouts meant. At the same time, Buto the rhinoceros got up on his short legs and charged angrily. Buto, the rhinoceros, charges without any clear aim. With his poor eyesight, he doesn't see well even at close range, and it's hard to tell whether his wild charges come from panic and fear or from the bad temper he's usually known for. Regardless, it’s a serious issue for anyone Buto charges, because if they get caught and tossed around, there’s a good chance they won’t have any interest in anything afterward.
And today it chanced that Buto bore down straight upon Tarzan, across the few yards of knee-deep grass which separated them. Accident started him in the direction of the ape-man, and then his weak eyes discerned the enemy, and with a series of snorts he charged straight for him. The little rhino birds fluttered and circled about their giant ward. Among the branches of the trees at the edge of the clearing, a score or more monkeys chattered and scolded as the loud snorts of the angry beast sent them scurrying affrightedly to the upper terraces. Tarzan alone appeared indifferent and serene.
And today, Buto happened to charge straight at Tarzan across the few yards of knee-deep grass that separated them. By accident, he started moving toward the ape-man, and then his weak eyes spotted the enemy. With a series of snorts, he charged right for him. The little rhino birds fluttered and circled around their giant protector. In the branches of the trees at the edge of the clearing, a dozen or more monkeys chattered and scolded as the loud snorts of the angry beast sent them scurrying up to the higher terraces in fear. Tarzan alone seemed indifferent and calm.
Directly in the path of the charge he stood. There had been no time to seek safety in the trees beyond the clearing, nor had Tarzan any mind to delay his journey because of Buto. He had met the stupid beast before and held him in fine contempt.
Directly in the path of the charge he stood. There hadn't been time to find safety in the trees beyond the clearing, nor did Tarzan want to delay his journey because of Buto. He had encountered the stupid beast before and held him in great contempt.
And now Buto was upon him, the massive head lowered and the long, heavy horn inclined for the frightful work for which nature had designed it; but as he struck upward, his weapon raked only thin air, for the ape-man had sprung lightly aloft with a catlike leap that carried him above the threatening horn to the broad back of the rhinoceros. Another spring and he was on the ground behind the brute and racing like a deer for the trees.
And now Buto was charging at him, the huge head lowered and the long, heavy horn aimed for the terrible task for which it was meant; but as it lunged upward, it struck nothing but air, because the ape-man had jumped up with a graceful leap that took him over the menacing horn and onto the wide back of the rhinoceros. With another jump, he landed on the ground behind the beast and sprinted like a deer toward the trees.
Buto, angered and mystified by the strange disappearance of his prey, wheeled and charged frantically in another direction, which chanced to be not the direction of Tarzan’s flight, and so the ape-man came in safety to the trees and continued on his swift way through the forest.
Buto, frustrated and confused by the unusual disappearance of his target, turned and rushed off frantically in another direction, which happened to be away from where Tarzan had fled. As a result, the ape-man made it safely to the trees and continued his quick journey through the forest.
Some distance ahead of him Tantor moved steadily along the well-worn elephant trail, and ahead of Tantor a crouching, black warrior listened intently in the middle of the path. Presently he heard the sound for which he had been hoping—the cracking, snapping sound which heralded the approach of an elephant.
Some distance ahead of him, Tantor moved steadily along the well-worn elephant path, and in front of Tantor, a crouching black warrior listened closely in the middle of the trail. Soon, he heard the sound he had been waiting for—the cracking and snapping that signaled the approach of an elephant.
To his right and left in other parts of the jungle other warriors were watching. A low signal, passed from one to another, apprised the most distant that the quarry was afoot. Rapidly they converged toward the trail, taking positions in trees down wind from the point at which Tantor must pass them. Silently they waited and presently were rewarded by the sight of a mighty tusker carrying an amount of ivory in his long tusks that set their greedy hearts to palpitating.
To his right and left, other warriors in different parts of the jungle were watching. A quiet signal, passed from one to the next, alerted the furthest away that the prey was on the move. They quickly came together near the trail, positioning themselves in trees downwind from where Tantor was headed. Silently, they waited and soon were rewarded with the sight of a massive tusker carrying so much ivory in his long tusks that it made their greedy hearts race.
No sooner had he passed their positions than the warriors clambered from their perches. No longer were they silent, but instead clapped their hands and shouted as they reached the ground. For an instant Tantor, the elephant, paused with upraised trunk and tail, with great ears up-pricked, and then he swung on along the trail at a rapid, shuffling pace—straight toward the covered pit with its sharpened stakes upstanding in the ground.
No sooner had he passed their positions than the warriors climbed down from their spots. They were no longer silent; instead, they clapped their hands and shouted as they hit the ground. For a moment, Tantor, the elephant, paused with his trunk and tail raised, ears perked up, and then he continued down the trail at a quick, shuffling pace—straight toward the covered pit with its sharpened stakes sticking up out of the ground.
Behind him came the yelling warriors, urging him on in the rapid flight which would not permit a careful examination of the ground before him. Tantor, the elephant, who could have turned and scattered his adversaries with a single charge, fled like a frightened deer—fled toward a hideous, torturing death.
Behind him were the shouting warriors, pushing him forward in a fast escape that didn’t allow for a careful look at the ground ahead. Tantor, the elephant, who could have turned and overwhelmed his enemies with a single charge, ran away like a scared deer—running toward a horrifying, painful death.
And behind them all came Tarzan of the Apes, racing through the jungle forest with the speed and agility of a squirrel, for he had heard the shouts of the warriors and had interpreted them correctly. Once he uttered a piercing call that reverberated through the jungle; but Tantor, in the panic of terror, either failed to hear, or hearing, dared not pause to heed.
And behind all of them came Tarzan of the Apes, sprinting through the jungle with the speed and agility of a squirrel, because he had heard the warriors' shouts and understood them correctly. At one point, he let out a sharp call that echoed through the jungle; but Tantor, in his panic, either didn't hear it or, if he did, was too scared to stop and pay attention.
Now the giant pachyderm was but a few yards from the hidden death lurking in his path, and the blacks, certain of success, were screaming and dancing in his wake, waving their war spears and celebrating in advance the acquisition of the splendid ivory carried by their prey and the surfeit of elephant meat which would be theirs this night.
Now the giant elephant was only a few yards away from the hidden danger in his path, and the natives, confident of their success, were shouting and dancing behind him, waving their spears and celebrating in advance the beautiful ivory carried by their prey and the feast of elephant meat they would have tonight.
So intent were they upon their gratulations that they entirely failed to note the silent passage of the man-beast above their heads, nor did Tantor, either, see or hear him, even though Tarzan called to him to stop.
So focused were they on their congratulations that they completely missed the silent movement of the man-beast above them, and neither did Tantor see or hear him, even though Tarzan shouted for him to stop.
A few more steps would precipitate Tantor upon the sharpened stakes; Tarzan fairly flew through the trees until he had come abreast of the fleeing animal and then had passed him. At the pit’s verge the ape-man dropped to the ground in the center of the trail. Tantor was almost upon him before his weak eyes permitted him to recognize his old friend.
A few more steps and Tantor would fall onto the sharp stakes; Tarzan raced through the trees until he reached the fleeing animal and then passed it. At the edge of the pit, the ape-man dropped down to the ground in the middle of the trail. Tantor was almost on him before his weak eyes finally allowed him to recognize his old friend.
“Stop!” cried Tarzan, and the great beast halted to the upraised hand.
“Stop!” shouted Tarzan, and the enormous beast came to a stop at his raised hand.
Tarzan turned and kicked aside some of the brush which hid the pit. Instantly Tantor saw and understood.
Tarzan turned and kicked aside some of the brush that was covering the pit. In an instant, Tantor saw and understood.
“Fight!” growled Tarzan. “They are coming behind you.” But Tantor, the elephant, is a huge bunch of nerves, and now he was half panic-stricken by terror.
“Fight!” growled Tarzan. “They're coming up behind you.” But Tantor, the elephant, was a massive bundle of nerves, and he was now half panicked with fear.
Before him yawned the pit, how far he did not know, but to right and left lay the primeval jungle untouched by man. With a squeal the great beast turned suddenly at right angles and burst his noisy way through the solid wall of matted vegetation that would have stopped any but him.
Before him lay the pit, the depth unknown to him, but to the right and left spread the ancient jungle untouched by humans. With a squeal, the massive beast suddenly turned sharply and charged through the dense wall of tangled plants that would have stopped anyone else.
Tarzan, standing upon the edge of the pit, smiled as he watched Tantor’s undignified flight. Soon the blacks would come. It were best that Tarzan of the Apes faded from the scene. He essayed a step from the pit’s edge, and as he threw the weight of his body upon his left foot, the earth crumbled away. Tarzan made a single Herculean effort to throw himself forward, but it was too late. Backward and downward he went toward the sharpened stakes in the bottom of the pit.
Tarzan stood on the edge of the pit, smiling as he watched Tantor's awkward escape. The natives would be arriving soon. It was better for Tarzan of the Apes to disappear from sight. He tried to step away from the pit's edge, but as he shifted his weight onto his left foot, the ground gave way. Tarzan made a strong leap forward, but it was too late. He fell backward and downward toward the sharpened stakes at the bottom of the pit.
When, a moment later, the blacks came they saw even from a distance that Tantor had eluded them, for the size of the hole in the pit covering was too small to have accommodated the huge bulk of an elephant. At first they thought that their prey had put one great foot through the top and then, warned, drawn back; but when they had come to the pit’s verge and peered over, their eyes went wide in astonishment, for, quiet and still, at the bottom lay the naked figure of a white giant.
When, a moment later, the Black people arrived, they could tell from a distance that Tantor had escaped them, since the hole in the pit covering was too small to fit the massive body of an elephant. At first, they thought their target might have stuck one large foot through the top and then, realizing the danger, pulled back; but when they reached the edge of the pit and looked down, their eyes widened in shock, for lying quietly at the bottom was the bare figure of a white giant.
Some of them there had glimpsed this forest god before and they drew back in terror, awed by the presence which they had for some time believed to possess the miraculous powers of a demon; but others there were who pushed forward, thinking only of the capture of an enemy, and these leaped into the pit and lifted Tarzan out.
Some of them had seen this forest god before, and they recoiled in fear, amazed by the presence they had long believed held supernatural powers like a demon; but others moved forward, focused solely on capturing an enemy, and they jumped into the pit and pulled Tarzan out.
There was no scar upon his body. None of the sharpened stakes had pierced him—only a swollen spot at the base of the brain indicated the nature of his injury. In falling backward his head had struck upon the side of one of the stakes, rendering him unconscious. The blacks were quick to discover this, and equally quick to bind their prisoner’s arms and legs before he should regain consciousness, for they had learned to harbor a wholesome respect for this strange man-beast that consorted with the hairy tree folk.
There was no scar on his body. None of the sharp stakes had pierced him—only a swollen area at the back of his head showed the nature of his injury. When he fell backward, his head hit one of the stakes, knocking him out. The locals were quick to notice this and just as quick to tie up his arms and legs before he woke up, as they had come to have a healthy respect for this strange man-beast who associated with the hairy tree people.
They had carried him but a short distance toward their village when the ape-man’s eyelids quivered and raised. He looked about him wonderingly for a moment, and then full consciousness returned and he realized the seriousness of his predicament. Accustomed almost from birth to relying solely upon his own resources, he did not cast about for outside aid now, but devoted his mind to a consideration of the possibilities for escape which lay within himself and his own powers.
They had only carried him a short distance toward their village when the ape-man's eyelids quivered and opened. He looked around in confusion for a moment, and then full awareness came back to him, making him realize how serious his situation was. Having relied on his own resources almost from birth, he didn’t look for help from others now; instead, he focused on the options for escape that lay within himself and his own abilities.
He did not dare test the strength of his bonds while the blacks were carrying him, for fear they would become apprehensive and add to them. Presently his captors discovered that he was conscious, and as they had little stomach for carrying a heavy man through the jungle heat, they set him upon his feet and forced him forward among them, pricking him now and then with their spears, yet with every manifestation of the superstitious awe in which they held him.
He didn't want to test the strength of his bonds while the Black men were carrying him, worried they might get nervous and tighten them. Soon, his captors realized he was awake, and since they weren’t keen on carrying a heavy man through the jungle heat, they set him on his feet and pushed him to move with them, occasionally poking him with their spears, but still showing signs of the superstitious respect they had for him.
When they discovered that their prodding brought no outward evidence of suffering, their awe increased, so that they soon desisted, half believing that this strange white giant was a supernatural being and so was immune from pain.
When they realized that their nudging showed no signs of suffering, their amazement grew, and they quickly stopped, half convinced that this strange white giant was some kind of supernatural being and therefore immune to pain.
As they approached their village, they shouted aloud the victorious cries of successful warriors, so that by the time they reached the gate, dancing and waving their spears, a great crowd of men, women, and children were gathered there to greet them and hear the story of their adventure.
As they got closer to their village, they shouted the victorious cheers of successful warriors. By the time they reached the gate, dancing and waving their spears, a large crowd of men, women, and children had gathered there to welcome them and hear the story of their adventure.
As the eyes of the villagers fell upon the prisoner, they went wild, and heavy jaws fell open in astonishment and incredulity. For months they had lived in perpetual terror of a weird, white demon whom but few had ever glimpsed and lived to describe. Warriors had disappeared from the paths almost within sight of the village and from the midst of their companions as mysteriously and completely as though they had been swallowed by the earth, and later, at night, their dead bodies had fallen, as from the heavens, into the village street.
As the villagers looked at the prisoner, they went crazy, mouths agape in shock and disbelief. For months, they had been living in constant fear of a strange, white demon that only a few had seen and survived to talk about. Warriors had vanished from the trails almost right in front of the village and from their friends as mysteriously and completely as if they had been swallowed by the ground, and later, at night, their dead bodies would drop from the sky into the village street.
This fearsome creature had appeared by night in the huts of the village, killed, and disappeared, leaving behind him in the huts with his dead, strange and terrifying evidences of an uncanny sense of humor.
This terrifying creature had shown up at night in the village huts, killed, and then vanished, leaving behind strange and shocking evidence of a bizarre sense of humor among the dead in the huts.
But now he was in their power! No longer could he terrorize them. Slowly the realization of this dawned upon them. A woman, screaming, ran forward and struck the ape-man across the face. Another and another followed her example, until Tarzan of the Apes was surrounded by a fighting, clawing, yelling mob of natives.
But now he was in their grasp! He could no longer intimidate them. Gradually, they began to realize this. A woman, screaming, rushed forward and hit the ape-man across the face. One after another, others followed her lead until Tarzan of the Apes was surrounded by a chaotic, clawing, yelling crowd of villagers.
And then Mbonga, the chief, came, and laying his spear heavily across the shoulders of his people, drove them from their prey.
And then Mbonga, the chief, arrived and, resting his spear heavily across the shoulders of his people, sent them away from their catch.
“We will save him until night,” he said.
“We'll keep him safe until night,” he said.
Far out in the jungle Tantor, the elephant, his first panic of fear allayed, stood with up-pricked ears and undulating trunk. What was passing through the convolutions of his savage brain? Could he be searching for Tarzan? Could he recall and measure the service the ape-man had performed for him? Of that there can be no doubt. But did he feel gratitude? Would he have risked his own life to have saved Tarzan could he have known of the danger which confronted his friend? You will doubt it. Anyone at all familiar with elephants will doubt it. Englishmen who have hunted much with elephants in India will tell you that they never have heard of an instance in which one of these animals has gone to the aid of a man in danger, even though the man had often befriended it. And so it is to be doubted that Tantor would have attempted to overcome his instinctive fear of the black men in an effort to succor Tarzan.
Far out in the jungle, Tantor the elephant, his initial panic subsided, stood with his ears perked up and his trunk moving. What was going through the twists of his wild mind? Could he be looking for Tarzan? Could he remember and weigh the help the ape-man had given him? There's no doubt about that. But did he feel grateful? Would he have risked his own life to save Tarzan if he had known about the danger facing his friend? You'd probably doubt it. Anyone familiar with elephants would doubt it. Englishmen who have spent a lot of time hunting with elephants in India will tell you they've never heard of a case where one of these animals helped a man in danger, even if the man had often helped it. So, it’s likely that Tantor wouldn’t have tried to overcome his instinctive fear of the black men to help Tarzan.
The screams of the infuriated villagers came faintly to his sensitive ears, and he wheeled, as though in terror, contemplating flight; but something stayed him, and again he turned about, raised his trunk, and gave voice to a shrill cry.
The screams of the angry villagers reached his sensitive ears softly, and he turned around, as if in fear, thinking about running away; but something held him back, and once again he faced them, lifted his trunk, and let out a sharp cry.
Then he stood listening.
Then he listened.
In the distant village where Mbonga had restored quiet and order, the voice of Tantor was scarcely audible to the blacks, but to the keen ears of Tarzan of the Apes it bore its message.
In the far-off village where Mbonga had brought back peace and order, Tantor's voice was barely heard by the local people, but to the sharp ears of Tarzan of the Apes, it carried its message.
His captors were leading him to a hut where he might be confined and guarded against the coming of the nocturnal orgy that would mark his torture-laden death. He halted as he heard the notes of Tantor’s call, and raising his head, gave vent to a terrifying scream that sent cold chills through the superstitious blacks and caused the warriors who guarded him to leap back even though their prisoner’s arms were securely bound behind him.
His captors were taking him to a hut where he would be imprisoned and watched over in preparation for the night of debauchery that would signal his torturous death. He stopped when he heard Tantor’s call, and lifting his head, let out a terrifying scream that sent shivers down the spines of the superstitious locals and made the warriors guarding him jump back, even though his arms were tightly bound behind him.
With raised spears they encircled him as for a moment longer he stood listening. Faintly from the distance came another, an answering cry, and Tarzan of the Apes, satisfied, turned and quietly pursued his way toward the hut where he was to be imprisoned.
With their spears raised, they surrounded him as he stood there, listening for just a moment longer. From a distance, another cry came back, and Tarzan of the Apes, feeling satisfied, turned and quietly made his way toward the hut where he was going to be held captive.
The afternoon wore on. From the surrounding village the ape-man heard the bustle of preparation for the feast. Through the doorway of the hut he saw the women laying the cooking fires and filling their earthen caldrons with water; but above it all his ears were bent across the jungle in eager listening for the coming of Tantor.
The afternoon dragged on. From the nearby village, the ape-man heard the hustle and bustle of getting ready for the feast. Through the doorway of the hut, he saw the women setting up the cooking fires and filling their clay pots with water; but above everything else, he was straining his ears across the jungle, eagerly listening for the arrival of Tantor.
Even Tarzan but half believed that he would come. He knew Tantor even better than Tantor knew himself. He knew the timid heart which lay in the giant body. He knew the panic of terror which the scent of the Gomangani inspired within that savage breast, and as night drew on, hope died within his heart and in the stoic calm of the wild beast which he was, he resigned himself to meet the fate which awaited him.
Even Tarzan only half believed that he would come. He understood Tantor even better than Tantor understood himself. He recognized the timid heart that was hidden within the giant body. He was aware of the panic and terror that the scent of the Gomangani triggered in that wild heart, and as night approached, hope faded within him. In the stoic calm of the wild beast he was, he accepted the fate that awaited him.
All afternoon he had been working, working, working with the bonds that held his wrists. Very slowly they were giving. He might free his hands before they came to lead him out to be butchered, and if he did—Tarzan licked his lips in anticipation, and smiled a cold, grim smile. He could imagine the feel of soft flesh beneath his fingers and the sinking of his white teeth into the throats of his foemen. He would let them taste his wrath before they overpowered him!
All afternoon he had been working hard on the bonds that held his wrists. They were slowly loosening. He might be able to free his hands before they came to take him out to be killed, and if he did—Tarzan licked his lips in anticipation, smiling a cold, grim smile. He could picture the soft flesh beneath his fingers and the feeling of his white teeth sinking into the throats of his enemies. He would let them experience his fury before they overpowered him!
At last they came—painted, befeathered warriors—even more hideous than nature had intended them. They came and pushed him into the open, where his appearance was greeted by wild shouts from the assembled villagers.
At last they arrived—painted, feathered warriors—looking even more frightening than nature had meant them to be. They came and shoved him into the open, where his looks were met with loud shouts from the gathered villagers.
To the stake they led him, and as they pushed him roughly against it preparatory to binding him there securely for the dance of death that would presently encircle him, Tarzan tensed his mighty thews and with a single, powerful wrench parted the loosened thongs which had secured his hands. Like thought, for quickness, he leaped forward among the warriors nearest him. A blow sent one to earth, as, growling and snarling, the beast-man leaped upon the breast of another. His fangs were buried instantly in the jugular of his adversary and then a half hundred black men had leaped upon him and borne him to earth.
To the stake they took him, and as they shoved him roughly against it to tie him up securely for the upcoming execution, Tarzan flexed his powerful muscles and with a swift, forceful motion, ripped apart the loosened ropes that had secured his hands. Like a flash, he jumped forward among the nearest warriors. One blow knocked one to the ground, and as he growled and snarled, the beast-man pounced on another. His fangs quickly sank into the throat of his opponent, but then about fifty black men jumped on him and brought him down.
Striking, clawing, and snapping, the ape-man fought—fought as his foster people had taught him to fight—fought like a wild beast cornered. His strength, his agility, his courage, and his intelligence rendered him easily a match for half a dozen black men in a hand-to-hand struggle, but not even Tarzan of the Apes could hope to successfully cope with half a hundred.
Striking, clawing, and snapping, the ape-man fought—fought as his adoptive people had taught him to fight—fought like a wild animal cornered. His strength, agility, courage, and intelligence made him easily capable of matching half a dozen black men in a hand-to-hand struggle, but not even Tarzan of the Apes could expect to handle half a hundred.
Slowly they were overpowering him, though a score of them bled from ugly wounds, and two lay very still beneath the trampling feet, and the rolling bodies of the contestants.
Slowly, they were overpowering him, even though many of them were bleeding from nasty wounds, and two were lying very still beneath the trampling feet and the rolling bodies of the fighters.
Overpower him they might, but could they keep him overpowered while they bound him? A half hour of desperate endeavor convinced them that they could not, and so Mbonga, who, like all good rulers, had circled in the safety of the background, called to one to work his way in and spear the victim. Gradually, through the milling, battling men, the warrior approached the object of his quest.
They might overpower him, but could they keep him subdued while they tied him up? Half an hour of frantic effort made it clear they could not, so Mbonga, who, like any good leader, had stayed safely in the background, called someone to move in and spear the victim. Slowly, through the chaos of fighting men, the warrior made his way to his target.
He stood with poised spear above his head waiting for the instant that would expose a vulnerable part of the ape-man’s body and still not endanger one of the blacks. Closer and closer he edged about, following the movements of the twisting, scuffling combatants. The growls of the ape-man sent cold chills up the warrior’s spine, causing him to go carefully lest he miss at the first cast and lay himself open to an attack from those merciless teeth and mighty hands.
He stood with his spear raised above his head, waiting for the moment that would reveal a weak spot on the ape-man’s body without putting any of the black warriors in danger. He crept closer and closer, tracking the movements of the grappling fighters. The ape-man's growls sent shivers down the warrior’s spine, making him cautious so he wouldn’t miss his first shot and leave himself vulnerable to those savage teeth and powerful hands.
At last he found an opening. Higher he raised his spear, tensing his muscles, rolling beneath his glistening, ebon hide, and then from the jungle just beyond the palisade came a thunderous crashing. The spear-hand paused, the black cast a quick glance in the direction of the disturbance, as did the others of the blacks who were not occupied with the subjugation of the ape-man.
At last, he found an opportunity. He lifted his spear higher, tensing his muscles, rolling beneath his shiny, black skin, and then from the jungle just beyond the fence came a loud crashing noise. His spear-hand paused, and he quickly glanced at the source of the commotion, as did the other people with him who weren’t focused on overpowering the ape-man.
In the glare of the fires they saw a huge bulk topping the barrier. They saw the palisade belly and sway inward. They saw it burst as though built of straws, and an instant later Tantor, the elephant, thundered down upon them.
In the bright light of the fires, they saw a massive shape looming over the barrier. They watched as the wooden fence bent and swayed inward. Then it collapsed as if it were made of straw, and just a second later, Tantor, the elephant, charged toward them.
To right and left the blacks fled, screaming in terror. Some who hovered upon the verge of the strife with Tarzan heard and made good their escape, but a half dozen there were so wrapt in the blood-madness of battle that they failed to note the approach of the giant tusker.
To the right and left, the Black people ran away, screaming in fear. Some who were close to the fight with Tarzan heard the commotion and managed to get away, but there were about six who were so caught up in the frenzy of battle that they didn't notice the giant elephant coming their way.
Upon these Tantor charged, trumpeting furiously. Above them he stopped, his sensitive trunk weaving among them, and there, at the bottom, he found Tarzan, bloody, but still battling.
Upon these Tantor charged, trumpeting loudly. Above them he stopped, his sensitive trunk weaving among them, and there, at the bottom, he found Tarzan, bloodied, but still fighting.
A warrior turned his eyes upward from the melee. Above him towered the gigantic bulk of the pachyderm, the little eyes flashing with the reflected light of the fires—wicked, frightful, terrifying. The warrior screamed, and as he screamed, the sinuous trunk encircled him, lifted him high above the ground, and hurled him far after the fleeing crowd.
A warrior looked up from the chaos. Towering above him was the massive figure of the elephant, its small eyes glinting with the reflection of the fires—malicious, fearsome, terrifying. The warrior cried out, and as he did, the long trunk wrapped around him, lifted him high into the air, and tossed him far away after the fleeing crowd.
Another and another Tantor wrenched from the body of the ape-man, throwing them to right and to left, where they lay either moaning or very quiet, as death came slowly or at once.
Another and another Tantor pulled from the body of the ape-man, throwing them to the right and to the left, where they lay either moaning or very still, as death approached slowly or suddenly.
At a distance Mbonga rallied his warriors. His greedy eyes had noted the great ivory tusks of the bull. The first panic of terror relieved, he urged his men forward to attack with their heavy elephant spears; but as they came, Tantor swung Tarzan to his broad head, and, wheeling, lumbered off into the jungle through the great rent he had made in the palisade.
At a distance, Mbonga gathered his warriors. His greedy eyes had spotted the huge ivory tusks of the bull. Once the initial panic of fear had passed, he encouraged his men to move in and attack with their heavy elephant spears; but as they approached, Tantor lifted Tarzan to his broad head and, turning, lumbered off into the jungle through the large opening he had created in the palisade.
Elephant hunters may be right when they aver that this animal would not have rendered such service to a man, but to Tantor, Tarzan was not a man—he was but a fellow jungle beast.
Elephant hunters might be correct when they say that this animal wouldn't have helped a human, but to Tantor, Tarzan wasn't a human—he was just another beast of the jungle.
And so it was that Tantor, the elephant, discharged an obligation to Tarzan of the Apes, cementing even more closely the friendship that had existed between them since Tarzan as a little, brown boy rode upon Tantor’s huge back through the moonlit jungle beneath the equatorial stars.
And so it happened that Tantor, the elephant, fulfilled a promise to Tarzan of the Apes, strengthening the bond of friendship that had existed between them since Tarzan, as a small, brown boy, rode on Tantor’s massive back through the moonlit jungle under the equatorial stars.
CHAPTER III
The Fight for the Balu
Teeka had become a mother. Tarzan of the Apes was intensely interested, much more so, in fact, than Taug, the father. Tarzan was very fond of Teeka. Even the cares of prospective motherhood had not entirely quenched the fires of carefree youth, and Teeka had remained a good-natured playmate even at an age when other shes of the tribe of Kerchak had assumed the sullen dignity of maturity. She yet retained her childish delight in the primitive games of tag and hide-and-go-seek which Tarzan’s fertile man-mind had evolved.
Teeka had become a mother. Tarzan of the Apes was deeply interested, even more so than Taug, the father. Tarzan was very fond of Teeka. Even the worries of impending motherhood hadn’t completely extinguished the joys of her carefree youth, and Teeka had stayed a cheerful playmate, unlike other females of the Kerchak tribe who had taken on the serious maturity. She still enjoyed the simple games of tag and hide-and-seek that Tarzan’s creative mind had come up with.
To play tag through the tree tops is an exciting and inspiring pastime. Tarzan delighted in it, but the bulls of his childhood had long since abandoned such childish practices. Teeka, though, had been keen for it always until shortly before the baby came; but with the advent of her first-born, even Teeka changed.
To play tag through the treetops is an exciting and inspiring activity. Tarzan loved it, but the adult males from his childhood had long since given up such childish games. Teeka, however, had always been enthusiastic about it until just before her baby arrived; but with the arrival of her first child, even Teeka changed.
The evidence of the change surprised and hurt Tarzan immeasurably. One morning he saw Teeka squatted upon a low branch hugging something very close to her hairy breast—a wee something which squirmed and wriggled. Tarzan approached filled with the curiosity which is common to all creatures endowed with brains which have progressed beyond the microscopic stage.
The evidence of the change shocked and deeply hurt Tarzan. One morning, he saw Teeka sitting on a low branch, holding something tight against her furry chest—a tiny something that squirmed and wriggled. Tarzan approached, filled with the curiosity that is natural to all creatures with brains that have advanced beyond the most basic level.
Teeka rolled her eyes in his direction and strained the squirming mite still closer to her. Tarzan came nearer. Teeka drew away and bared her fangs. Tarzan was nonplussed. In all his experiences with Teeka, never before had she bared fangs at him other than in play; but today she did not look playful. Tarzan ran his brown fingers through his thick, black hair, cocked his head upon one side, and stared. Then he edged a bit nearer, craning his neck to have a better look at the thing which Teeka cuddled.
Teeka rolled her eyes at him and pulled the squirming little creature even closer. Tarzan stepped forward. Teeka pulled back and showed her teeth. Tarzan was taken aback. In all his time with Teeka, she had never shown her teeth to him except during play; but today, she didn't seem playful at all. Tarzan ran his brown fingers through his thick, black hair, tilted his head to the side, and stared. Then he moved a little closer, straining his neck to get a better look at the thing Teeka was holding.
Again Teeka drew back her upper lip in a warning snarl. Tarzan reached forth a hand, cautiously, to touch the thing which Teeka held, and Teeka, with a hideous growl, turned suddenly upon him. Her teeth sank into the flesh of his forearm before the ape-man could snatch it away, and she pursued him for a short distance as he retreated incontinently through the trees; but Teeka, carrying her baby, could not overtake him. At a safe distance Tarzan stopped and turned to regard his erstwhile play-fellow in unconcealed astonishment. What had happened to so alter the gentle Teeka? She had so covered the thing in her arms that Tarzan had not yet been able to recognize it for what it was; but now, as she turned from the pursuit of him, he saw it. Through his pain and chagrin he smiled, for Tarzan had seen young ape mothers before. In a few days she would be less suspicious. Still Tarzan was hurt; it was not right that Teeka, of all others, should fear him. Why, not for the world would he harm her, or her balu, which is the ape word for baby.
Again, Teeka pulled back her upper lip in a warning snarl. Tarzan reached out a hand cautiously to touch the thing Teeka was holding, but with a fierce growl, she suddenly turned on him. Her teeth bit into the flesh of his forearm before the ape-man could pull away, and she chased him for a short distance as he hurriedly retreated through the trees; but Teeka, carrying her baby, couldn't catch up. At a safe distance, Tarzan stopped and turned to look at his former playmate in clear astonishment. What had happened to change gentle Teeka so much? She had covered the thing in her arms so completely that Tarzan hadn’t recognized it; but now, as she turned away from chasing him, he saw it. Despite his pain and frustration, he smiled, for Tarzan had seen young ape mothers before. In a few days, she would be less suspicious. Still, Tarzan was hurt; it wasn't right for Teeka, of all creatures, to fear him. He would never harm her or her balu, which is the ape word for baby.
And now, above the pain of his injured arm and the hurt to his pride, rose a still stronger desire to come close and inspect the new-born son of Taug. Possibly you will wonder that Tarzan of the Apes, mighty fighter that he was, should have fled before the irritable attack of a she, or that he should hesitate to return for the satisfaction of his curiosity when with ease he might have vanquished the weakened mother of the new-born cub; but you need not wonder. Were you an ape, you would know that only a bull in the throes of madness will turn upon a female other than to gently chastise her, with the occasional exception of the individual whom we find exemplified among our own kind, and who delights in beating up his better half because she happens to be smaller and weaker than he.
And now, despite the pain in his injured arm and the blow to his pride, there was an even stronger urge to get closer and take a look at Taug's newborn son. You might be surprised that Tarzan of the Apes, a powerful fighter, would back away from an angry female or hesitate to go back out of curiosity when he could have easily overpowered the weakened mother of the newborn cub. But you don’t need to be. If you were an ape, you'd understand that only a crazed male would attack a female, except to gently correct her, with the occasional exception of those among us who enjoy picking on their partners just because they happen to be smaller and weaker.
Tarzan again came toward the young mother—warily and with his line of retreat safely open. Again Teeka growled ferociously. Tarzan expostulated.
Tarzan cautiously approached the young mother, keeping an escape route clear. Once more, Teeka growled fiercely. Tarzan protested.
“Tarzan of the Apes will not harm Teeka’s balu,” he said. “Let me see it.”
“Tarzan of the Apes won't hurt Teeka’s baby,” he said. “Let me see it.”
“Go away!” commanded Teeka. “Go away, or I will kill you.”
“Get lost!” Teeka ordered. “Get lost, or I’ll kill you.”
“Let me see it,” urged Tarzan.
“Let me see it,” Tarzan insisted.
“Go away,” reiterated the she-ape. “Here comes Taug. He will make you go away. Taug will kill you. This is Taug’s balu.”
“Go away,” the female ape repeated. “Here comes Taug. He'll make you leave. Taug will kill you. This is Taug’s territory.”
A savage growl close behind him apprised Tarzan of the nearness of Taug, and the fact that the bull had heard the warnings and threats of his mate and was coming to her succor.
A fierce growl close behind him alerted Tarzan to Taug's presence and the fact that the bull had picked up on his mate's warnings and was rushing to her aid.
Now Taug, as well as Teeka, had been Tarzan’s play-fellow while the bull was still young enough to wish to play. Once Tarzan had saved Taug’s life; but the memory of an ape is not overlong, nor would gratitude rise above the parental instinct. Tarzan and Taug had once measured strength, and Tarzan had been victorious. That fact Taug could be depended upon still to remember; but even so, he might readily face another defeat for his first-born—if he chanced to be in the proper mood.
Now Taug, along with Teeka, had been Tarzan’s playmate when the bull was still young enough to want to play. Once, Tarzan had saved Taug’s life; however, the memory of an ape doesn’t last long, nor does gratitude outweigh the instinct to protect one’s young. Tarzan and Taug had once tested their strength, and Tarzan had won. Taug could still be counted on to remember that, but even so, he might easily accept another defeat for his first-born—if he happened to be in the right mood.
From his hideous growls, which now rose in strength and volume, he seemed to be in quite the mood. Now Tarzan felt no fear of Taug, nor did the unwritten law of the jungle demand that he should flee from battle with any male, unless he cared to from purely personal reasons. But Tarzan liked Taug. He had no grudge against him, and his man-mind told him what the mind of an ape would never have deduced—that Taug’s attitude in no sense indicated hatred. It was but the instinctive urge of the male to protect its offspring and its mate.
From his horrible growls, which now grew stronger and louder, he seemed to be in quite a mood. Tarzan felt no fear of Taug, and the unwritten rule of the jungle didn’t require him to back down from a fight with any male, unless he wanted to for personal reasons. But Tarzan liked Taug. He held no grudge against him, and his human reasoning told him what an ape would never understand—that Taug's behavior didn’t show hatred at all. It was just the instinctive drive of a male to protect its young and its mate.
Tarzan had no desire to battle with Taug, nor did the blood of his English ancestors relish the thought of flight, yet when the bull charged, Tarzan leaped nimbly to one side, and thus encouraged, Taug wheeled and rushed again madly to the attack. Perhaps the memory of a past defeat at Tarzan’s hands goaded him. Perhaps the fact that Teeka sat there watching him aroused a desire to vanquish the ape-man before her eyes, for in the breast of every jungle male lurks a vast egotism which finds expression in the performance of deeds of derring-do before an audience of the opposite sex.
Tarzan didn’t want to fight Taug, nor did his English ancestors’ blood enjoy the idea of fleeing. But when the bull charged, Tarzan quickly jumped to the side. This move encouraged Taug, who turned and charged again wildly. Maybe he was pushed by the memory of a past defeat against Tarzan. Maybe the fact that Teeka was watching sparked his desire to defeat the ape-man in front of her, because within every jungle male lies a huge ego that wants to show off with acts of bravery in front of the opposite sex.
At the ape-man’s side swung his long grass rope—the plaything of yesterday, the weapon of today—and as Taug charged the second time, Tarzan slipped the coils over his head and deftly shook out the sliding noose as he again nimbly eluded the ungainly beast. Before the ape could turn again, Tarzan had fled far aloft among the branches of the upper terrace.
At the ape-man's side swung his long grass rope—the toy of yesterday, the weapon of today—and as Taug charged a second time, Tarzan slipped the coils over his head and skillfully shook out the sliding noose as he nimbly dodged the clumsy beast again. Before the ape could turn around, Tarzan had escaped high up among the branches of the upper terrace.
Taug, now wrought to a frenzy of real rage, followed him. Teeka peered upward at them. It was difficult to say whether she was interested. Taug could not climb as rapidly as Tarzan, so the latter reached the high levels to which the heavy ape dared not follow before the former overtook him. There he halted and looked down upon his pursuer, making faces at him and calling him such choice names as occurred to the fertile man-brain. Then, when he had worked Taug to such a pitch of foaming rage that the great bull fairly danced upon the bending limb beneath him, Tarzan’s hand shot suddenly outward, a widening noose dropped swiftly through the air, there was a quick jerk as it settled about Taug, falling to his knees, a jerk that tightened it securely about the hairy legs of the anthropoid.
Taug, now consumed by a real rage, chased after him. Teeka looked up at them. It was hard to tell if she was actually interested. Taug couldn't climb as quickly as Tarzan, so the latter reached the higher levels that the heavy ape couldn't follow before Taug caught up to him. There, he stopped and looked down at his pursuer, making faces and calling him all sorts of colorful names that came to mind. Then, when he had pushed Taug to such a state of furious rage that the massive bull nearly danced on the bending branch beneath him, Tarzan's hand shot out suddenly, a widening noose dropped swiftly through the air, and with a quick tug, it settled around Taug, bringing him to his knees, a pull that tightened it securely around the hairy legs of the anthropoid.
Taug, slow of wit, realized too late the intention of his tormentor. He scrambled to escape, but the ape-man gave the rope a tremendous jerk that pulled Taug from his perch, and a moment later, growling hideously, the ape hung head downward thirty feet above the ground.
Taug, not the sharpest thinker, figured out his tormentor's plan too late. He tried to escape, but the ape-man yanked the rope hard, pulling Taug from his spot, and a moment later, growling menacingly, the ape dangled head down thirty feet above the ground.
Tarzan secured the rope to a stout limb and descended to a point close to Taug.
Tarzan tied the rope to a strong branch and climbed down to a spot near Taug.
“Taug,” he said, “you are as stupid as Buto, the rhinoceros. Now you may hang here until you get a little sense in your thick head. You may hang here and watch while I go and talk with Teeka.”
“Taug,” he said, “you’re as dumb as Buto, the rhinoceros. You can hang here until you get some sense into that thick head of yours. You can watch while I go and talk with Teeka.”
Taug blustered and threatened, but Tarzan only grinned at him as he dropped lightly to the lower levels. Here he again approached Teeka only to be again greeted with bared fangs and menacing growls. He sought to placate her; he urged his friendly intentions, and craned his neck to have a look at Teeka’s balu; but the she-ape was not to be persuaded that he meant other than harm to her little one. Her motherhood was still so new that reason was yet subservient to instinct.
Taug yelled and threatened, but Tarzan just smiled at him as he dropped down to the lower levels. There, he tried to get close to Teeka again, only to be met with bared teeth and threatening growls. He tried to calm her down; he insisted he meant well and stretched his neck to see Teeka’s baby, but the she-ape wasn’t convinced that he had anything but harm in mind for her little one. Her motherhood was still so fresh that instinct outweighed reason.
Realizing the futility of attempting to catch and chastise Tarzan, Teeka sought to escape him. She dropped to the ground and lumbered across the little clearing about which the apes of the tribe were disposed in rest or in the search of food, and presently Tarzan abandoned his attempts to persuade her to permit a close examination of the balu. The ape-man would have liked to handle the tiny thing. The very sight of it awakened in his breast a strange yearning. He wished to cuddle and fondle the grotesque little ape-thing. It was Teeka’s balu and Tarzan had once lavished his young affections upon Teeka.
Realizing it was pointless to try to catch and scold Tarzan, Teeka wanted to get away from him. She dropped to the ground and moved across the small clearing where the tribe's apes were resting or looking for food, and soon Tarzan stopped trying to convince her to let him examine the baby. The ape-man really wanted to hold the tiny creature. Just seeing it sparked a strange longing inside him. He wanted to cuddle and play with the odd little ape. It was Teeka’s baby, and Tarzan had once poured his youthful affection into Teeka.
But now his attention was diverted by the voice of Taug. The threats that had filled the ape’s mouth had turned to pleas. The tightening noose was stopping the circulation of the blood in his legs—he was beginning to suffer. Several apes sat near him highly interested in his predicament. They made uncomplimentary remarks about him, for each of them had felt the weight of Taug’s mighty hands and the strength of his great jaws. They were enjoying revenge.
But now he was distracted by Taug's voice. The threats that had come from the ape turned into pleas. The tightening noose was cutting off blood flow to his legs—he was starting to feel pain. Several apes nearby were very interested in his situation. They were making unflattering comments about him, since each one had experienced the force of Taug's powerful grip and the strength of his jaws. They were relishing their revenge.
Teeka, seeing that Tarzan had turned back toward the trees, had halted in the center of the clearing, and there she sat hugging her balu and casting suspicious glances here and there. With the coming of the balu, Teeka’s care-free world had suddenly become peopled with innumerable enemies. She saw an implacable foe in Tarzan, always heretofore her best friend. Even poor old Mumga, half blind and almost entirely toothless, searching patiently for grubworms beneath a fallen log, represented to her a malignant spirit thirsting for the blood of little balus.
Teeka, noticing that Tarzan had turned back toward the trees, stopped in the middle of the clearing, where she sat holding her balu and casting wary glances in every direction. With the arrival of the balu, Teeka’s once care-free life had suddenly been filled with countless enemies. She viewed Tarzan, who had always been her best friend, as a relentless foe. Even poor old Mumga, who was half-blind and nearly toothless, patiently searching for grubworms under a fallen log, seemed to her like a malicious spirit eager for the blood of little balus.
And while Teeka guarded suspiciously against harm, where there was no harm, she failed to note two baleful, yellow-green eyes staring fixedly at her from behind a clump of bushes at the opposite side of the clearing.
And while Teeka watched closely for danger where there was none, she didn’t notice two menacing yellow-green eyes watching her intently from behind a clump of bushes on the other side of the clearing.
Hollow from hunger, Sheeta, the panther, glared greedily at the tempting meat so close at hand, but the sight of the great bulls beyond gave him pause.
Hollow with hunger, Sheeta, the panther, stared hungrily at the delicious meat so close by, but seeing the massive bulls nearby made him hesitate.
Ah, if the she-ape with her balu would but come just a trifle nearer! A quick spring and he would be upon them and away again with his meat before the bulls could prevent.
Ah, if the female ape with her baby would just come a little closer! A quick leap and he would be on them and gone with his food before the bulls could stop him.
The tip of his tawny tail moved in spasmodic little jerks; his lower jaw hung low, exposing a red tongue and yellow fangs. But all this Teeka did not see, nor did any other of the apes who were feeding or resting about her. Nor did Tarzan or the apes in the trees.
The end of his brown tail twitched with sudden little movements; his lower jaw dropped, showing a red tongue and yellow teeth. But Teeka didn’t see any of this, nor did the other apes who were eating or lounging around her. Neither did Tarzan or the apes in the trees.
Hearing the abuse which the bulls were pouring upon the helpless Taug, Tarzan clambered quickly among them. One was edging closer and leaning far out in an effort to reach the dangling ape. He had worked himself into quite a fury through recollection of the last occasion upon which Taug had mauled him, and now he was bent upon revenge. Once he had grasped the swinging ape, he would quickly have drawn him within reach of his jaws. Tarzan saw and was wroth. He loved a fair fight, but the thing which this ape contemplated revolted him. Already a hairy hand had clutched the helpless Taug when, with an angry growl of protest, Tarzan leaped to the branch at the attacking ape’s side, and with a single mighty cuff, swept him from his perch.
Hearing the abuse the bulls were throwing at the helpless Taug, Tarzan quickly climbed among them. One was moving closer and leaning out far in an attempt to grab the hanging ape. He was worked up into quite a rage, remembering the last time Taug had hurt him, and now he was set on revenge. Once he caught the swinging ape, he would quickly pull him within reach of his jaws. Tarzan saw this and was furious. He enjoyed a fair fight, but what this ape had in mind sickened him. A hairy hand had already grabbed the helpless Taug when, with an angry growl of protest, Tarzan jumped to the branch next to the attacking ape and, with a single powerful hit, knocked him off his perch.
Surprised and enraged, the bull clutched madly for support as he toppled sidewise, and then with an agile movement succeeded in projecting himself toward another limb a few feet below. Here he found a hand-hold, quickly righted himself, and as quickly clambered upward to be revenged upon Tarzan, but the ape-man was otherwise engaged and did not wish to be interrupted. He was explaining again to Taug the depths of the latter’s abysmal ignorance, and pointing out how much greater and mightier was Tarzan of the Apes than Taug or any other ape.
Shocked and furious, the bull scrambled for something to hold onto as he fell sideways, and then with a quick move managed to propel himself down to another branch a few feet lower. He found a grip there, quickly got back on his feet, and just as quickly climbed up to get back at Tarzan. But the ape-man was busy with something else and didn’t want to be disturbed. He was once again explaining to Taug just how deep his ignorance was, and highlighting how much greater and stronger Tarzan of the Apes was compared to Taug or any other ape.
In the end he would release Taug, but not until Taug was fully acquainted with his own inferiority. And then the maddened bull came from beneath, and instantly Tarzan was transformed from a good-natured, teasing youth into a snarling, savage beast. Along his scalp the hair bristled; his upper lip drew back that his fighting fangs might be uncovered and ready. He did not wait for the bull to reach him, for something in the appearance or the voice of the attacker aroused within the ape-man a feeling of belligerent antagonism that would not be denied. With a scream that carried no human note, Tarzan leaped straight at the throat of the attacker.
In the end, he would let Taug go, but not until Taug fully understood his own inferiority. Then, the enraged bull came charging from below, and in an instant, Tarzan changed from a friendly, playful young man into a snarling, savage creature. His hair stood up on his scalp; his upper lip curled back to reveal his sharp fangs, ready for a fight. He didn’t wait for the bull to reach him because something about the attacker’s appearance or voice sparked a fierce antagonism within the ape-man that he couldn’t ignore. With a scream that had no human sound, Tarzan leaped straight at the attacker’s throat.
The impetuosity of this act and the weight and momentum of his body carried the bull backward, clutching and clawing for support, down through the leafy branches of the tree. For fifteen feet the two fell, Tarzan’s teeth buried in the jugular of his opponent, when a stout branch stopped their descent. The bull struck full upon the small of his back across the limb, hung there for a moment with the ape-man still upon his breast, and then toppled over toward the ground.
The rush of this move and the force of his body pushed the bull backward, struggling to find support, down through the leafy branches of the tree. They fell for fifteen feet, with Tarzan's teeth lodged in the bull's neck, until a thick branch halted their fall. The bull landed hard on his lower back across the branch, paused for a moment with the ape-man still on top of him, and then toppled over toward the ground.
Tarzan had felt the instantaneous relaxation of the body beneath him after the heavy impact with the tree limb, and as the other turned completely over and started again upon its fall toward the ground, he reached forth a hand and caught the branch in time to stay his own descent, while the ape dropped like a plummet to the foot of the tree.
Tarzan felt the body below him relax instantly after the hard hit with the tree branch, and as it flipped completely over and began falling again toward the ground, he reached out a hand and grabbed the branch just in time to stop his own fall, while the ape dropped straight down to the base of the tree.
Tarzan looked downward for a moment upon the still form of his late antagonist, then he rose to his full height, swelled his deep chest, smote upon it with his clenched fist and roared out the uncanny challenge of the victorious bull ape.
Tarzan looked down for a moment at the lifeless body of his recent opponent, then he stood tall, puffed out his chest, pounded it with his clenched fist, and let out the eerie challenge of the victorious bull ape.
Even Sheeta, the panther, crouched for a spring at the edge of the little clearing, moved uneasily as the mighty voice sent its weird cry reverberating through the jungle. To right and left, nervously, glanced Sheeta, as though assuring himself that the way of escape lay ready at hand.
Even Sheeta, the panther, crouched at the edge of the small clearing, shifting uneasily as the powerful voice let out a strange cry that echoed through the jungle. Sheeta glanced nervously to the right and left, as if reassuring himself that an escape route was close by.
“I am Tarzan of the Apes,” boasted the ape-man; “mighty hunter, mighty fighter! None in all the jungle so great as Tarzan.”
“I am Tarzan of the Apes,” the ape-man declared proudly; “a powerful hunter, a fierce fighter! No one in the entire jungle is as great as Tarzan.”
Then he made his way back in the direction of Taug. Teeka had watched the happenings in the tree. She had even placed her precious balu upon the soft grasses and come a little nearer that she might better witness all that was passing in the branches above her. In her heart of hearts did she still esteem the smooth-skinned Tarzan? Did her savage breast swell with pride as she witnessed his victory over the ape? You will have to ask Teeka.
Then he headed back toward Taug. Teeka had been watching what was happening in the tree. She had even set her precious balu down on the soft grass and moved a little closer so she could see everything going on in the branches above her. Deep down, did she still admire the smooth-skinned Tarzan? Did her wild heart swell with pride as she saw his victory over the ape? You'll have to ask Teeka.
And Sheeta, the panther, saw that the she-ape had left her cub alone among the grasses. He moved his tail again, as though this closest approximation of lashing in which he dared indulge might stimulate his momentarily waned courage. The cry of the victorious ape-man still held his nerves beneath its spell. It would be several minutes before he again could bring himself to the point of charging into view of the giant anthropoids.
And Sheeta, the panther, noticed that the female ape had left her baby alone in the grass. He flicked his tail again, as if this closest thing to lashing he could manage might boost his temporarily diminished courage. The victorious cry of the ape-man still had his nerves under its spell. It would be several minutes before he could gather the nerve to charge into sight of the giant humanoids.
And as he regathered his forces, Tarzan reached Taug’s side, and then clambering higher up to the point where the end of the grass rope was made fast, he unloosed it and lowered the ape slowly downward, swinging him in until the clutching hands fastened upon a limb.
And as he gathered his strength again, Tarzan reached Taug’s side, and then climbing higher to where the end of the grass rope was tied, he untied it and slowly lowered the ape down, swinging him until his grasping hands caught onto a branch.
Quickly Taug drew himself to a position of safety and shook off the noose. In his rage-maddened heart was no room for gratitude to the ape-man. He recalled only the fact that Tarzan had laid this painful indignity upon him. He would be revenged, but just at present his legs were so numb and his head so dizzy that he must postpone the gratification of his vengeance.
Quickly, Taug moved to a safe spot and shook off the noose. In his furious heart, there was no space for gratitude toward the ape-man. He only remembered that Tarzan had caused him this painful humiliation. He wanted revenge, but for now, his legs felt numb and his head was spinning, so he had to put off his plan for vengeance.
Tarzan was coiling his rope the while he lectured Taug on the futility of pitting his poor powers, physical and intellectual, against those of his betters. Teeka had come close beneath the tree and was peering upward. Sheeta was worming his way stealthily forward, his belly close to the ground. In another moment he would be clear of the underbrush and ready for the rapid charge and the quick retreat that would end the brief existence of Teeka’s balu.
Tarzan was coiling his rope while he lectured Taug on how pointless it was to compare his limited physical and mental abilities to those of others who were stronger. Teeka had come close to the tree and was looking up. Sheeta was sneaking forward, keeping his belly low to the ground. In a moment, he would be out of the underbrush and ready for the quick attack and fast escape that would end Teeka's little one.
Then Tarzan chanced to look up and across the clearing. Instantly his attitude of good-natured bantering and pompous boastfulness dropped from him. Silently and swiftly he shot downward toward the ground. Teeka, seeing him coming, and thinking that he was after her or her balu, bristled and prepared to fight. But Tarzan sped by her, and as he went, her eyes followed him and she saw the cause of his sudden descent and his rapid charge across the clearing. There in full sight now was Sheeta, the panther, stalking slowly toward the tiny, wriggling balu which lay among the grasses many yards away.
Then Tarzan happened to look up and across the clearing. Instantly, his playful teasing and overconfident bravado disappeared. Silently and quickly, he shot down toward the ground. Teeka, seeing him approach and thinking he was after her or her baby, bristled and got ready to fight. But Tarzan zoomed past her, and as he did, her eyes followed him, and she saw what had caused his sudden dive and rapid rush across the clearing. There, now fully visible, was Sheeta, the panther, slowly stalking toward the tiny, wriggling baby that lay among the grasses many yards away.
Teeka gave voice to a shrill scream of terror and of warning as she dashed after the ape-man. Sheeta saw Tarzan coming. He saw the she-ape’s cub before him, and he thought that this other was bent upon robbing him of his prey. With an angry growl, he charged.
Teeka let out a high-pitched scream of fear and alarm as she ran after the ape-man. Sheeta spotted Tarzan approaching. He noticed the she-ape’s cub ahead of him and believed that this other was trying to steal his catch. With an annoyed growl, he lunged forward.
Taug, warned by Teeka’s cry, came lumbering down to her assistance. Several other bulls, growling and barking, closed in toward the clearing, but they were all much farther from the balu and the panther than was Tarzan of the Apes, so it was that Sheeta and the ape-man reached Teeka’s little one almost simultaneously; and there they stood, one upon either side of it, baring their fangs and snarling at each other over the little creature.
Taug, alerted by Teeka's shout, came rushing down to help her. A few other bulls, growling and barking, moved closer to the clearing, but they were all much farther from the baby and the panther than Tarzan of the Apes was. So it happened that Sheeta and the ape-man reached Teeka's little one almost at the same time; and there they stood, one on either side of it, showing their teeth and snarling at each other over the tiny creature.
Sheeta was afraid to seize the balu, for thus he would give the ape-man an opening for attack; and for the same reason Tarzan hesitated to snatch the panther’s prey out of harm’s way, for had he stooped to accomplish this, the great beast would have been upon him in an instant. Thus they stood while Teeka came across the clearing, going more slowly as she neared the panther, for even her mother love could scarce overcome her instinctive terror of this natural enemy of her kind.
Sheeta was afraid to grab the balu because it would give the ape-man a chance to attack; for the same reason, Tarzan hesitated to take the panther’s prey out of danger, knowing that if he did, the huge beast would be on him in seconds. They remained still as Teeka approached the clearing, slowing down as she got closer to the panther, as even her maternal instincts could hardly overcome her natural fear of this enemy.
Behind her came Taug, warily and with many pauses and much bluster, and still behind him came other bulls, snarling ferociously and uttering their uncanny challenges. Sheeta’s yellow-green eyes glared terribly at Tarzan, and past Tarzan they shot brief glances at the apes of Kerchak advancing upon him. Discretion prompted him to turn and flee, but hunger and the close proximity of the tempting morsel in the grass before him urged him to remain. He reached forth a paw toward Teeka’s balu, and as he did so, with a savage guttural, Tarzan of the Apes was upon him.
Behind her came Taug, cautiously and with many stops and a lot of noise, and still behind him were other bulls, growling fiercely and making their strange threats. Sheeta’s yellow-green eyes glared ominously at Tarzan, and past Tarzan they shot quick looks at the apes of Kerchak moving toward him. Common sense urged him to turn and run, but hunger and the tempting morsel in the grass right in front of him made him hesitate. He reached out a paw toward Teeka’s young one, and just then, with a savage growl, Tarzan of the Apes was upon him.
The panther reared to meet the ape-man’s attack. He swung a frightful raking blow for Tarzan that would have wiped his face away had it landed, but it did not land, for Tarzan ducked beneath it and closed, his long knife ready in one strong hand—the knife of his dead father, of the father he never had known.
The panther stood up to face the ape-man's attack. It swung a terrifying blow at Tarzan that would have taken his face off if it had connected, but it didn't connect, because Tarzan ducked under it and moved in, his long knife poised in one strong hand—the knife of his deceased father, the father he never knew.
Instantly the balu was forgotten by Sheeta, the panther. He now thought only of tearing to ribbons with his powerful talons the flesh of his antagonist, of burying his long, yellow fangs in the soft, smooth hide of the ape-man, but Tarzan had fought before with clawed creatures of the jungle. Before now he had battled with fanged monsters, nor always had he come away unscathed. He knew the risk that he ran, but Tarzan of the Apes, inured to the sight of suffering and death, shrank from neither, for he feared neither.
Instantly, Sheeta the panther forgot about the balu. He now only thought of ripping apart his opponent with his powerful claws, sinking his long, yellow fangs into the soft, smooth skin of the ape-man. But Tarzan had fought clawed creatures of the jungle before. He had battled fanged monsters and hadn’t always come away unhurt. He knew the risks he faced, but Tarzan of the Apes, accustomed to seeing suffering and death, was afraid of neither.
The instant that he dodged beneath Sheeta’s blow, he leaped to the beast’s rear and then full upon the tawny back, burying his teeth in Sheeta’s neck and the fingers of one hand in the fur at the throat, and with the other hand he drove his blade into Sheeta’s side.
The moment he ducked under Sheeta's attack, he jumped onto the creature's back, sinking his teeth into Sheeta's neck while grabbing the fur at the throat with one hand. With his other hand, he plunged his knife into Sheeta's side.
Over and over upon the grass rolled Sheeta, growling and screaming, clawing and biting, in a mad effort to dislodge his antagonist or get some portion of his body within range of teeth or talons.
Over and over on the grass, Sheeta rolled, growling and screaming, clawing and biting, in a frenzied attempt to shake off his opponent or get a piece of his body within reach of his teeth or claws.
As Tarzan leaped to close quarters with the panther, Teeka had run quickly in and snatched up her balu. Now she sat upon a high branch, safe out of harm’s way, cuddling the little thing close to her hairy breast, the while her savage little eyes bored down upon the contestants in the clearing, and her ferocious voice urged Taug and the other bulls to leap into the melee.
As Tarzan jumped in close to the panther, Teeka quickly ran in and grabbed her balu. Now she was sitting on a high branch, safe from danger, holding the little one close to her furry chest, while her fierce little eyes watched the fight in the clearing, and her violent voice encouraged Taug and the other bulls to join the brawl.
Thus goaded the bulls came closer, redoubling their hideous clamor; but Sheeta was already sufficiently engaged—he did not even hear them. Once he succeeded in partially dislodging the ape-man from his back, so that Tarzan swung for an instant in front of those awful talons, and in the brief instant before he could regain his former hold, a raking blow from a hind paw laid open one leg from hip to knee.
Thus urged on, the bulls moved closer, intensifying their terrifying noise; but Sheeta was already too caught up in the moment—he didn’t even notice them. For a moment, he managed to partially shake the ape-man off his back, causing Tarzan to swing momentarily in front of those fearsome claws, and in the brief moment before he could get back his grip, a sharp strike from a back paw slashed open one leg from hip to knee.
It was the sight and smell of this blood, possibly, which wrought upon the encircling apes; but it was Taug who really was responsible for the thing they did.
It was the sight and smell of this blood, maybe, that affected the surrounding apes; but it was Taug who was truly responsible for what they did.
Taug, but a moment before filled with rage toward Tarzan of the Apes, stood close to the battling pair, his red-rimmed, wicked little eyes glaring at them. What was passing in his savage brain? Did he gloat over the unenviable position of his recent tormentor? Did he long to see Sheeta’s great fangs sink into the soft throat of the ape-man? Or did he realize the courageous unselfishness that had prompted Tarzan to rush to the rescue and imperil his life for Teeka’s balu—for Taug’s little balu? Is gratitude a possession of man only, or do the lower orders know it also?
Taug, just a moment ago filled with anger towards Tarzan of the Apes, stood close to the fighting pair, his red-rimmed, mischievous little eyes glaring at them. What was going through his savage mind? Did he take pleasure in the unfortunate situation of his recent tormentor? Did he want to see Sheeta’s sharp fangs sink into the soft throat of the ape-man? Or did he understand the brave selflessness that drove Tarzan to rush in and risk his life for Teeka’s baby—for Taug’s little baby? Is gratitude something only humans possess, or do animals feel it too?
With the spilling of Tarzan’s blood, Taug answered these questions. With all the weight of his great body he leaped, hideously growling, upon Sheeta. His long fighting fangs buried themselves in the white throat. His powerful arms beat and clawed at the soft fur until it flew upward in the jungle breeze.
With the spilling of Tarzan’s blood, Taug answered these questions. With all the weight of his massive body, he jumped, growling menacingly, onto Sheeta. His long fighting fangs sank into Sheeta's white throat. His strong arms struck and clawed at the soft fur until it flew upward in the jungle breeze.
And with Taug’s example before them the other bulls charged, burying Sheeta beneath rending fangs and filling all the forest with the wild din of their battle cries.
And with Taug’s example in front of them, the other bulls charged, overwhelming Sheeta beneath tearing teeth and filling the entire forest with the chaotic noise of their battle cries.
Ah! but it was a wondrous and inspiring sight—this battle of the primordial apes and the great, white ape-man with their ancestral foe, Sheeta, the panther.
Ah! But it was an astonishing and uplifting sight—this clash of the ancient apes and the massive, white ape-man against their ancestral enemy, Sheeta, the panther.
In frenzied excitement, Teeka fairly danced upon the limb which swayed beneath her great weight as she urged on the males of her people, and Thaka, and Mumga, and Kamma, with the other shes of the tribe of Kerchak, added their shrill cries or fierce barkings to the pandemonium which now reigned within the jungle.
In a frenzy of excitement, Teeka danced on the branch that swayed under her weight as she cheered on the men of her group. Thaka, Mumga, and Kamma, along with the other females of the Kerchak tribe, contributed their high-pitched shouts and loud barks to the chaos that filled the jungle.
Bitten and biting, tearing and torn, Sheeta battled for his life; but the odds were against him. Even Numa, the lion, would have hesitated to have attacked an equal number of the great bulls of the tribe of Kerchak, and now, a half mile away, hearing the sounds of the terrific battle, the king of beasts rose uneasily from his midday slumber and slunk off farther into the jungle.
Bitten and biting, tearing and torn, Sheeta fought for his life; but the odds were stacked against him. Even Numa, the lion, would have hesitated to attack an equal number of the powerful bulls from the tribe of Kerchak, and now, half a mile away, hearing the sounds of the intense battle, the king of beasts got up uneasily from his midday nap and crept further into the jungle.
Presently Sheeta’s torn and bloody body ceased its Titanic struggles. It stiffened spasmodically, twitched and was still, yet the bulls continued to lacerate it until the beautiful coat was torn to shreds. At last they desisted from sheer physical weariness, and then from the tangle of bloody bodies rose a crimson giant, straight as an arrow.
Currently, Sheeta’s torn and bloody body stopped its massive struggles. It stiffened, twitched, and then went still, but the bulls kept attacking it until the gorgeous coat was ripped to shreds. Finally, they stopped from sheer exhaustion, and from the pile of bloody bodies, a crimson giant emerged, straight as an arrow.
He placed a foot upon the dead body of the panther, and lifting his blood-stained face to the blue of the equatorial heavens, gave voice to the horrid victory cry of the bull ape.
He stepped on the lifeless body of the panther, and raising his blood-stained face to the blue of the equatorial sky, shouted the terrifying victory cry of the bull ape.
One by one his hairy fellows of the tribe of Kerchak followed his example. The shes came down from their perches of safety and struck and reviled the dead body of Sheeta. The young apes refought the battle in mimicry of their mighty elders.
One by one, his furry companions from the tribe of Kerchak followed his lead. The females came down from their safe spots and attacked and insulted Sheeta's lifeless body. The young apes reenacted the fight, imitating their powerful elders.
Teeka was quite close to Tarzan. He turned and saw her with the balu hugged close to her hairy breast, and put out his hands to take the little one, expecting that Teeka would bare her fangs and spring upon him; but instead she placed the balu in his arms, and coming nearer, licked his frightful wounds.
Teeka was very close to Tarzan. He turned and saw her with the baby clutched tight to her furry chest and reached out his hands to take the little one, expecting that Teeka would bare her teeth and leap at him; but instead, she placed the baby in his arms and came closer to lick his serious wounds.
And presently Taug, who had escaped with only a few scratches, came and squatted beside Tarzan and watched him as he played with the little balu, and at last he too leaned over and helped Teeka with the cleansing and the healing of the ape-man’s hurts.
And soon Taug, who had gotten away with just a few scratches, came and sat next to Tarzan, watching him as he played with the little balu. Eventually, he leaned over and helped Teeka with cleaning and healing the ape-man’s injuries.
CHAPTER IV
The God of Tarzan
Among the books of his dead father in the little cabin by the land-locked harbor, Tarzan of the Apes found many things to puzzle his young head. By much labor and through the medium of infinite patience as well, he had, without assistance, discovered the purpose of the little bugs which ran riot upon the printed pages. He had learned that in the many combinations in which he found them they spoke in a silent language, spoke in a strange tongue, spoke of wonderful things which a little ape-boy could not by any chance fully understand, arousing his curiosity, stimulating his imagination and filling his soul with a mighty longing for further knowledge.
Among the books of his deceased father in the little cabin by the sheltered harbor, Tarzan of the Apes found many things to intrigue his young mind. Through a lot of hard work and endless patience, he had, on his own, figured out the purpose of the tiny bugs that crawled all over the printed pages. He realized that in the various combinations he encountered, they spoke in a silent language, expressed in a strange way, conveying amazing things that a young ape-boy couldn’t possibly fully understand, sparking his curiosity, igniting his imagination, and filling his heart with a deep desire for more knowledge.
A dictionary had proven itself a wonderful storehouse of information, when, after several years of tireless endeavor, he had solved the mystery of its purpose and the manner of its use. He had learned to make a species of game out of it, following up the spoor of a new thought through the mazes of the many definitions which each new word required him to consult. It was like following a quarry through the jungle—it was hunting, and Tarzan of the Apes was an indefatigable huntsman.
A dictionary had shown itself to be an amazing source of information when, after several years of hard work, he finally figured out its purpose and how to use it. He had found a way to turn it into a game, tracking a new idea through the maze of definitions that each new word made him look up. It was like tracking prey through the jungle—it was hunting, and Tarzan of the Apes was an unrelenting hunter.
There were, of course, certain words which aroused his curiosity to a greater extent than others, words which, for one reason or another, excited his imagination. There was one, for example, the meaning of which was rather difficult to grasp. It was the word GOD. Tarzan first had been attracted to it by the fact that it was very short and that it commenced with a larger g-bug than those about it—a male g-bug it was to Tarzan, the lower-case letters being females. Another fact which attracted him to this word was the number of he-bugs which figured in its definition—Supreme Deity, Creator or Upholder of the Universe. This must be a very important word indeed, he would have to look into it, and he did, though it still baffled him after many months of thought and study.
There were definitely some words that piqued his curiosity more than others, words that, for one reason or another, sparked his imagination. One example was a word that was pretty hard to understand. It was the word GOD. Tarzan was first drawn to it because it was very short and started with a capital "G," which he thought was more prominent than the others around it—a male "g-bug," in his terms, with the lowercase letters being female. Another thing that caught his attention was the number of male bugs mentioned in its definition—Supreme Deity, Creator, or Upholder of the Universe. This had to be a really important word, so he decided to investigate it, and he did, although it still confused him after many months of thinking and studying.
However, Tarzan counted no time wasted which he devoted to these strange hunting expeditions into the game preserves of knowledge, for each word and each definition led on and on into strange places, into new worlds where, with increasing frequency, he met old, familiar faces. And always he added to his store of knowledge.
However, Tarzan considered any time spent on these unusual hunting trips into the realms of knowledge to be worthwhile, because every word and every definition took him deeper into unfamiliar territories, into new worlds where, with increasing regularity, he encountered old, familiar faces. And he always added to his collection of knowledge.
But of the meaning of GOD he was yet in doubt. Once he thought he had grasped it—that God was a mighty chieftain, king of all the Mangani. He was not quite sure, however, since that would mean that God was mightier than Tarzan—a point which Tarzan of the Apes, who acknowledged no equal in the jungle, was loath to concede.
But he was still uncertain about the meaning of GOD. At one point, he thought he understood it—that God was a powerful leader, the king of all the Mangani. However, he wasn't completely sure, since that would imply that God was stronger than Tarzan—a notion that Tarzan of the Apes, who recognized no equal in the jungle, was reluctant to accept.
But in all the books he had there was no picture of God, though he found much to confirm his belief that God was a great, an all-powerful individual. He saw pictures of places where God was worshiped; but never any sign of God. Finally he began to wonder if God were not of a different form than he, and at last he determined to set out in search of Him.
But in all the books he had, there was no picture of God, even though he found plenty to support his belief that God was a great and all-powerful being. He saw images of places where God was worshipped, but never any sign of God Himself. Eventually, he began to wonder if God might not be in a different form than his own, and finally, he decided to set out in search of Him.
He commenced by questioning Mumga, who was very old and had seen many strange things in her long life; but Mumga, being an ape, had a faculty for recalling the trivial. That time when Gunto mistook a sting-bug for an edible beetle had made more impression upon Mumga than all the innumerable manifestations of the greatness of God which she had witnessed, and which, of course, she had not understood.
He started by asking Mumga, who was very old and had experienced many strange things in her long life; but Mumga, being an ape, had a knack for remembering the trivial. That time when Gunto confused a sting-bug for an edible beetle had left a bigger mark on Mumga than all the countless displays of God's greatness that she had seen, which, of course, she had not understood.
Numgo, overhearing Tarzan’s questions, managed to wrest his attention long enough from the diversion of flea hunting to advance the theory that the power which made the lightning and the rain and the thunder came from Goro, the moon. He knew this, he said, because the Dum-Dum always was danced in the light of Goro. This reasoning, though entirely satisfactory to Numgo and Mumga, failed fully to convince Tarzan. However, it gave him a basis for further investigation along a new line. He would investigate the moon.
Numgo, hearing Tarzan's questions, managed to grab his attention away from flea hunting long enough to suggest that the power behind lightning, rain, and thunder came from Goro, the moon. He claimed to know this because the Dum-Dum was always danced in Goro's light. While this explanation was completely convincing to Numgo and Mumga, it didn't fully persuade Tarzan. However, it gave him a starting point for further exploration in a new direction. He decided to look into the moon.
That night he clambered to the loftiest pinnacle of the tallest jungle giant. The moon was full, a great, glorious, equatorial moon. The ape-man, upright upon a slender, swaying limb, raised his bronzed face to the silver orb. Now that he had clambered to the highest point within his reach, he discovered, to his surprise, that Goro was as far away as when he viewed him from the ground. He thought that Goro was attempting to elude him.
That night he climbed to the highest point of the tallest jungle tree. The moon was full, a brilliant, shining equatorial moon. The ape-man, standing on a thin, swaying branch, lifted his bronzed face to the silver orb. Now that he had reached the highest spot he could, he was surprised to find that Goro was just as far away as when he saw him from the ground. He thought Goro was trying to get away from him.
“Come, Goro!” he cried, “Tarzan of the Apes will not harm you!” But still the moon held aloof.
“Come on, Goro!” he shouted, “Tarzan of the Apes won't hurt you!” But the moon still stayed out of reach.
“Tell me,” he continued, “if you be the great king who sends Ara, the lightning; who makes the great noise and the mighty winds, and sends the waters down upon the jungle people when the days are dark and it is cold. Tell me, Goro, are you God!”
“Tell me,” he continued, “are you the great king who sends Ara, the lightning; who creates the loud noise and strong winds, and brings down the rain on the jungle people when the days are dark and cold? Tell me, Goro, are you God!”
Of course he did not pronounce God as you or I would pronounce His name, for Tarzan knew naught of the spoken language of his English forbears; but he had a name of his own invention for each of the little bugs which constituted the alphabet. Unlike the apes he was not satisfied merely to have a mental picture of the things he knew, he must have a word descriptive of each. In reading he grasped a word in its entirety; but when he spoke the words he had learned from the books of his father, he pronounced each according to the names he had given the various little bugs which occurred in it, usually giving the gender prefix for each.
Of course, he didn't say God the way you or I would pronounce His name, since Tarzan had no knowledge of the spoken language of his English ancestors. However, he created his own names for each of the little bugs that made up the alphabet. Unlike the apes, he wasn't content just to have a mental image of the things he knew; he needed a descriptive word for each one. When he read, he understood each word completely, but when he spoke the words he learned from his father's books, he pronounced them using the names he had assigned to the various little bugs in them, usually adding a gender prefix for each.
Thus it was an imposing word which Tarzan made of GOD. The masculine prefix of the apes is BU, the feminine MU; g Tarzan had named LA, o he pronounced TU, and d was MO. So the word God evolved itself into BULAMUTUMUMO, or, in English, he-g-she-o-she-d.
Thus it was an impressive word that Tarzan created for GOD. The masculine prefix of the apes is BU, the feminine MU; Tarzan had named LA, which he pronounced as TU, and d was MO. So the word God evolved into BULAMUTUMUMO, or, in English, he-g-she-o-she-d.
Similarly he had arrived at a strange and wonderful spelling of his own name. Tarzan is derived from the two ape words TAR and ZAN, meaning white skin. It was given him by his foster mother, Kala, the great she-ape. When Tarzan first put it into the written language of his own people he had not yet chanced upon either WHITE or SKIN in the dictionary; but in a primer he had seen the picture of a little white boy and so he wrote his name BUMUDE-MUTOMURO, or he-boy.
Similarly, he had created a unique and fascinating way to spell his own name. Tarzan comes from two ape words, TAR and ZAN, meaning white skin. His foster mother, Kala, the great she-ape, gave it to him. When Tarzan first wrote it down for his people, he hadn't yet come across either WHITE or SKIN in the dictionary; however, he had seen a picture of a little white boy in a primer, so he wrote his name as BUMUDE-MUTOMURO, which means he-boy.
To follow Tarzan’s strange system of spelling would be laborious as well as futile, and so we shall in the future, as we have in the past, adhere to the more familiar forms of our grammar school copybooks. It would tire you to remember that DO meant b, TU o, and RO y, and that to say he-boy you must prefix the ape masculine gender sound BU before the entire word and the feminine gender sound MU before each of the lower-case letters which go to make up boy—it would tire you and it would bring me to the nineteenth hole several strokes under par.
Following Tarzan's unusual spelling system would be both tedious and pointless, so from now on, just like in the past, we'll stick to the more familiar rules from our grammar school copybooks. It would be exhausting for you to remember that DO stands for b, TU for o, and RO for y, and to say he-boy you'd need to add the ape masculine sound BU before the whole word and the feminine sound MU before each lowercase letter that makes up boy—it would tire you out and leave me well under par at the nineteenth hole.
And so Tarzan harangued the moon, and when Goro did not reply, Tarzan of the Apes waxed wroth. He swelled his giant chest and bared his fighting fangs, and hurled into the teeth of the dead satellite the challenge of the bull ape.
And so Tarzan yelled at the moon, and when Goro didn't respond, Tarzan of the Apes got angry. He puffed out his huge chest and bared his fighting teeth, and he threw the challenge of the bull ape at the lifeless satellite.
“You are not Bulamutumumo,” he cried. “You are not king of the jungle folk. You are not so great as Tarzan, mighty fighter, mighty hunter. None there is so great as Tarzan. If there be a Bulamutumumo, Tarzan can kill him. Come down, Goro, great coward, and fight with Tarzan. Tarzan will kill you. I am Tarzan, the killer.”
“You're not Bulamutumumo,” he shouted. “You're not the king of the jungle people. You're not as great as Tarzan, the powerful fighter, the skilled hunter. No one is as great as Tarzan. If there is a Bulamutumumo, Tarzan can take him down. Come down, Goro, you big coward, and fight Tarzan. Tarzan will defeat you. I am Tarzan, the killer.”
But the moon made no answer to the boasting of the ape-man, and when a cloud came and obscured her face, Tarzan thought that Goro was indeed afraid, and was hiding from him, so he came down out of the trees and awoke Numgo and told him how great was Tarzan—how he had frightened Goro out of the sky and made him tremble. Tarzan spoke of the moon as HE, for all things large or awe inspiring are male to the ape folk.
But the moon didn’t respond to the ape-man’s bragging, and when a cloud covered her face, Tarzan thought that Goro was truly scared and hiding from him. So he climbed down from the trees, woke up Numgo, and told him how great Tarzan was—how he had scared Goro out of the sky and made him tremble. Tarzan referred to the moon as HE, because everything big or awe-inspiring is considered male by the ape people.
Numgo was not much impressed; but he was very sleepy, so he told Tarzan to go away and leave his betters alone.
Numgo wasn't really impressed; but he was very sleepy, so he told Tarzan to go away and leave the important people alone.
“But where shall I find God?” insisted Tarzan. “You are very old; if there is a God you must have seen Him. What does He look like? Where does He live?”
“But where will I find God?” Tarzan pressed. “You’re very old; if there is a God, you must have seen Him. What does He look like? Where does He live?”
“I am God,” replied Numgo. “Now sleep and disturb me no more.”
“I am God,” Numgo replied. “Now go to sleep and don’t bother me again.”
Tarzan looked at Numgo steadily for several minutes, his shapely head sank just a trifle between his great shoulders, his square chin shot forward and his short upper lip drew back, exposing his white teeth. Then, with a low growl he leaped upon the ape and buried his fangs in the other’s hairy shoulder, clutching the great neck in his mighty fingers. Twice he shook the old ape, then he released his tooth-hold.
Tarzan stared at Numgo for several minutes, his well-defined head slightly lowering between his broad shoulders. His square chin jutted out, and his short upper lip curled back, revealing his white teeth. Then, with a low growl, he jumped on the ape and sank his fangs into the other’s hairy shoulder, gripping the large neck with his powerful fingers. He shook the old ape twice before letting go of his bite.
“Are you God?” he demanded.
“Are you God?” he asked.
“No,” wailed Numgo. “I am only a poor, old ape. Leave me alone. Go ask the Gomangani where God is. They are hairless like yourself and very wise, too. They should know.”
“No,” cried Numgo. “I’m just a poor, old ape. Leave me alone. Go ask the Gomangani where God is. They’re hairless like you and very wise, too. They should know.”
Tarzan released Numgo and turned away. The suggestion that he consult the blacks appealed to him, and though his relations with the people of Mbonga, the chief, were the antithesis of friendly, he could at least spy upon his hated enemies and discover if they had intercourse with God.
Tarzan let Numgo go and turned away. The idea of consulting the locals intrigued him, and even though his interactions with Mbonga, the chief, were anything but friendly, he could at least keep an eye on his hated enemies and find out if they had any connection with God.
So it was that Tarzan set forth through the trees toward the village of the blacks, all excitement at the prospect of discovering the Supreme Being, the Creator of all things. As he traveled he reviewed, mentally, his armament—the condition of his hunting knife, the number of his arrows, the newness of the gut which strung his bow—he hefted the war spear which had once been the pride of some black warrior of Mbonga’s tribe.
So, Tarzan set off through the trees toward the village of the black people, excited about the chance to discover the Supreme Being, the Creator of everything. As he traveled, he mentally went over his gear—the state of his hunting knife, the number of arrows he had, and the freshness of the gut stringing his bow—he lifted the war spear that had once been the pride of a black warrior from Mbonga’s tribe.
If he met God, Tarzan would be prepared. One could never tell whether a grass rope, a war spear, or a poisoned arrow would be most efficacious against an unfamiliar foe. Tarzan of the Apes was quite content—if God wished to fight, the ape-man had no doubt as to the outcome of the struggle. There were many questions Tarzan wished to put to the Creator of the Universe and so he hoped that God would not prove a belligerent God; but his experience of life and the ways of living things had taught him that any creature with the means for offense and defense was quite likely to provoke attack if in the proper mood.
If he ever met God, Tarzan would be ready. You never know if a grass rope, a spear, or a poisoned arrow would work best against an unknown enemy. Tarzan of the Apes felt confident—if God wanted to fight, he had no doubt about who would win. There were many questions Tarzan wanted to ask the Creator of the Universe, and he hoped that God wouldn't be hostile; but his life experiences and understanding of living things had taught him that any creature capable of attacking or defending could easily start a conflict if the mood was right.
It was dark when Tarzan came to the village of Mbonga. As silently as the silent shadows of the night he sought his accustomed place among the branches of the great tree which overhung the palisade. Below him, in the village street, he saw men and women. The men were hideously painted—more hideously than usual. Among them moved a weird and grotesque figure, a tall figure that went upon the two legs of a man and yet had the head of a buffalo. A tail dangled to his ankles behind him, and in one hand he carried a zebra’s tail while the other clutched a bunch of small arrows.
It was dark when Tarzan arrived at the village of Mbonga. Quietly, like the shadows of the night, he climbed to his usual spot among the branches of the large tree that hung over the fence. Below him, in the village street, he saw men and women. The men were painted in a terrifying way—more frightening than usual. Among them was a strange and bizarre figure, a tall being that walked on two legs like a man but had the head of a buffalo. A tail hung down to his ankles behind him, and in one hand, he held a zebra's tail while the other clutched a handful of small arrows.
Tarzan was electrified. Could it be that chance had given him thus early an opportunity to look upon God? Surely this thing was neither man nor beast, so what could it be then other than the Creator of the Universe! The ape-man watched the every move of the strange creature. He saw the black men and women fall back at its approach as though they stood in terror of its mysterious powers.
Tarzan was electrified. Could it be that fate had given him, so early on, a chance to see God? Surely this creature was neither man nor beast, so what else could it be but the Creator of the Universe! The ape-man observed every move of the strange being. He noticed the black men and women retreating at its approach, as if they were terrified of its mysterious powers.
Presently he discovered that the deity was speaking and that all listened in silence to his words. Tarzan was sure that none other than God could inspire such awe in the hearts of the Gomangani, or stop their mouths so effectually without recourse to arrows or spears. Tarzan had come to look with contempt upon the blacks, principally because of their garrulity. The small apes talked a great deal and ran away from an enemy. The big, old bulls of Kerchak talked but little and fought upon the slightest provocation. Numa, the lion, was not given to loquacity, yet of all the jungle folk there were few who fought more often than he.
Right now, he realized that the deity was speaking and everyone was listening quietly to his words. Tarzan was certain that only God could inspire such awe in the hearts of the Gomangani or silence them so completely without using arrows or spears. Tarzan had come to despise the blacks mainly due to their excessive chatter. The small apes talked a lot and fled from danger. The big, old bulls of Kerchak said little and fought at the slightest provocation. Numa, the lion, wasn’t one to talk much, yet among all the jungle creatures, few fought more often than he did.
Tarzan witnessed strange things that night, none of which he understood, and, perhaps because they were strange, he thought that they must have to do with the God he could not understand. He saw three youths receive their first war spears in a weird ceremony which the grotesque witch-doctor strove successfully to render uncanny and awesome.
Tarzan saw bizarre things that night, none of which he understood, and maybe because they were strange, he thought they must relate to the God he couldn't grasp. He watched three young men receive their first war spears in a strange ceremony that the bizarre witch-doctor worked hard to make eerie and impressive.
Hugely interested, he watched the slashing of the three brown arms and the exchange of blood with Mbonga, the chief, in the rites of the ceremony of blood brotherhood. He saw the zebra’s tail dipped into a caldron of water above which the witch-doctor had made magical passes the while he danced and leaped about it, and he saw the breasts and foreheads of each of the three novitiates sprinkled with the charmed liquid. Could the ape-man have known the purpose of this act, that it was intended to render the recipient invulnerable to the attacks of his enemies and fearless in the face of any danger, he would doubtless have leaped into the village street and appropriated the zebra’s tail and a portion of the contents of the caldron.
Hugely interested, he watched as the three brown arms were slashed and blood was exchanged with Mbonga, the chief, during the ceremony of blood brotherhood. He saw the zebra’s tail being dipped into a caldron of water while the witch-doctor danced and made magical gestures around it, and he watched as the breasts and foreheads of each of the three initiates were sprinkled with the enchanted liquid. If the ape-man had understood the purpose of this act—that it was meant to make the recipient invulnerable to attacks from enemies and fearless in the face of danger—he would have definitely jumped into the village street and taken the zebra’s tail along with some of the contents of the caldron.
But he did not know, and so he only wondered, not alone at what he saw but at the strange sensations which played up and down his naked spine, sensations induced, doubtless, by the same hypnotic influence which held the black spectators in tense awe upon the verge of a hysteric upheaval.
But he didn’t know, so he just wondered, not only about what he saw but also about the strange feelings that raced up and down his bare spine, feelings probably caused by the same hypnotic effect that kept the black spectators in tense awe, on the brink of an emotional explosion.
The longer Tarzan watched, the more convinced he became that his eyes were upon God, and with the conviction came determination to have word with the deity. With Tarzan of the Apes, to think was to act.
The longer Tarzan watched, the more convinced he became that he was looking at God, and with that belief came the determination to speak with the deity. For Tarzan of the Apes, thinking meant acting.
The people of Mbonga were keyed to the highest pitch of hysterical excitement. They needed little to release the accumulated pressure of static nerve force which the terrorizing mummery of the witch-doctor had induced.
The people of Mbonga were at the peak of hysterical excitement. They needed very little to let loose the built-up tension from the frightening antics of the witch-doctor.
A lion roared, suddenly and loud, close without the palisade. The blacks started nervously, dropping into utter silence as they listened for a repetition of that all-too-familiar and always terrorizing voice. Even the witch-doctor paused in the midst of an intricate step, remaining momentarily rigid and statuesque as he plumbed his cunning mind for a suggestion as how best he might take advantage of the condition of his audience and the timely interruption.
A lion roared, suddenly and loudly, close to the fence. The people jumped nervously, falling into complete silence as they listened for that all-too-familiar and always terrifying sound. Even the witch-doctor paused in the middle of an intricate step, staying still and rigid as he considered how best to take advantage of his audience's state and the unexpected interruption.
Already the evening had been vastly profitable to him. There would be three goats for the initiation of the three youths into full-fledged warriorship, and besides these he had received several gifts of grain and beads, together with a piece of copper wire from admiring and terrified members of his audience.
Already the evening had been very rewarding for him. He would have three goats for the initiation of the three young men into full-fledged warriorship, and on top of that, he had received several gifts of grain and beads, along with a piece of copper wire from the amazed and frightened members of his audience.
Numa’s roar still reverberated along taut nerves when a woman’s laugh, shrill and piercing, shattered the silence of the village. It was this moment that Tarzan chose to drop lightly from his tree into the village street. Fearless among his blood enemies he stood, taller by a full head than many of Mbonga’s warriors, straight as their straightest arrow, muscled like Numa, the lion.
Numa's roar still echoed in his veins when a woman's laugh, sharp and piercing, broke the quiet of the village. It was at this moment that Tarzan decided to drop down gracefully from his tree into the village street. Fearless among his enemies, he stood taller by a whole head than many of Mbonga's warriors, as straight as their best arrow, muscled like Numa, the lion.
For a moment Tarzan stood looking straight at the witch-doctor. Every eye was upon him, yet no one had moved—a paralysis of terror held them, to be broken a moment later as the ape-man, with a toss of head, stepped straight toward the hideous figure beneath the buffalo head.
For a moment, Tarzan stood staring directly at the witch-doctor. Everyone was watching him, but no one moved—an intense fear had frozen them in place, only to be shattered moments later when the ape-man, shaking his head, walked straight toward the grotesque figure beneath the buffalo head.
Then the nerves of the blacks could stand no more. For months the terror of the strange, white, jungle god had been upon them. Their arrows had been stolen from the very center of the village; their warriors had been silently slain upon the jungle trails and their dead bodies dropped mysteriously and by night into the village street as from the heavens above.
Then the nerves of the Black community couldn't take it any longer. For months, the fear of the strange, white jungle god had weighed heavily on them. Their arrows had been taken right from the heart of the village; their warriors had been quietly killed along the jungle paths, and their bodies mysteriously appeared at night in the village street, as if they had fallen from the sky.
One or two there were who had glimpsed the strange figure of the new demon and it was from their oft-repeated descriptions that the entire village now recognized Tarzan as the author of many of their ills. Upon another occasion and by daylight, the warriors would doubtless have leaped to attack him, but at night, and this night of all others, when they were wrought to such a pitch of nervous dread by the uncanny artistry of their witch-doctor, they were helpless with terror. As one man they turned and fled, scattering for their huts, as Tarzan advanced. For a moment one and one only held his ground. It was the witch-doctor. More than half self-hypnotized into a belief in his own charlatanry he faced this new demon who threatened to undermine his ancient and lucrative profession.
One or two people had caught a glimpse of the strange figure of the new demon, and it was from their repeated descriptions that the whole village now recognized Tarzan as the source of many of their troubles. On another occasion, in broad daylight, the warriors would have surely rushed to attack him, but at night, especially on this night, when they were filled with an overwhelming sense of dread from the eerie performance of their witch-doctor, they were paralyzed with fear. As if acting as one, they turned and ran, scattering to their huts as Tarzan approached. For a moment, one person stood his ground. It was the witch-doctor. More than half-convinced of his own deception, he faced this new demon who threatened to topple his old and profitable role.
“Are you God?” asked Tarzan.
“Are you God?” Tarzan asked.
The witch-doctor, having no idea of the meaning of the other’s words, danced a few strange steps, leaped high in the air, turning completely around and alighting in a stooping posture with feet far outspread and head thrust out toward the ape-man. Thus he remained for an instant before he uttered a loud “Boo!” which was evidently intended to frighten Tarzan away; but in reality had no such effect.
The witch doctor, not understanding what the other person was saying, performed some odd dance moves, jumped into the air, spun around completely, and landed in a crouched position with his feet spread wide and his head jutted out towards the ape-man. He stayed like that for a moment before shouting a loud “Boo!” which was clearly meant to scare Tarzan off; however, it had no effect whatsoever.
Tarzan did not pause. He had set out to approach and examine God and nothing upon earth might now stay his feet. Seeing that his antics had no potency with the visitor, the witch-doctor tried some new medicine. Spitting upon the zebra’s tail, which he still clutched in one hand, he made circles above it with the arrows in the other hand, meanwhile backing cautiously away from Tarzan and speaking confidentially to the bushy end of the tail.
Tarzan didn’t stop. He was determined to get closer and understand God, and nothing on earth could hold him back now. Realizing his tricks had no effect on the visitor, the witch-doctor tried a different approach. He spat on the zebra’s tail, which he was still holding in one hand, and made circles above it with the arrows in his other hand, carefully backing away from Tarzan while whispering to the bushy end of the tail.
This medicine must be short medicine, however, for the creature, god or demon, was steadily closing up the distance which had separated them. The circles therefore were few and rapid, and when they were completed, the witch-doctor struck an attitude which was intended to be awe inspiring and waving the zebra’s tail before him, drew an imaginary line between himself and Tarzan.
This medicine must be quick-acting, though, because the creature, whether god or demon, was rapidly closing the gap between them. The circles were therefore few and swift, and when they were finished, the witch-doctor struck a pose meant to inspire awe and, waving the zebra’s tail before him, drew an imaginary line between himself and Tarzan.
“Beyond this line you cannot pass, for my medicine is strong medicine,” he cried. “Stop, or you will fall dead as your foot touches this spot. My mother was a voodoo, my father was a snake; I live upon lions’ hearts and the entrails of the panther; I eat young babies for breakfast and the demons of the jungle are my slaves. I am the most powerful witch-doctor in the world; I fear nothing, for I cannot die. I—” But he got no further; instead he turned and fled as Tarzan of the Apes crossed the magical dead line and still lived.
“Beyond this line, you can’t go, because my medicine is really strong,” he shouted. “Stop, or you’ll drop dead the moment your foot touches this spot. My mom was a voodoo priestess, my dad was a snake; I survive on lion hearts and panther guts; I have young babies for breakfast, and the jungle demons are my servants. I’m the most powerful witch doctor in the world; I fear nothing because I can’t die. I—” But he didn’t get any further; instead, he turned and ran as Tarzan of the Apes crossed the magical dead line and still lived.
As the witch-doctor ran, Tarzan almost lost his temper. This was no way for God to act, at least not in accordance with the conception Tarzan had come to have of God.
As the witch-doctor ran, Tarzan nearly lost his cool. This wasn't how God should behave, at least not according to the idea of God that Tarzan had formed.
“Come back!” he cried. “Come back, God, I will not harm you.” But the witch-doctor was in full retreat by this time, stepping high as he leaped over cooking pots and the smoldering embers of small fires that had burned before the huts of villagers. Straight for his own hut ran the witch-doctor, terror-spurred to unwonted speed; but futile was his effort—the ape-man bore down upon him with the speed of Bara, the deer.
“Come back!” he shouted. “Come back, God, I won’t hurt you.” But the witch-doctor was already fleeing, jumping high as he leaped over cooking pots and the smoldering remnants of small fires that had burned in front of the villagers' huts. He ran straight for his own hut, driven by fear to run faster than usual; but his attempt was useless—the ape-man charged at him with the speed of Bara, the deer.
Just at the entrance to his hut the witch-doctor was overhauled. A heavy hand fell upon his shoulder to drag him back. It seized upon a portion of the buffalo hide, dragging the disguise from him. It was a naked black man that Tarzan saw dodge into the darkness of the hut’s interior.
Just as he was entering his hut, the witch-doctor was caught. A strong hand landed on his shoulder, pulling him back. It grabbed part of the buffalo hide, pulling the disguise off him. It was a naked Black man that Tarzan saw slip into the darkness of the hut’s interior.
So this was what he had thought was God! Tarzan’s lip curled in an angry snarl as he leaped into the hut after the terror-stricken witch-doctor. In the blackness within he found the man huddled at the far side and dragged him forth into the comparative lightness of the moonlit night.
So this was what he had thought was God! Tarzan’s lip twisted in an angry snarl as he jumped into the hut after the terrified witch-doctor. In the darkness inside, he found the man huddled at the far side and pulled him out into the relative brightness of the moonlit night.
The witch-doctor bit and scratched in an attempt to escape; but a few cuffs across the head brought him to a better realization of the futility of resistance. Beneath the moon Tarzan held the cringing figure upon its shaking feet.
The witch-doctor bit and scratched to try to get away, but a few hits to the head made him realize that resisting was pointless. Under the moon, Tarzan kept the trembling figure on its unsteady feet.
“So you are God!” he cried. “If you be God, then Tarzan is greater than God,” and so the ape-man thought. “I am Tarzan,” he shouted into the ear of the black. “In all the jungle, or above it, or upon the running waters, or the sleeping waters, or upon the big water, or the little water, there is none so great as Tarzan. Tarzan is greater than the Mangani; he is greater than the Gomangani. With his own hands he has slain Numa, the lion, and Sheeta, the panther; there is none so great as Tarzan. Tarzan is greater than God. See!” and with a sudden wrench he twisted the black’s neck until the fellow shrieked in pain and then slumped to the earth in a swoon.
“So you are God!” he shouted. “If you are God, then Tarzan is greater than God,” and that's what the ape-man believed. “I am Tarzan,” he yelled into the black man's ear. “In all the jungle, above it, across the running waters, or the still waters, or the big water, or the little water, there is no one as great as Tarzan. Tarzan is greater than the Mangani; he is greater than the Gomangani. He has killed Numa, the lion, and Sheeta, the panther, with his own hands; there is no one as great as Tarzan. Tarzan is greater than God. Look!” and with a sudden twist, he turned the black man’s neck until he screamed in pain and then collapsed to the ground, unconscious.
Placing his foot upon the neck of the fallen witch-doctor, the ape-man raised his face to the moon and uttered the long, shrill scream of the victorious bull ape. Then he stooped and snatched the zebra’s tail from the nerveless fingers of the unconscious man and without a backward glance retraced his footsteps across the village.
Placing his foot on the neck of the fallen witch-doctor, the ape-man lifted his face to the moon and let out a long, piercing scream of triumph like a victorious bull ape. Then he bent down and grabbed the zebra's tail from the limp fingers of the unconscious man and, without looking back, retraced his steps across the village.
From several hut doorways frightened eyes watched him. Mbonga, the chief, was one of those who had seen what passed before the hut of the witch-doctor. Mbonga was greatly concerned. Wise old patriarch that he was, he never had more than half believed in witch-doctors, at least not since greater wisdom had come with age; but as a chief he was well convinced of the power of the witch-doctor as an arm of government, and often it was that Mbonga used the superstitious fears of his people to his own ends through the medium of the medicine-man.
From several hut doorways, frightened eyes watched him. Mbonga, the chief, was one of those who had seen what happened in front of the witch-doctor's hut. Mbonga was deeply worried. As a wise old leader, he had never fully believed in witch-doctors, at least not since he gained more wisdom with age; but as a chief, he was very aware of the witch-doctor's influence as part of the government, and he often used the superstitious fears of his people to his advantage through the medicine-man.
Mbonga and the witch-doctor had worked together and divided the spoils, and now the “face” of the witch-doctor would be lost forever if any saw what Mbonga had seen; nor would this generation again have as much faith in any future witch-doctor.
Mbonga and the witch doctor had teamed up and shared the rewards, and now the witch doctor's reputation would be ruined forever if anyone found out what Mbonga had discovered; nor would this generation ever trust another witch doctor as much again.
Mbonga must do something to counteract the evil influence of the forest demon’s victory over the witch-doctor. He raised his heavy spear and crept silently from his hut in the wake of the retreating ape-man. Down the village street walked Tarzan, as unconcerned and as deliberate as though only the friendly apes of Kerchak surrounded him instead of a village full of armed enemies.
Mbonga needs to do something to counter the evil effect of the forest demon’s win over the witch doctor. He lifted his heavy spear and quietly slipped out of his hut, following the retreating ape-man. Tarzan walked down the village street, as calm and intentional as if he were surrounded only by the friendly apes of Kerchak instead of a village full of armed foes.
Seeming only was the indifference of Tarzan, for alert and watchful was every well-trained sense. Mbonga, wily stalker of keen-eared jungle creatures, moved now in utter silence. Not even Bara, the deer, with his great ears could have guessed from any sound that Mbonga was near; but the black was not stalking Bara; he was stalking man, and so he sought only to avoid noise.
Tarzan's indifference was just for show; every one of his well-trained senses was alert and on guard. Mbonga, a cunning hunter of the sharp-eared jungle animals, moved now in complete silence. Not even Bara, the deer, with his large ears, could have sensed that Mbonga was nearby; but the hunter wasn’t after Bara; he was hunting man, so he aimed to make no noise at all.
Closer and closer to the slowly moving ape-man he came. Now he raised his war spear, throwing his spear-hand far back above his right shoulder. Once and for all would Mbonga, the chief, rid himself and his people of the menace of this terrifying enemy. He would make no poor cast; he would take pains, and he would hurl his weapon with such great force as would finish the demon forever.
Closer and closer he approached the slowly moving ape-man. Now he lifted his war spear, pulling his throwing arm back over his right shoulder. Once and for all, Mbonga, the chief, would free himself and his people from the threat of this terrifying enemy. He wouldn’t make a weak throw; he would focus, and he would launch his weapon with such great force that it would finish the demon for good.
But Mbonga, sure as he thought himself, erred in his calculations. He might believe that he was stalking a man—he did not know, however, that it was a man with the delicate sense perception of the lower orders. Tarzan, when he had turned his back upon his enemies, had noted what Mbonga never would have thought of considering in the hunting of man—the wind. It was blowing in the same direction that Tarzan was proceeding, carrying to his delicate nostrils the odors which arose behind him. Thus it was that Tarzan knew that he was being followed, for even among the many stenches of an African village, the ape-man’s uncanny faculty was equal to the task of differentiating one stench from another and locating with remarkable precision the source from whence it came.
But Mbonga, confident as he was, made a mistake in his calculations. He might think he was tracking a man—he didn’t realize, though, that it was a man with the keen sensory perception of the lower orders. Tarzan, when he had turned his back on his enemies, had paid attention to what Mbonga wouldn’t have considered in hunting a man—the wind. It was blowing in the same direction that Tarzan was moving, carrying the scents rising from behind him to his sensitive nostrils. This is how Tarzan knew he was being followed, for even among the many odors of an African village, the ape-man’s extraordinary ability allowed him to distinguish one smell from another and pinpoint with remarkable accuracy where it was coming from.
He knew that a man was following him and coming closer, and his judgment warned him of the purpose of the stalker. When Mbonga, therefore, came within spear range of the ape-man, the latter suddenly wheeled upon him, so suddenly that the poised spear was shot a fraction of a second before Mbonga had intended. It went a trifle high and Tarzan stooped to let it pass over his head; then he sprang toward the chief. But Mbonga did not wait to receive him. Instead, he turned and fled for the dark doorway of the nearest hut, calling as he went for his warriors to fall upon the stranger and slay him.
He realized that someone was following him and getting closer, and his instincts warned him about the stalker's intentions. So when Mbonga got within throwing distance of the ape-man, Tarzan suddenly turned to face him, so quickly that Mbonga released his spear just a fraction of a second earlier than he planned. The throw went a bit high, and Tarzan ducked to let it sail over his head; then he lunged toward the chief. But Mbonga didn’t stay to confront him. Instead, he turned and ran toward the dark entrance of the nearest hut, shouting for his warriors to attack the stranger and kill him.
Well indeed might Mbonga scream for help, for Tarzan, young and fleet-footed, covered the distance between them in great leaps, at the speed of a charging lion. He was growling, too, not at all unlike Numa himself. Mbonga heard and his blood ran cold. He could feel the wool stiffen upon his pate and a prickly chill run up his spine, as though Death had come and run his cold finger along Mbonga’s back.
Well, Mbonga had every reason to scream for help, because Tarzan, young and quick, closed the gap between them in massive leaps, as fast as a charging lion. He was growling too, sounding just like Numa himself. Mbonga heard this, and his blood ran cold. He felt the hair on his head stiffen and a prickly chill run up his spine, as if Death had come and dragged his cold finger along Mbonga’s back.
Others heard, too, and saw, from the darkness of their huts—bold warriors, hideously painted, grasping heavy war spears in nerveless fingers. Against Numa, the lion, they would have charged fearlessly. Against many times their own number of black warriors would they have raced to the protection of their chief; but this weird jungle demon filled them with terror. There was nothing human in the bestial growls that rumbled up from his deep chest; there was nothing human in the bared fangs, or the catlike leaps. Mbonga’s warriors were terrified—too terrified to leave the seeming security of their huts while they watched the beast-man spring full upon the back of their old chieftain.
Others heard and saw from the darkness of their huts—bold warriors, hideously painted, gripping heavy war spears in unsteady hands. They would have charged fearlessly at Numa, the lion. They would have raced to protect their chief against many more black warriors than themselves; but this strange jungle demon filled them with dread. There was nothing human in the beastly growls that came from his deep chest; there was nothing human in his bared fangs or his catlike leaps. Mbonga’s warriors were terrified—too terrified to leave the relative safety of their huts as they watched the beast-man leap onto the back of their old chieftain.
Mbonga went down with a scream of terror. He was too frightened even to attempt to defend himself. He just lay beneath his antagonist in a paralysis of fear, screaming at the top of his lungs. Tarzan half rose and kneeled above the black. He turned Mbonga over and looked him in the face, exposing the man’s throat, then he drew his long, keen knife, the knife that John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, had brought from England many years before. He raised it close above Mbonga’s neck. The old black whimpered with terror. He pleaded for his life in a tongue which Tarzan could not understand.
Mbonga fell down with a scream of fear. He was too scared to even try to defend himself. He just lay there under his opponent, frozen in terror, screaming at the top of his lungs. Tarzan knelt above the black man. He turned Mbonga over and looked him in the face, exposing the man's throat, then he pulled out his long, sharp knife, the knife that John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, had brought from England many years ago. He raised it close above Mbonga’s neck. The old man whimpered in fear. He begged for his life in a language that Tarzan couldn’t understand.
For the first time the ape-man had a close view of the chief. He saw an old man, a very old man with scrawny neck and wrinkled face—a dried, parchment-like face which resembled some of the little monkeys Tarzan knew so well. He saw the terror in the man’s eyes—never before had Tarzan seen such terror in the eyes of any animal, or such a piteous appeal for mercy upon the face of any creature.
For the first time, the ape-man got a close look at the chief. He saw an old man, a really old man with a thin neck and a wrinkled face—a dry, parchment-like face that reminded him of some of the little monkeys Tarzan knew so well. He noticed the fear in the man’s eyes—Tarzan had never seen such fear in any animal's eyes, or such a desperate plea for mercy on the face of any creature.
Something stayed the ape-man’s hand for an instant. He wondered why it was that he hesitated to make the kill; never before had he thus delayed. The old man seemed to wither and shrink to a bag of puny bones beneath his eyes. So weak and helpless and terror-stricken he appeared that the ape-man was filled with a great contempt; but another sensation also claimed him—something new to Tarzan of the Apes in relation to an enemy. It was pity—pity for a poor, frightened, old man.
Something stopped the ape-man’s hand for a moment. He wondered why he was hesitating to make the kill; he had never delayed like this before. The old man seemed to wither and shrink into a weak bag of bones under his gaze. So frail, helpless, and terrified he looked that the ape-man felt a strong contempt; but another feeling also took hold of him—something new for Tarzan of the Apes when facing an enemy. It was pity—pity for a scared, old man.
Tarzan rose and turned away, leaving Mbonga, the chief, unharmed. With head held high the ape-man walked through the village, swung himself into the branches of the tree which overhung the palisade and disappeared from the sight of the villagers.
Tarzan got up and walked away, leaving Mbonga, the chief, unharmed. With his head held high, the ape-man strolled through the village, swung himself into the branches of the tree that hung over the palisade, and vanished from the villagers' view.
All the way back to the stamping ground of the apes, Tarzan sought for an explanation of the strange power which had stayed his hand and prevented him from slaying Mbonga. It was as though someone greater than he had commanded him to spare the life of the old man. Tarzan could not understand, for he could conceive of nothing, or no one, with the authority to dictate to him what he should do, or what he should refrain from doing.
All the way back to the apes' territory, Tarzan searched for an explanation of the strange force that had stopped him from killing Mbonga. It felt like someone more powerful than him had ordered him to spare the old man's life. Tarzan couldn't understand it because he couldn't imagine anything or anyone with the authority to tell him what he should do or not do.
It was late when Tarzan sought a swaying couch among the trees beneath which slept the apes of Kerchak, and he was still absorbed in the solution of his strange problem when he fell asleep.
It was late when Tarzan looked for a swaying spot among the trees where the apes of Kerchak slept, and he was still deep in thought about his strange problem when he fell asleep.
The sun was well up in the heavens when he awoke. The apes were astir in search of food. Tarzan watched them lazily from above as they scratched in the rotting loam for bugs and beetles and grubworms, or sought among the branches of the trees for eggs and young birds, or luscious caterpillars.
The sun was high in the sky when he woke up. The apes were active, looking for food. Tarzan watched them lazily from above as they dug through the decaying soil for bugs, beetles, and grubs, or searched among the branches of the trees for eggs, young birds, or tasty caterpillars.
An orchid, dangling close beside his head, opened slowly, unfolding its delicate petals to the warmth and light of the sun which but recently had penetrated to its shady retreat. A thousand times had Tarzan of the Apes witnessed the beauteous miracle; but now it aroused a keener interest, for the ape-man was just commencing to ask himself questions about all the myriad wonders which heretofore he had but taken for granted.
An orchid, hanging just beside his head, slowly opened, spreading its delicate petals to the warmth and light of the sun that had only recently reached its shady spot. A thousand times, Tarzan of the Apes had seen this beautiful miracle; but now it sparked a deeper interest, as the ape-man was starting to ask himself questions about all the countless wonders he had previously taken for granted.
What made the flower open? What made it grow from a tiny bud to a full-blown bloom? Why was it at all? Why was he? Where did Numa, the lion, come from? Who planted the first tree? How did Goro get way up into the darkness of the night sky to cast his welcome light upon the fearsome nocturnal jungle? And the sun! Did the sun merely happen there?
What caused the flower to open? What made it grow from a tiny bud to a fully bloomed blossom? Why did it exist at all? Why was he here? Where did Numa, the lion, come from? Who planted the first tree? How did Goro get up into the darkness of the night sky to shine his welcoming light on the scary night jungle? And the sun! Did the sun just appear there?
Why were all the peoples of the jungle not trees? Why were the trees not something else? Why was Tarzan different from Taug, and Taug different from Bara, the deer, and Bara different from Sheeta, the panther, and why was not Sheeta like Buto, the rhinoceros? Where and how, anyway, did they all come from—the trees, the flowers, the insects, the countless creatures of the jungle?
Why weren't all the jungle's inhabitants trees? Why weren't the trees something else? What made Tarzan different from Taug, and Taug different from Bara, the deer, and Bara different from Sheeta, the panther, and why wasn't Sheeta like Buto, the rhinoceros? Where did they all come from—the trees, the flowers, the insects, the countless creatures of the jungle?
Quite unexpectedly an idea popped into Tarzan’s head. In following out the many ramifications of the dictionary definition of GOD he had come upon the word CREATE—“to cause to come into existence; to form out of nothing.”
Quite unexpectedly, an idea popped into Tarzan's head. While exploring the various meanings of the dictionary definition of GOD, he had come across the word CREATE—“to cause to come into existence; to form out of nothing.”
Tarzan almost had arrived at something tangible when a distant wail startled him from his preoccupation into sensibility of the present and the real. The wail came from the jungle at some little distance from Tarzan’s swaying couch. It was the wail of a tiny balu. Tarzan recognized it at once as the voice of Gazan, Teeka’s baby. They had called it Gazan because its soft, baby hair had been unusually red, and GAZAN in the language of the great apes, means red skin.
Tarzan was almost onto something real when a distant wail suddenly snapped him back to the present. The wail came from the jungle a short distance away from Tarzan’s swaying hammock. It was the cry of a small balu. Tarzan immediately recognized it as the voice of Gazan, Teeka’s baby. They named him Gazan because his soft, baby hair was an unusual shade of red, and GAZAN in the language of the great apes means red skin.
The wail was immediately followed by a real scream of terror from the small lungs. Tarzan was electrified into instant action. Like an arrow from a bow he shot through the trees in the direction of the sound. Ahead of him he heard the savage snarling of an adult she-ape. It was Teeka to the rescue. The danger must be very real. Tarzan could tell that by the note of rage mingled with fear in the voice of the she.
The cry was quickly followed by a genuine scream of fear from the tiny lungs. Tarzan sprang into action, energized by the sound. He raced through the trees like an arrow shot from a bow, heading toward the noise. Ahead of him, he heard the fierce growl of an adult female ape. It was Teeka coming to the rescue. The threat must be very real. Tarzan could sense that from the mix of anger and fear in her voice.
Running along bending limbs, swinging from one tree to another, the ape-man raced through the middle terraces toward the sounds which now had risen in volume to deafening proportions. From all directions the apes of Kerchak were hurrying in response to the appeal in the tones of the balu and its mother, and as they came, their roars reverberated through the forest.
Running along the curved branches, swinging from one tree to another, the ape-man sprinted through the middle terraces toward the sounds that had now escalated to deafening levels. From all around, the apes of Kerchak rushed in response to the cries of the balu and its mother, and as they approached, their roars echoed through the forest.
But Tarzan, swifter than his heavy fellows, distanced them all. It was he who was first upon the scene. What he saw sent a cold chill through his giant frame, for the enemy was the most hated and loathed of all the jungle creatures.
But Tarzan, faster than his bulky companions, left them all behind. He was the first to arrive at the scene. What he saw sent a cold shiver through his massive body, for the enemy was the most hated and despised of all the jungle creatures.
Twined in a great tree was Histah, the snake—huge, ponderous, slimy—and in the folds of its deadly embrace was Teeka’s little balu, Gazan. Nothing in the jungle inspired within the breast of Tarzan so near a semblance to fear as did the hideous Histah. The apes, too, loathed the terrifying reptile and feared him even more than they did Sheeta, the panther, or Numa, the lion. Of all their enemies there was none they gave a wider berth than they gave Histah, the snake.
Twined in a massive tree was Histah, the snake—huge, heavy, slimy—and in the folds of its deadly grip was Teeka’s little cub, Gazan. Nothing in the jungle struck fear in Tarzan’s heart as much as the hideous Histah. The apes also hated the terrifying reptile and feared him even more than they did Sheeta, the panther, or Numa, the lion. Among all their enemies, there was none they avoided more than Histah, the snake.
Tarzan knew that Teeka was peculiarly fearful of this silent, repulsive foe, and as the scene broke upon his vision, it was the action of Teeka which filled him with the greatest wonder, for at the moment that he saw her, the she-ape leaped upon the glistening body of the snake, and as the mighty folds encircled her as well as her offspring, she made no effort to escape, but instead grasped the writhing body in a futile effort to tear it from her screaming balu.
Tarzan realized that Teeka was particularly afraid of this quiet, disgusting enemy, and as the scene unfolded before him, it was Teeka's actions that amazed him the most. At that moment, he saw her leap onto the shiny body of the snake, and as the massive coils wrapped around her and her baby, she didn't try to escape. Instead, she grabbed the thrashing body in a hopeless attempt to pull it away from her screaming little one.
Tarzan knew all too well how deep-rooted was Teeka’s terror of Histah. He scarce could believe the testimony of his own eyes then, when they told him that she had voluntarily rushed into that deadly embrace. Nor was Teeka’s innate dread of the monster much greater than Tarzan’s own. Never, willingly, had he touched a snake. Why, he could not say, for he would admit fear of nothing; nor was it fear, but rather an inherent repulsion bequeathed to him by many generations of civilized ancestors, and back of them, perhaps, by countless myriads of such as Teeka, in the breasts of each of which had lurked the same nameless terror of the slimy reptile.
Tarzan understood all too well how deep Teeka's fear of Histah was. He could hardly believe what he was seeing when he witnessed her rushing into that deadly embrace on her own. Teeka’s natural fear of the monster wasn’t much stronger than his own. He had never willingly touched a snake. He couldn't explain why, since he wouldn't admit to fearing anything; it wasn’t fear but rather a deep-seated revulsion passed down through generations of civilized ancestors, and maybe from countless others like Teeka, each of whom harbored the same unnamed fear of the slimy creature.
Yet Tarzan did not hesitate more than had Teeka, but leaped upon Histah with all the speed and impetuosity that he would have shown had he been springing upon Bara, the deer, to make a kill for food. Thus beset the snake writhed and twisted horribly; but not for an instant did it loose its hold upon any of its intended victims, for it had included the ape-man in its cold embrace the minute that he had fallen upon it.
Yet Tarzan didn’t hesitate any longer than Teeka had, but jumped on Histah with all the speed and intensity he would have shown if he were pouncing on Bara, the deer, to catch it for food. The snake twisted and writhed in a horrific way; however, it didn’t release its grip on any of its intended victims for even a moment, having ensnared the ape-man in its cold embrace the instant he landed on it.
Still clinging to the tree, the mighty reptile held the three as though they had been without weight, the while it sought to crush the life from them. Tarzan had drawn his knife and this he now plunged rapidly into the body of the enemy; but the encircling folds promised to sap his life before he had inflicted a death wound upon the snake. Yet on he fought, nor once did he seek to escape the horrid death that confronted him—his sole aim was to slay Histah and thus free Teeka and her balu.
Still clinging to the tree, the powerful reptile held the three as if they were weightless, while it tried to crush the life out of them. Tarzan had drawn his knife and quickly plunged it into the body of the enemy; but the tightening coils threatened to drain his life before he could deliver a fatal blow to the snake. Yet he continued to fight, never once trying to escape the terrible death that faced him—his only goal was to kill Histah and free Teeka and her cub.
The great, wide-gaping jaws of the snake turned and hovered above him. The elastic maw, which could accommodate a rabbit or a horned buck with equal facility, yawned for him; but Histah, in turning his attention upon the ape-man, brought his head within reach of Tarzan’s blade. Instantly a brown hand leaped forth and seized the mottled neck, and another drove the heavy hunting knife to the hilt into the little brain.
The snake's massive, wide-open jaws loomed above him. The stretchy mouth, capable of swallowing a rabbit or a deer just as easily, opened for him; but as Histah focused on the ape-man, he brought his head within range of Tarzan’s knife. In an instant, a brown hand shot out and grabbed the spotted neck, while another plunged the heavy hunting knife deep into the small brain.
Convulsively Histah shuddered and relaxed, tensed and relaxed again, whipping and striking with his great body; but no longer sentient or sensible. Histah was dead, but in his death throes he might easily dispatch a dozen apes or men.
Convulsively, Histah shuddered and relaxed, tensed and relaxed again, thrashing and hitting with his massive body; but he was no longer aware or conscious. Histah was dead, but in his final struggles, he could easily take out a dozen apes or men.
Quickly Tarzan seized Teeka and dragged her from the loosened embrace, dropping her to the ground beneath, then he extricated the balu and tossed it to its mother. Still Histah whipped about, clinging to the ape-man; but after a dozen efforts Tarzan succeeded in wriggling free and leaping to the ground out of range of the mighty battering of the dying snake.
Quickly, Tarzan grabbed Teeka and pulled her away from the loosened grip, letting her fall to the ground. Then he freed the baby and tossed it to its mother. Meanwhile, Histah kept thrashing around, clinging to the ape-man, but after several attempts, Tarzan managed to wiggle free and jumped to the ground, out of reach of the powerful blows from the dying snake.
A circle of apes surrounded the scene of the battle; but the moment that Tarzan broke safely from the enemy they turned silently away to resume their interrupted feeding, and Teeka turned with them, apparently forgetful of all but her balu and the fact that when the interruption had occurred she just had discovered an ingeniously hidden nest containing three perfectly good eggs.
A group of apes gathered around the battlefield; but as soon as Tarzan escaped from the enemy, they quietly turned away to continue their interrupted feeding. Teeka followed them, seemingly forgetting everything except for her baby and the fact that when the interruption happened, she had just discovered a cleverly hidden nest with three perfectly good eggs.
Tarzan, equally indifferent to a battle that was over, merely cast a parting glance at the still writhing body of Histah and wandered off toward the little pool which served to water the tribe at this point. Strangely, he did not give the victory cry over the vanquished Histah. Why, he could not have told you, other than that to him Histah was not an animal. He differed in some peculiar way from the other denizens of the jungle. Tarzan only knew that he hated him.
Tarzan, unconcerned about a fight that had just ended, simply threw a last look at the still-twitching body of Histah and walked away toward the small pool that provided water for the tribe at this spot. Oddly, he didn’t let out a victory shout over the defeated Histah. He couldn’t explain why, except that to him, Histah wasn’t just an animal. He seemed different in some strange way from the other creatures in the jungle. Tarzan only knew that he hated him.
At the pool Tarzan drank his fill and lay stretched upon the soft grass beneath the shade of a tree. His mind reverted to the battle with Histah, the snake. It seemed strange to him that Teeka should have placed herself within the folds of the horrid monster. Why had she done it? Why, indeed, had he? Teeka did not belong to him, nor did Teeka’s balu. They were both Taug’s. Why then had he done this thing? Histah was not food for him when he was dead. There seemed to Tarzan, now that he gave the matter thought, no reason in the world why he should have done the thing he did, and presently it occurred to him that he had acted almost involuntarily, just as he had acted when he had released the old Gomangani the previous evening.
At the pool, Tarzan drank his fill and lay stretched out on the soft grass under the shade of a tree. His thoughts drifted back to the fight with Histah, the snake. It seemed strange to him that Teeka would have put herself within the coils of the terrifying creature. Why had she done that? And why had he? Teeka didn’t belong to him, nor did Teeka’s baby. They both belonged to Taug. So why had he done it? Histah wasn't food for him when it was dead. As Tarzan thought about it, he realized there was no reason in the world for his actions, and it dawned on him that he had acted almost instinctively, just like he had when he freed the old Gomangani the night before.
What made him do such things? Somebody more powerful than he must force him to act at times. “All-powerful,” thought Tarzan. “The little bugs say that God is all-powerful. It must be that God made me do these things, for I never did them by myself. It was God made Teeka rush upon Histah. Teeka would never go near Histah of her own volition. It was God who held my knife from the throat of the old Gomangani. God accomplishes strange things for he is ‘all-powerful.’ I cannot see Him; but I know that it must be God who does these things. No Mangani, no Gomangani, no Tarmangani could do them.”
What made him do those things? Someone more powerful than him must be forcing him to act sometimes. “All-powerful,” thought Tarzan. “The little bugs say that God is all-powerful. It must be God who made me do these things, because I never did them on my own. It was God who made Teeka rush at Histah. Teeka would never go near Histah by herself. It was God who kept my knife away from the old Gomangani's throat. God does strange things because He is 'all-powerful.' I can't see Him, but I know it must be God who does these things. No Mangani, no Gomangani, no Tarmangani could do them.”
And the flowers—who made them grow? Ah, now it was all explained—the flowers, the trees, the moon, the sun, himself, every living creature in the jungle—they were all made by God out of nothing.
And the flowers—who made them grow? Ah, now it all made sense—the flowers, the trees, the moon, the sun, himself, every living thing in the jungle—they were all created by God from nothing.
And what was God? What did God look like? Of that he had no conception; but he was sure that everything that was good came from God. His good act in refraining from slaying the poor, defenseless old Gomangani; Teeka’s love that had hurled her into the embrace of death; his own loyalty to Teeka which had jeopardized his life that she might live. The flowers and the trees were good and beautiful. God had made them. He made the other creatures, too, that each might have food upon which to live. He had made Sheeta, the panther, with his beautiful coat; and Numa, the lion, with his noble head and his shaggy mane. He had made Bara, the deer, lovely and graceful.
And what was God? What did God look like? He had no idea; but he was certain that everything good came from God. His decision not to kill the poor, defenseless old Gomangani; Teeka's love that had driven her to the brink of death; his own loyalty to Teeka that had put his life at risk so she could survive. The flowers and trees were good and beautiful. God had created them. He also made the other creatures so that each could have food to live on. He made Sheeta, the panther, with its beautiful coat; and Numa, the lion, with his noble head and shaggy mane. He made Bara, the deer, lovely and graceful.
Yes, Tarzan had found God, and he spent the whole day in attributing to Him all of the good and beautiful things of nature; but there was one thing which troubled him. He could not quite reconcile it to his conception of his new-found God.
Yes, Tarzan had found God, and he spent the whole day crediting Him with all the good and beautiful things in nature; but there was one thing that troubled him. He couldn't fully reconcile it with his understanding of his new-found God.
Who made Histah, the snake?
Who created Histah, the snake?
CHAPTER V
Tarzan and the Black Boy
Tarzan of the Apes sat at the foot of a great tree braiding a new grass rope. Beside him lay the frayed remnants of the old one, torn and severed by the fangs and talons of Sheeta, the panther. Only half the original rope was there, the balance having been carried off by the angry cat as he bounded away through the jungle with the noose still about his savage neck and the loose end dragging among the underbrush.
Tarzan of the Apes sat at the base of a huge tree, weaving a new grass rope. Next to him were the tattered remains of the old one, ripped apart by the teeth and claws of Sheeta, the panther. Only half of the original rope was left; the rest had been taken by the furious cat as it leaped away through the jungle, the noose still around its fierce neck and the loose end trailing through the underbrush.
Tarzan smiled as he recalled Sheeta’s great rage, his frantic efforts to free himself from the entangling strands, his uncanny screams that were part hate, part anger, part terror. He smiled in retrospection at the discomfiture of his enemy, and in anticipation of another day as he added an extra strand to his new rope.
Tarzan smiled as he remembered Sheeta’s intense rage, his desperate attempts to break free from the tangled vines, his eerie screams that mixed hate, anger, and fear. He smiled in reflection at his enemy's discomfort, looking forward to another day as he added another strand to his new rope.
This would be the strongest, the heaviest rope that Tarzan of the Apes ever had fashioned. Visions of Numa, the lion, straining futilely in its embrace thrilled the ape-man. He was quite content, for his hands and his brain were busy. Content, too, were his fellows of the tribe of Kerchak, searching for food in the clearing and the surrounding trees about him. No perplexing thoughts of the future burdened their minds, and only occasionally, dimly arose recollections of the near past. They were stimulated to a species of brutal content by the delectable business of filling their bellies. Afterward they would sleep—it was their life, and they enjoyed it as we enjoy ours, you and I—as Tarzan enjoyed his. Possibly they enjoyed theirs more than we enjoy ours, for who shall say that the beasts of the jungle do not better fulfill the purposes for which they are created than does man with his many excursions into strange fields and his contraventions of the laws of nature? And what gives greater content and greater happiness than the fulfilling of a destiny?
This was the strongest, heaviest rope that Tarzan of the Apes had ever made. Images of Numa, the lion, struggling unsuccessfully in its grip excited the ape-man. He felt completely satisfied, as his hands and mind were engaged. His tribe members from Kerchak were also content, foraging for food in the clearing and the nearby trees. They weren’t burdened by troubling thoughts about the future, and only occasionally did vague memories of the recent past come to mind. They found a kind of brutal satisfaction in the simple act of filling their stomachs. Afterward, they would sleep—it was their life, and they enjoyed it just as we enjoy ours, you and I—as Tarzan enjoyed his. They might have enjoyed theirs even more than we enjoy ours, because who can say that the jungle beasts don’t fulfill their purpose better than humans, who often stray into strange territories and break the laws of nature? And what brings more satisfaction and happiness than fulfilling one’s destiny?
As Tarzan worked, Gazan, Teeka’s little balu, played about him while Teeka sought food upon the opposite side of the clearing. No more did Teeka, the mother, or Taug, the sullen sire, harbor suspicions of Tarzan’s intentions toward their first-born. Had he not courted death to save their Gazan from the fangs and talons of Sheeta? Did he not fondle and cuddle the little one with even as great a show of affection as Teeka herself displayed? Their fears were allayed and Tarzan now found himself often in the role of nursemaid to a tiny anthropoid—an avocation which he found by no means irksome, since Gazan was a never-failing fount of surprises and entertainment.
As Tarzan worked, Gazan, Teeka’s little cub, played around him while Teeka searched for food on the other side of the clearing. Teeka, the mother, and Taug, the grumpy father, no longer had any doubts about Tarzan’s intentions toward their first-born. Had he not risked his life to save their Gazan from the claws and fangs of Sheeta? Did he not hold and cuddle the little one with as much affection as Teeka herself showed? Their worries were eased, and Tarzan now often found himself in the role of caretaker to a tiny primate—an activity he didn’t mind at all since Gazan was a constant source of surprises and entertainment.
Just now the apeling was developing those arboreal tendencies which were to stand him in such good stead during the years of his youth, when rapid flight into the upper terraces was of far more importance and value than his undeveloped muscles and untried fighting fangs. Backing off fifteen or twenty feet from the bole of the tree beneath the branches of which Tarzan worked upon his rope, Gazan scampered quickly forward, scrambling nimbly upward to the lower limbs. Here he would squat for a moment or two, quite proud of his achievement, then clamber to the ground again and repeat. Sometimes, quite often in fact, for he was an ape, his attention was distracted by other things, a beetle, a caterpillar, a tiny field mouse, and off he would go in pursuit; the caterpillars he always caught, and sometimes the beetles; but the field mice, never.
Just now, the little ape was developing the climbing skills that would serve him well in his youth when quickly ascending to the higher branches was much more important than his underdeveloped muscles and untested fighting teeth. Stepping back fifteen or twenty feet from the tree trunk under which Tarzan was working on his rope, Gazan quickly scampered forward, nimbly climbing up to the lower branches. Here he would sit for a moment or two, quite proud of his accomplishment, then scramble back down and do it again. Sometimes, quite often actually, since he was an ape, he would get distracted by other things—a beetle, a caterpillar, a tiny field mouse—and off he would go in pursuit; he always caught the caterpillars, and sometimes the beetles; but the field mice, never.
Now he discovered the tail of the rope upon which Tarzan was working. Grasping it in one small hand he bounced away, for all the world like an animated rubber ball, snatching it from the ape-man’s hand and running off across the clearing. Tarzan leaped to his feet and was in pursuit in an instant, no trace of anger on his face or in his voice as he called to the roguish little balu to drop his rope.
Now he found the end of the rope that Tarzan was working with. Grabbing it with one small hand, he bounced away like a lively rubber ball, snatching it from the ape-man's hand and running off across the clearing. Tarzan jumped to his feet and immediately chased after him, showing no sign of anger on his face or in his voice as he called to the mischievous little balu to drop the rope.
Straight toward his mother raced Gazan, and after him came Tarzan. Teeka looked up from her feeding, and in the first instant that she realized that Gazan was fleeing and that another was in pursuit, she bared her fangs and bristled; but when she saw that the pursuer was Tarzan she turned back to the business that had been occupying her attention. At her very feet the ape-man overhauled the balu and, though the youngster squealed and fought when Tarzan seized him, Teeka only glanced casually in their direction. No longer did she fear harm to her first-born at the hands of the ape-man. Had he not saved Gazan on two occasions?
Straight toward his mother ran Gazan, with Tarzan chasing after him. Teeka looked up from feeding and, for a moment, when she realized that Gazan was running away and someone was chasing him, she showed her teeth and tensed up. But when she saw that the one pursuing was Tarzan, she went back to what she was doing. Right at her feet, the ape-man caught up with the little one, and even though the young one squealed and struggled when Tarzan grabbed him, Teeka only glanced in their direction. She no longer worried about her first-born being harmed by the ape-man. Hadn't he saved Gazan twice before?
Rescuing his rope, Tarzan returned to his tree and resumed his labor; but thereafter it was necessary to watch carefully the playful balu, who was now possessed to steal it whenever he thought his great, smooth-skinned cousin was momentarily off his guard.
Rescuing his rope, Tarzan went back to his tree and got back to work; but from then on, he had to keep a close eye on the playful balu, who was now eager to steal it whenever he thought his big, smooth-skinned cousin was distracted.
But even under this handicap Tarzan finally completed the rope, a long, pliant weapon, stronger than any he ever had made before. The discarded piece of his former one he gave to Gazan for a plaything, for Tarzan had it in his mind to instruct Teeka’s balu after ideas of his own when the youngster should be old and strong enough to profit by his precepts. At present the little ape’s innate aptitude for mimicry would be sufficient to familiarize him with Tarzan’s ways and weapons, and so the ape-man swung off into the jungle, his new rope coiled over one shoulder, while little Gazan hopped about the clearing dragging the old one after him in childish glee.
But even with this setback, Tarzan eventually finished the rope, a long, flexible weapon that was stronger than any he had ever made before. He gave the leftover piece of his old one to Gazan as a toy since Tarzan planned to teach Teeka’s baby based on his own ideas when the young one grew old and strong enough to benefit from his teachings. For now, the little ape’s natural talent for mimicry would be enough to help him learn Tarzan’s ways and weapons, and so the ape-man swung off into the jungle, his new rope coiled over one shoulder, while little Gazan hopped around the clearing, pulling the old one behind him in playful delight.
As Tarzan traveled, dividing his quest for food with one for a sufficiently noble quarry whereupon to test his new weapon, his mind often was upon Gazan. The ape-man had realized a deep affection for Teeka’s balu almost from the first, partly because the child belonged to Teeka, his first love, and partly for the little ape’s own sake, and Tarzan’s human longing for some sentient creature upon which to expend those natural affections of the soul which are inherent to all normal members of the GENUS HOMO. Tarzan envied Teeka. It was true that Gazan evidenced a considerable reciprocation of Tarzan’s fondness for him, even preferring him to his own surly sire; but to Teeka the little one turned when in pain or terror, when tired or hungry. Then it was that Tarzan felt quite alone in the world and longed desperately for one who should turn first to him for succor and protection.
As Tarzan traveled, searching for food and a noble target to try out his new weapon, his thoughts often turned to Gazan. The ape-man had developed a deep affection for Teeka’s baby from almost the beginning, partly because the child was Teeka's, his first love, and partly for the little ape’s own sake, reflecting Tarzan’s human desire for some sentient being to share the natural affections of the soul that are inherent to all normal members of the human race. Tarzan envied Teeka. It was true that Gazan showed a significant amount of affection in return, even preferring Tarzan over his own grumpy father; but when Gazan was hurt or scared, tired or hungry, he turned to Teeka. In those moments, Tarzan felt completely alone in the world and desperately wished for someone who would seek him out for comfort and protection first.
Taug had Teeka; Teeka had Gazan; and nearly every other bull and cow of the tribe of Kerchak had one or more to love and by whom to be loved. Of course Tarzan could scarcely formulate the thought in precisely this way—he only knew that he craved something which was denied him; something which seemed to be represented by those relations which existed between Teeka and her balu, and so he envied Teeka and longed for a balu of his own.
Taug had Teeka; Teeka had Gazan; and almost every other bull and cow in the tribe of Kerchak had one or more companions to love and be loved by. Of course, Tarzan could hardly express this thought in such a way—he only sensed that he wanted something that was out of reach; something that seemed to be captured in the connections between Teeka and her balu, and so he envied Teeka and yearned for a balu of his own.
He saw Sheeta and his mate with their little family of three; and deeper inland toward the rocky hills, where one might lie up during the heat of the day, in the dense shade of a tangled thicket close under the cool face of an overhanging rock, Tarzan had found the lair of Numa, the lion, and of Sabor, the lioness. Here he had watched them with their little balus—playful creatures, spotted leopard-like. And he had seen the young fawn with Bara, the deer, and with Buto, the rhinoceros, its ungainly little one. Each of the creatures of the jungle had its own—except Tarzan. It made the ape-man sad to think upon this thing, sad and lonely; but presently the scent of game cleared his young mind of all other considerations, as catlike he crawled far out upon a bending limb above the game trail which led down to the ancient watering place of the wild things of this wild world.
He saw Sheeta and his friend with their little family of three; and deeper inland toward the rocky hills, where one might rest during the heat of the day, in the dense shade of a tangled thicket close to the cool face of an overhanging rock, Tarzan had found the den of Numa, the lion, and Sabor, the lioness. Here he had watched them with their playful little cubs—creatures spotted like leopards. And he had seen the young fawn with Bara, the deer, and Buto, the rhinoceros, with its awkward little one. Each of the jungle creatures had its own—except for Tarzan. It made the ape-man feel sad to think about this, sad and lonely; but soon the scent of prey cleared his young mind of all other thoughts, as he crawled catlike far out onto a bending limb above the game trail that led down to the ancient watering place of the wild creatures in this untamed world.
How many thousands of times had this great, old limb bent to the savage form of some blood-thirsty hunter in the long years that it had spread its leafy branches above the deep-worn jungle path! Tarzan, the ape-man, Sheeta, the panther, and Histah, the snake, it knew well. They had worn smooth the bark upon its upper surface.
How many thousands of times had this great, old limb bent to the brutal shape of some bloodthirsty hunter over the many years it had spread its leafy branches above the deep-worn jungle path! Tarzan, the ape-man, Sheeta, the panther, and Histah, the snake, it knew well. They had smoothed the bark on its upper surface.
Today it was Horta, the boar, which came down toward the watcher in the old tree—Horta, the boar, whose formidable tusks and diabolical temper preserved him from all but the most ferocious or most famished of the largest carnivora.
Today it was Horta, the boar, who approached the observer in the old tree—Horta, the boar, whose impressive tusks and fierce temper kept him safe from all but the most savage or hungriest of the largest carnivores.
But to Tarzan, meat was meat; naught that was edible or tasty might pass a hungry Tarzan unchallenged and unattacked. In hunger, as in battle, the ape-man out-savaged the dreadest denizens of the jungle. He knew neither fear nor mercy, except upon rare occasions when some strange, inexplicable force stayed his hand—a force inexplicable to him, perhaps, because of his ignorance of his own origin and of all the forces of humanitarianism and civilization that were his rightful heritage because of that origin.
But to Tarzan, meat was meat; nothing that was edible or tasty could escape a hungry Tarzan unchallenged and unbothered. In hunger, just like in battle, the ape-man was more savage than the fiercest creatures of the jungle. He felt neither fear nor mercy, except on rare occasions when some strange, unexplainable force stopped him—a force he couldn’t understand, perhaps, because he didn’t know about his own origins or the influences of humanity and civilization that were his rightful inheritance because of that origin.
So today, instead of staying his hand until a less formidable feast found its way toward him, Tarzan dropped his new noose about the neck of Horta, the boar. It was an excellent test for the untried strands. The angered boar bolted this way and that; but each time the new rope held him where Tarzan had made it fast about the stem of the tree above the branch from which he had cast it.
So today, instead of waiting for a less challenging meal to come his way, Tarzan threw his new noose around Horta, the boar's neck. It was a great test for the untested ropes. The furious boar ran around in all directions, but each time the new rope kept him secured where Tarzan had tied it around the tree trunk above the branch from which he had thrown it.
As Horta grunted and charged, slashing the sturdy jungle patriarch with his mighty tusks until the bark flew in every direction, Tarzan dropped to the ground behind him. In the ape-man’s hand was the long, keen blade that had been his constant companion since that distant day upon which chance had directed its point into the body of Bolgani, the gorilla, and saved the torn and bleeding man-child from what else had been certain death.
As Horta grunted and charged, slashing the tough jungle leader with his powerful tusks until chunks of bark flew everywhere, Tarzan dropped to the ground behind him. In the ape-man’s hand was the long, sharp blade that had been his constant companion since that fateful day when it had pierced the body of Bolgani, the gorilla, and saved the injured and bleeding boy from what would have been certain death.
Tarzan walked in toward Horta, who swung now to face his enemy. Mighty and muscled as was the young giant, it yet would have appeared but the maddest folly for him to face so formidable a creature as Horta, the boar, armed only with a slender hunting knife. So it would have seemed to one who knew Horta even slightly and Tarzan not at all.
Tarzan walked toward Horta, who turned to confront his opponent. As strong and muscular as the young giant was, it would have seemed like utter madness for him to challenge such a powerful creature as Horta, the boar, armed only with a thin hunting knife. This would have been the perspective of anyone who had even a slight knowledge of Horta and none of Tarzan.
For a moment Horta stood motionless facing the ape-man. His wicked, deep-set eyes flashed angrily. He shook his lowered head.
For a moment, Horta stood still, staring at the ape-man. His wicked, deep-set eyes flashed with anger. He shook his head, which was lowered.
“Mud-eater!” jeered the ape-man. “Wallower in filth. Even your meat stinks, but it is juicy and makes Tarzan strong. Today I shall eat your heart, O Lord of the Great Tusks, that it shall keep savage that which pounds against my own ribs.”
“Pig!” mocked the ape-man. “You wallow in filth. Even your flesh stinks, but it’s juicy and makes Tarzan stronger. Today I will eat your heart, O Lord of the Great Tusks, so that it keeps the savage beating against my own ribs.”
Horta, understanding nothing of what Tarzan said, was none the less enraged because of that. He saw only a naked man-thing, hairless and futile, pitting his puny fangs and soft muscles against his own indomitable savagery, and he charged.
Horta, not understanding anything Tarzan said, was still furious about it. All he saw was a naked man, hairless and useless, trying to match his weak fangs and soft muscles against his own unstoppable wildness, and he charged.
Tarzan of the Apes waited until the upcut of a wicked tusk would have laid open his thigh, then he moved—just the least bit to one side; but so quickly that lightning was a sluggard by comparison, and as he moved, he stooped low and with all the great power of his right arm drove the long blade of his father’s hunting knife straight into the heart of Horta, the boar. A quick leap carried him from the zone of the creature’s death throes, and a moment later the hot and dripping heart of Horta was in his grasp.
Tarzan of the Apes waited until the sharp tusk of the boar was about to slice open his thigh, then he shifted—just a little to the side; but so fast that lightning seemed slow in comparison. As he moved, he bent low and, with the full strength of his right arm, plunged his father’s hunting knife straight into the heart of Horta, the boar. A quick jump took him out of the reach of the animal's death struggle, and a moment later, he had Horta's hot, dripping heart in his hand.
His hunger satisfied, Tarzan did not seek a lying-up place for sleep, as was sometimes his way, but continued on through the jungle more in search of adventure than of food, for today he was restless. And so it came that he turned his footsteps toward the village of Mbonga, the black chief, whose people Tarzan had baited remorselessly since that day upon which Kulonga, the chief’s son, had slain Kala.
His hunger satisfied, Tarzan didn’t look for a place to sleep, as he sometimes did, but kept on through the jungle more in search of adventure than food, because today he felt restless. So it happened that he turned his steps toward the village of Mbonga, the black chief, whose people Tarzan had relentlessly teased since the day Kulonga, the chief’s son, killed Kala.
A river winds close beside the village of the black men. Tarzan reached its side a little below the clearing where squat the thatched huts of the Negroes. The river life was ever fascinating to the ape-man. He found pleasure in watching the ungainly antics of Duro, the hippopotamus, and keen sport in tormenting the sluggish crocodile, Gimla, as he basked in the sun. Then, too, there were the shes and the balus of the black men of the Gomangani to frighten as they squatted by the river, the shes with their meager washing, the balus with their primitive toys.
A river flows next to the village of the black men. Tarzan reached its bank just below the clearing where the thatched huts of the Negroes are located. River life always intrigued the ape-man. He enjoyed watching the awkward antics of Duro, the hippopotamus, and found it entertaining to tease the sluggish crocodile, Gimla, as he soaked up the sun. Additionally, there were the women and children of the Gomangani to scare as they sat by the river, the women with their minimal laundry and the children with their simple toys.
This day he came upon a woman and her child farther down stream than usual. The former was searching for a species of shellfish which were to be found in the mud close to the river bank. She was a young black woman of about thirty. Her teeth were filed to sharp points, for her people ate the flesh of man. Her under lip was slit that it might support a rude pendant of copper which she had worn for so many years that the lip had been dragged downward to prodigious lengths, exposing the teeth and gums of her lower jaw. Her nose, too, was slit, and through the slit was a wooden skewer. Metal ornaments dangled from her ears, and upon her forehead and cheeks; upon her chin and the bridge of her nose were tattooings in colors that were mellowed now by age. She was naked except for a girdle of grasses about her waist. Altogether she was very beautiful in her own estimation and even in the estimation of the men of Mbonga’s tribe, though she was of another people—a trophy of war seized in her maidenhood by one of Mbonga’s fighting men.
This day, he came across a woman and her child further down the river than usual. The woman was looking for a type of shellfish found in the mud near the riverbank. She was a young black woman around thirty. Her teeth were sharpened to points because her people consumed human flesh. Her lower lip was slit to hold a crude copper pendant she had worn for so long that it had stretched the lip down significantly, exposing her lower jaw’s teeth and gums. Her nose was also slit, and there was a wooden skewer going through it. Metal ornaments hung from her ears, and there were decorations on her forehead, cheeks, chin, and the bridge of her nose in colors that had faded with time. She was naked except for a grass girdle around her waist. She considered herself very beautiful, and even the men of Mbonga’s tribe agreed, although she belonged to a different people—a war trophy taken during her youth by one of Mbonga’s warriors.
Her child was a boy of ten, lithe, straight and, for a black, handsome. Tarzan looked upon the two from the concealing foliage of a near-by bush. He was about to leap forth before them with a terrifying scream, that he might enjoy the spectacle of their terror and their incontinent flight; but of a sudden a new whim seized him. Here was a balu fashioned as he himself was fashioned. Of course this one’s skin was black; but what of it? Tarzan had never seen a white man. In so far as he knew, he was the sole representative of that strange form of life upon the earth. The black boy should make an excellent balu for Tarzan, since he had none of his own. He would tend him carefully, feed him well, protect him as only Tarzan of the Apes could protect his own, and teach him out of his half human, half bestial lore the secrets of the jungle from its rotting surface vegetation to the high tossed pinnacles of the forest’s upper terraces.
Her child was a ten-year-old boy, lean and upright, and handsome for a Black kid. Tarzan watched them from the cover of a nearby bush. He was ready to jump out and scare them with a terrifying scream to enjoy their fear and their panicked escape; but suddenly a new idea struck him. Here was a young one shaped like he was. Of course, this kid’s skin was black, but so what? Tarzan had never seen a white person. As far as he knew, he was the only one of that strange kind of creature on earth. The black boy would make an excellent companion for Tarzan since he had none of his own. He would take care of him, feed him well, protect him like only Tarzan of the Apes could protect his own, and teach him, from his half-human, half-beast knowledge, the secrets of the jungle from its decaying surface plants to the towering heights of the forest canopy.
Tarzan uncoiled his rope, and shook out the noose. The two before him, all ignorant of the near presence of that terrifying form, continued preoccupied in the search for shellfish, poking about in the mud with short sticks.
Tarzan uncoiled his rope and shook out the noose. The two in front of him, completely unaware of the terrifying figure nearby, kept focused on searching for shellfish, poking around in the mud with short sticks.
Tarzan stepped from the jungle behind them; his noose lay open upon the ground beside him. There was a quick movement of the right arm and the noose rose gracefully into the air, hovered an instant above the head of the unsuspecting youth, then settled. As it encompassed his body below the shoulders, Tarzan gave a quick jerk that tightened it about the boy’s arms, pinioning them to his sides. A scream of terror broke from the lad’s lips, and as his mother turned, affrighted at his cry, she saw him being dragged quickly toward a great white giant who stood just beneath the shade of a near-by tree, scarcely a dozen long paces from her.
Tarzan emerged from the jungle behind them, his noose lying open on the ground next to him. With a swift motion of his right arm, the noose rose gracefully into the air, hovered for a moment above the unsuspecting boy's head, then fell. As it wrapped around his body below the shoulders, Tarzan gave a quick tug that tightened it around the boy’s arms, pinning them to his sides. A scream of terror escaped the boy's lips, and as his mother turned, startled by his cry, she saw him being dragged rapidly toward a large white giant standing just beneath the shade of a nearby tree, only about ten paces away.
With a savage cry of terror and rage, the woman leaped fearlessly toward the ape-man. In her mien Tarzan saw determination and courage which would shrink not even from death itself. She was very hideous and frightful even when her face was in repose; but convulsed by passion, her expression became terrifyingly fiendish. Even the ape-man drew back, but more in revulsion than fear—fear he knew not.
With a chilling scream of fear and anger, the woman jumped boldly toward the ape-man. In her demeanor, Tarzan saw a resolve and bravery that wouldn’t back down even from death itself. She was quite ugly and frightening even when her face was relaxed; but twisted by emotion, her expression turned shockingly malevolent. Even the ape-man recoiled, but more from disgust than fear—fear was something he didn’t know.
Biting and kicking was the black she’s balu as Tarzan tucked him beneath his arm and vanished into the branches hanging low above him, just as the infuriated mother dashed forward to seize and do battle with him. And as he melted away into the depth of the jungle with his still struggling prize, he meditated upon the possibilities which might lie in the prowess of the Gomangani were the hes as formidable as the shes.
Biting and kicking was the black male child as Tarzan tucked him beneath his arm and disappeared into the low-hanging branches above, just as the furious mother rushed forward to grab him and fight. As he slipped into the depths of the jungle with his still-struggling prize, he thought about the potential that could exist if the male Gomangani were as strong as the females.
Once at a safe distance from the despoiled mother and out of earshot of her screams and menaces, Tarzan paused to inspect his prize, now so thoroughly terrorized that he had ceased his struggles and his outcries.
Once at a safe distance from the damaged mother and out of earshot of her screams and threats, Tarzan stopped to examine his prize, now so completely terrified that he had stopped struggling and crying out.
The frightened child rolled his eyes fearfully toward his captor, until the whites showed gleaming all about the irises.
The scared child rolled his eyes nervously toward his captor, until the whites were shining all around the irises.
“I am Tarzan,” said the ape-man, in the vernacular of the anthropoids. “I will not harm you. You are to be Tarzan’s balu. Tarzan will protect you. He will feed you. The best in the jungle shall be for Tarzan’s balu, for Tarzan is a mighty hunter. None need you fear, not even Numa, the lion, for Tarzan is a mighty fighter. None so great as Tarzan, son of Kala. Do not fear.”
“I am Tarzan,” said the ape-man, speaking in the language of the apes. “I won’t hurt you. You are to be Tarzan’s cub. Tarzan will protect you. He will feed you. The best in the jungle will be for Tarzan’s cub, because Tarzan is a powerful hunter. You don’t need to be afraid, not even of Numa, the lion, because Tarzan is a strong fighter. There’s no one as great as Tarzan, son of Kala. Don’t be afraid.”
But the child only whimpered and trembled, for he did not understand the tongue of the great apes, and the voice of Tarzan sounded to him like the barking and growling of a beast. Then, too, he had heard stories of this bad, white forest god. It was he who had slain Kulonga and others of the warriors of Mbonga, the chief. It was he who entered the village stealthily, by magic, in the darkness of the night, to steal arrows and poison, and frighten the women and the children and even the great warriors. Doubtless this wicked god fed upon little boys. Had his mother not said as much when he was naughty and she threatened to give him to the white god of the jungle if he were not good? Little black Tibo shook as with ague.
But the child only whined and shook, because he didn’t understand the language of the great apes, and Tarzan’s voice sounded to him like the barking and growling of a wild animal. Plus, he had heard stories about this evil white forest god. He was the one who had killed Kulonga and others from Mbonga’s warriors. He came into the village quietly, like magic, in the dead of night, to steal arrows and poison, and to scare the women, children, and even the strongest warriors. Surely this wicked god fed on little boys. Hadn’t his mother said as much when he misbehaved and she threatened to give him to the white god of the jungle if he didn’t behave? Little black Tibo shook as if he had a fever.
“Are you cold, Go-bu-balu?” asked Tarzan, using the simian equivalent of black he-baby in lieu of a better name. “The sun is hot; why do you shiver?”
“Are you cold, Go-bu-balu?” Tarzan asked, using the monkey equivalent of black he-baby since he didn’t have a better name. “The sun is hot; why are you shivering?”
Tibo could not understand; but he cried for his mamma and begged the great, white god to let him go, promising always to be a good boy thereafter if his plea were granted. Tarzan shook his head. Not a word could he understand. This would never do! He must teach Go-bu-balu a language which sounded like talk. It was quite certain to Tarzan that Go-bu-balu’s speech was not talk at all. It sounded quite as senseless as the chattering of the silly birds. It would be best, thought the ape-man, quickly to get him among the tribe of Kerchak where he would hear the Mangani talking among themselves. Thus he would soon learn an intelligible form of speech.
Tibo couldn’t understand, but he cried for his mom and begged the big, white god to let him go, promising to always be a good boy from then on if his wish was granted. Tarzan shook his head. He couldn't understand a word. This wasn't going to work! He had to teach Go-bu-balu a language that sounded like real speech. Tarzan was convinced that Go-bu-balu’s speech wasn’t talk at all. It sounded just as meaningless as the chatter of the silly birds. The ape-man thought it would be best to quickly bring him to the tribe of Kerchak, where he could hear the Mangani talking to each other. That way, he would soon learn a recognizable form of speech.
Tarzan rose to his feet upon the swaying branch where he had halted far above the ground, and motioned to the child to follow him; but Tibo only clung tightly to the bole of the tree and wept. Being a boy, and a native African, he had, of course, climbed into trees many times before this; but the idea of racing off through the forest, leaping from one branch to another, as his captor, to his horror, had done when he had carried Tibo away from his mother, filled his childish heart with terror.
Tarzan got up on the swaying branch where he had stopped high above the ground and signaled for the child to follow him; but Tibo just clung tightly to the trunk of the tree and cried. Being a boy from Africa, he had, of course, climbed trees many times before; but the thought of darting through the forest, jumping from one branch to another like his captor had done when he took Tibo away from his mother, filled him with fear.
Tarzan sighed. His newly acquired balu had much indeed to learn. It was pitiful that a balu of his size and strength should be so backward. He tried to coax Tibo to follow him; but the child dared not, so Tarzan picked him up and carried him upon his back. Tibo no longer scratched or bit. Escape seemed impossible. Even now, were he set upon the ground, the chance was remote, he knew, that he could find his way back to the village of Mbonga, the chief. Even if he could, there were the lions and the leopards and the hyenas, any one of which, as Tibo was well aware, was particularly fond of the meat of little black boys.
Tarzan sighed. His new little brother had a lot to learn. It was sad that a kid his size and strength could be so behind. He tried to get Tibo to follow him, but the child was too scared, so Tarzan picked him up and carried him on his back. Tibo stopped scratching and biting. There was no way to escape. Even if he were put on the ground, he knew the chances were slim that he could find his way back to Mbonga's village, the chief. Even if he could, there were lions, leopards, and hyenas, any of which, Tibo knew well, loved the taste of little black boys.
So far the terrible white god of the jungle had offered him no harm. He could not expect even this much consideration from the frightful, green-eyed man-eaters. It would be the lesser of two evils, then, to let the white god carry him away without scratching and biting, as he had done at first.
So far, the terrifying white god of the jungle hadn't caused him any harm. He couldn't expect even that much from the frightening, green-eyed man-eaters. It would be the lesser of two evils to allow the white god to take him away without scratching and biting, like he had at first.
As Tarzan swung rapidly through the trees, little Tibo closed his eyes in terror rather than look longer down into the frightful abysses beneath. Never before in all his life had Tibo been so frightened, yet as the white giant sped on with him through the forest there stole over the child an inexplicable sensation of security as he saw how true were the leaps of the ape-man, how unerring his grasp upon the swaying limbs which gave him hand-hold, and then, too, there was safety in the middle terraces of the forest, far above the reach of the dreaded lions.
As Tarzan swung quickly through the trees, little Tibo shut his eyes in fear rather than look down into the terrifying depths below. Never before in his life had Tibo been so scared, yet as the white giant raced through the forest with him, the child gradually felt a strange sense of safety as he noticed how accurate the ape-man's leaps were, how sure his grip was on the swaying branches that provided him with support, and also, there was a sense of security high up in the forest, far out of reach of the feared lions.
And so Tarzan came to the clearing where the tribe fed, dropping among them with his new balu clinging tightly to his shoulders. He was fairly in the midst of them before Tibo spied a single one of the great hairy forms, or before the apes realized that Tarzan was not alone. When they saw the little Gomangani perched upon his back some of them came forward in curiosity with upcurled lips and snarling mien.
And so Tarzan arrived at the clearing where the tribe was feeding, dropping down among them with his new baby monkey clinging tightly to his shoulders. He was right in the middle of them before Tibo noticed even one of the large hairy figures, or before the apes realized that Tarzan wasn't alone. When they spotted the little Gomangani sitting on his back, some of them came forward in curiosity, lips curled and showing teeth.
An hour before little Tibo would have said that he knew the uttermost depths of fear; but now, as he saw these fearsome beasts surrounding him, he realized that all that had gone before was as nothing by comparison. Why did the great white giant stand there so unconcernedly? Why did he not flee before these horrid, hairy, tree men fell upon them both and tore them to pieces? And then there came to Tibo a numbing recollection. It was none other than the story he had heard passed from mouth to mouth, fearfully, by the people of Mbonga, the chief, that this great white demon of the jungle was naught other than a hairless ape, for had not he been seen in company with these?
An hour ago, little Tibo would have claimed he understood the deepest levels of fear; but now, seeing these terrifying creatures all around him, he realized that everything he had experienced before was nothing compared to this. Why was the big white giant standing there so calmly? Why wasn’t he running away as these horrible, hairy tree men closed in on them and prepared to tear them apart? Then, a chilling memory hit Tibo. It was the story he had heard whispered fearfully among the people of Mbonga, the chief, that this big white monster of the jungle was actually just a hairless ape, since hadn’t he been spotted with them?
Tibo could only stare in wide-eyed horror at the approaching apes. He saw their beetling brows, their great fangs, their wicked eyes. He noted their mighty muscles rolling beneath their shaggy hides. Their every attitude and expression was a menace. Tarzan saw this, too. He drew Tibo around in front of him.
Tibo could only stare in wide-eyed horror at the approaching apes. He saw their heavy brows, their sharp teeth, their fierce eyes. He noticed their powerful muscles moving beneath their thick fur. Every look and posture they had was threatening. Tarzan saw this as well. He turned Tibo around to face him.
“This is Tarzan’s Go-bu-balu,” he said. “Do not harm him, or Tarzan will kill you,” and he bared his own fangs in the teeth of the nearest ape.
“This is Tarzan’s Go-bu-balu,” he said. “Don’t hurt him, or Tarzan will kill you,” and he showed his own fangs to the closest ape.
“It is a Gomangani,” replied the ape. “Let me kill it. It is a Gomangani. The Gomangani are our enemies. Let me kill it.”
“It’s a Gomangani,” the ape said. “Let me kill it. It’s a Gomangani. The Gomangani are our enemies. Let me kill it.”
“Go away,” snarled Tarzan. “I tell you, Gunto, it is Tarzan’s balu. Go away or Tarzan will kill you,” and the ape-man took a step toward the advancing ape.
“Go away,” growled Tarzan. “I’m telling you, Gunto, it’s Tarzan’s balu. Go away or Tarzan will kill you,” and the ape-man stepped toward the approaching ape.
The latter sidled off, quite stiff and haughty, after the manner of a dog which meets another and is too proud to fight and too fearful to turn his back and run.
The latter walked away, quite stiff and arrogant, like a dog that encounters another but is too proud to fight and too scared to turn and run.
Next came Teeka, prompted by curiosity. At her side skipped little Gazan. They were filled with wonder like the others; but Teeka did not bare her fangs. Tarzan saw this and motioned that she approach.
Next came Teeka, driven by curiosity. Little Gazan skipped alongside her. They were filled with wonder like the others; but Teeka didn’t show her fangs. Tarzan noticed this and signaled her to come closer.
“Tarzan has a balu now,” he said. “He and Teeka’s balu can play together.”
“Tarzan has a baby now,” he said. “He and Teeka’s baby can play together.”
“It is a Gomangani,” replied Teeka. “It will kill my balu. Take it away, Tarzan.”
“It’s a Gomangani,” Teeka replied. “It’s going to kill my balu. Get it away, Tarzan.”
Tarzan laughed. “It could not harm Pamba, the rat,” he said. “It is but a little balu and very frightened. Let Gazan play with it.”
Tarzan laughed. “It can’t hurt Pamba, the rat,” he said. “It’s just a little balu and really scared. Let Gazan play with it.”
Teeka still was fearful, for with all their mighty ferocity the great anthropoids are timid; but at last, assured by her great confidence in Tarzan, she pushed Gazan forward toward the little black boy. The small ape, guided by instinct, drew back toward its mother, baring its small fangs and screaming in mingled fear and rage.
Teeka was still scared because, despite their incredible strength, the great anthropoids are shy. But finally, comforted by her strong trust in Tarzan, she pushed Gazan toward the little black boy. The small ape, driven by instinct, pulled back toward its mother, showing its tiny teeth and screaming in a mix of fear and anger.
Tibo, too, showed no signs of desiring a closer acquaintance with Gazan, so Tarzan gave up his efforts for the time.
Tibo also showed no interest in getting to know Gazan better, so Tarzan decided to stop trying for now.
During the week which followed, Tarzan found his time much occupied. His balu was a greater responsibility than he had counted upon. Not for a moment did he dare leave it, since of all the tribe, Teeka alone could have been depended upon to refrain from slaying the hapless black had it not been for Tarzan’s constant watchfulness. When the ape-man hunted, he must carry Go-bu-balu about with him. It was irksome, and then the little black seemed so stupid and fearful to Tarzan. It was quite helpless against even the lesser of the jungle creatures. Tarzan wondered how it had survived at all. He tried to teach it, and found a ray of hope in the fact that Go-bu-balu had mastered a few words of the language of the anthropoids, and that he could now cling to a high-tossed branch without screaming in fear; but there was something about the child which worried Tarzan. He often had watched the blacks within their village. He had seen the children playing, and always there had been much laughter; but little Go-bu-balu never laughed. It was true that Tarzan himself never laughed. Upon occasion he smiled, grimly, but to laughter he was a stranger. The black, however, should have laughed, reasoned the ape-man. It was the way of the Gomangani.
During the week that followed, Tarzan found himself very busy. His balu was a bigger responsibility than he had expected. Not for a moment did he dare leave it, since of all the tribe, Teeka was the only one who could be trusted not to kill the helpless black unless Tarzan was always watching. When the ape-man went hunting, he had to carry Go-bu-balu with him. It was annoying, and the little black seemed so clueless and scared to Tarzan. It was completely defenseless against even the smaller jungle creatures. Tarzan wondered how it had survived at all. He tried to teach it, and felt a glimmer of hope in the fact that Go-bu-balu had learned a few words from the language of the apes and could now cling to a high branch without screaming in fear; but there was something about the child that concerned Tarzan. He often watched the blacks in their village. He had seen the children playing, and there was always a lot of laughter; but little Go-bu-balu never laughed. It was true that Tarzan himself never laughed. Occasionally, he smiled, grimly, but laughter was foreign to him. The black, however, should have laughed, the ape-man thought. It was the way of the Gomangani.
Also, he saw that the little fellow often refused food and was growing thinner day by day. At times he surprised the boy sobbing softly to himself. Tarzan tried to comfort him, even as fierce Kala had comforted Tarzan when the ape-man was a balu, but all to no avail. Go-bu-balu merely no longer feared Tarzan—that was all. He feared every other living thing within the jungle. He feared the jungle days with their long excursions through the dizzy tree tops. He feared the jungle nights with their swaying, perilous couches far above the ground, and the grunting and coughing of the great carnivora prowling beneath him.
Also, he noticed that the little guy often refused to eat and was getting thinner every day. Sometimes he caught the boy quietly crying to himself. Tarzan tried to comfort him, just like the fierce Kala had comforted Tarzan when he was a cub, but nothing seemed to work. Go-bu-balu simply no longer feared Tarzan—that was it. He was scared of everything else that lived in the jungle. He dreaded the jungle days with their long treks through the dizzying treetops. He was afraid of the jungle nights with their swaying, dangerous perches high up in the trees, and the grunting and coughing of the big predators stalking below him.
Tarzan did not know what to do. His heritage of English blood rendered it a difficult thing even to consider a surrender of his project, though he was forced to admit to himself that his balu was not all that he had hoped. Though he was faithful to his self-imposed task, and even found that he had grown to like Go-bu-balu, he could not deceive himself into believing that he felt for it that fierce heat of passionate affection which Teeka revealed for Gazan, and which the black mother had shown for Go-bu-balu.
Tarzan didn't know what to do. His English heritage made it tough to even think about giving up on his project, though he had to admit to himself that his balu wasn't everything he had hoped for. Even though he was committed to his self-assigned task and had started to like Go-bu-balu, he couldn't trick himself into feeling the intense passion that Teeka displayed for Gazan, or the affection the black mother had shown for Go-bu-balu.
The little black boy from cringing terror at the sight of Tarzan passed by degrees into trustfulness and admiration. Only kindness had he ever received at the hands of the great white devil-god, yet he had seen with what ferocity his kindly captor could deal with others. He had seen him leap upon a certain he-ape which persisted in attempting to seize and slay Go-bu-balu. He had seen the strong, white teeth of the ape-man fastened in the neck of his adversary, and the mighty muscles tensed in battle. He had heard the savage, bestial snarls and roars of combat, and he had realized with a shudder that he could not differentiate between those of his guardian and those of the hairy ape.
The little black boy, who was once terrified at the sight of Tarzan, gradually developed trust and admiration for him. He had always experienced kindness from the great white devil-god, yet he had witnessed how fiercely his gentle captor could act against others. He saw him jump on a certain he-ape that kept trying to attack Go-bu-balu. He watched as the strong, white teeth of the ape-man sunk into the neck of his enemy, his powerful muscles tensed for battle. He heard the savage, animalistic snarls and roars of the fight, and he realized, with a shiver, that he couldn't tell the difference between the sounds of his protector and those of the wild ape.
He had seen Tarzan bring down a buck, just as Numa, the lion, might have done, leaping upon its back and fastening his fangs in the creature’s neck. Tibo had shuddered at the sight, but he had thrilled, too, and for the first time there entered his dull, Negroid mind a vague desire to emulate his savage foster parent. But Tibo, the little black boy, lacked the divine spark which had permitted Tarzan, the white boy, to benefit by his training in the ways of the fierce jungle. In imagination he was wanting, and imagination is but another name for super-intelligence.
He had watched Tarzan take down a deer, just like Numa, the lion, would do, jumping onto its back and sinking his teeth into the animal's neck. Tibo had shivered at the sight, but he also felt a thrill, and for the first time, a vague desire to imitate his wild foster parent crept into his dull, Negroid mind. But Tibo, the little black boy, didn’t have the divine spark that allowed Tarzan, the white boy, to thrive in the harsh jungle. He was lacking in imagination, and imagination is just another term for super-intelligence.
Imagination it is which builds bridges, and cities, and empires. The beasts know it not, the blacks only a little, while to one in a hundred thousand of earth’s dominant race it is given as a gift from heaven that man may not perish from the earth.
Imagination is what builds bridges, cities, and empires. The animals don’t understand it, some people only grasp it a bit, while for one in a hundred thousand of the dominant race on earth, it's a gift from above so that humanity doesn’t fade away.
While Tarzan pondered his problem concerning the future of his balu, Fate was arranging to take the matter out of his hands. Momaya, Tibo’s mother, grief-stricken at the loss of her boy, had consulted the tribal witch-doctor, but to no avail. The medicine he made was not good medicine, for though Momaya paid him two goats for it, it did not bring back Tibo, nor even indicate where she might search for him with reasonable assurance of finding him. Momaya, being of a short temper and of another people, had little respect for the witch-doctor of her husband’s tribe, and so, when he suggested that a further payment of two more fat goats would doubtless enable him to make stronger medicine, she promptly loosed her shrewish tongue upon him, and with such good effect that he was glad to take himself off with his zebra’s tail and his pot of magic.
While Tarzan thought about what to do regarding the future of his balu, Fate was already working to take the decision from him. Momaya, Tibo’s mother, devastated by the loss of her son, had gone to see the tribal witch-doctor, but it didn’t help. The medicine he provided was useless; even though Momaya paid him two goats for it, it didn’t bring Tibo back or give any hints about where she might look for him with any real hope of finding him. Momaya, known for her short temper and being from a different tribe, had little respect for the witch-doctor of her husband’s people. So, when he suggested that an additional payment of two more healthy goats would surely allow him to create stronger medicine, she quickly let her sharp tongue fly at him, so effectively that he was happy to leave with his zebra’s tail and his pot of magic.
When he had gone and Momaya had succeeded in partially subduing her anger, she gave herself over to thought, as she so often had done since the abduction of her Tibo, in the hope that she finally might discover some feasible means of locating him, or at least assuring herself as to whether he were alive or dead.
When he left and Momaya had managed to calm down a bit, she started to think, like she often did since Tibo was taken, hoping she might finally figure out a way to find him, or at least confirm whether he was alive or dead.
It was known to the blacks that Tarzan did not eat the flesh of man, for he had slain more than one of their number, yet never tasted the flesh of any. Too, the bodies always had been found, sometimes dropping as though from the clouds to alight in the center of the village. As Tibo’s body had not been found, Momaya argued that he still lived, but where?
It was known among the Black community that Tarzan didn't eat human flesh, even though he had killed several of their people, yet never tasted any of it. Also, the bodies had always appeared, sometimes seemingly falling from the sky to land in the middle of the village. Since Tibo's body had not been discovered, Momaya argued that he was still alive, but where?
Then it was that there came to her mind a recollection of Bukawai, the unclean, who dwelt in a cave in the hillside to the north, and who it was well known entertained devils in his evil lair. Few, if any, had the temerity to visit old Bukawai, firstly because of fear of his black magic and the two hyenas who dwelt with him and were commonly known to be devils masquerading, and secondly because of the loathsome disease which had caused Bukawai to be an outcast—a disease which was slowly eating away his face.
Then it occurred to her that she remembered Bukawai, the filthy one, who lived in a cave on the hillside to the north and was infamous for hosting demons in his wicked lair. Few, if any, were brave enough to visit old Bukawai, first because they feared his dark magic and the two hyenas that lived with him, which were commonly believed to be demons in disguise, and second because of the disgusting disease that had made Bukawai an outcast—a disease that was slowly consuming his face.
Now it was that Momaya reasoned shrewdly that if any might know the whereabouts of her Tibo, it would be Bukawai, who was in friendly intercourse with gods and demons, since a demon or a god it was who had stolen her baby; but even her great mother love was sorely taxed to find the courage to send her forth into the black jungle toward the distant hills and the uncanny abode of Bukawai, the unclean, and his devils.
Now Momaya wisely figured that if anyone knew where her Tibo was, it would be Bukawai, who had connections with both gods and demons, since it was either a demon or a god that had taken her baby. But even her strong motherly love was pushed to its limits as she tried to find the courage to head into the dark jungle towards the distant hills and the eerie home of Bukawai, the unclean, and his demons.
Mother love, however, is one of the human passions which closely approximates to the dignity of an irresistible force. It drives the frail flesh of weak woman to deeds of heroic measure. Momaya was neither frail nor weak, physically, but she was a woman, an ignorant, superstitious, African savage. She believed in devils, in black magic, and in witchcraft. To Momaya, the jungle was inhabited by far more terrifying things than lions and leopards—horrifying, nameless things which possessed the power of wreaking frightful harm under various innocent guises.
Mother love, however, is one of those human emotions that comes close to being an unstoppable force. It pushes the delicate body of a vulnerable woman to do incredible things. Momaya wasn’t physically fragile or weak, but she was a woman—an uneducated, superstitious African tribal member. She believed in demons, black magic, and witchcraft. For Momaya, the jungle was home to far more frightening things than lions and leopards—terrifying, nameless entities that could cause great harm while appearing innocent.
From one of the warriors of the village, whom she knew to have once stumbled upon the lair of Bukawai, the mother of Tibo learned how she might find it—near a spring of water which rose in a small rocky cañon between two hills, the easternmost of which was easily recognizable because of a huge granite boulder which rested upon its summit. The westerly hill was lower than its companion, and was quite bare of vegetation except for a single mimosa tree which grew just a little below its summit.
From one of the village warriors, who she knew had once found the hideout of Bukawai, Tibo's mother learned how to locate it—near a spring that bubbled up in a small rocky canyon between two hills. The eastern hill was easy to identify because of a large granite boulder sitting on top of it. The western hill was lower than the other and was mostly bare, except for a single mimosa tree that grew a bit below its peak.
These two hills, the man assured her, could be seen for some distance before she reached them, and together formed an excellent guide to her destination. He warned her, however, to abandon so foolish and dangerous an adventure, emphasizing what she already quite well knew, that if she escaped harm at the hands of Bukawai and his demons, the chances were that she would not be so fortunate with the great carnivora of the jungle through which she must pass going and returning.
These two hills, the man assured her, could be seen from quite a distance before she reached them, and together they made a great landmark for her destination. He warned her, though, to give up such a foolish and dangerous adventure, stressing what she already knew well—that if she managed to avoid harm from Bukawai and his demons, she probably wouldn't be so lucky with the large predators in the jungle she had to pass through on her way there and back.
The warrior even went to Momaya’s husband, who, in turn, having little authority over the vixenish lady of his choice, went to Mbonga, the chief. The latter summoned Momaya, threatening her with the direst punishment should she venture forth upon so unholy an excursion. The old chief’s interest in the matter was due solely to that age-old alliance which exists between church and state. The local witch-doctor, knowing his own medicine better than any other knew it, was jealous of all other pretenders to accomplishments in the black art. He long had heard of the power of Bukawai, and feared lest, should he succeed in recovering Momaya’s lost child, much of the tribal patronage and consequent fees would be diverted to the unclean one. As Mbonga received, as chief, a certain proportion of the witch-doctor’s fees and could expect nothing from Bukawai, his heart and soul were, quite naturally, wrapped up in the orthodox church.
The warrior even went to Momaya’s husband, who, having little control over his cunning wife, approached Mbonga, the chief. Mbonga called for Momaya, warning her of severe punishment if she attempted such a forbidden venture. The old chief was only interested in this situation because of the long-standing alliance between church and state. The local witch-doctor, who was more familiar with his own practices than anyone else, was envious of others who claimed to have skills in dark magic. He had heard about Bukawai's power and was afraid that if Bukawai managed to retrieve Momaya’s lost child, a lot of tribal support and payments would go to the outsider. Since Mbonga, as chief, received a share of the witch-doctor’s payments and could expect nothing from Bukawai, he was understandably devoted to the orthodox church.
But if Momaya could view with intrepid heart an excursion into the jungle and a visit to the fear-haunted abode of Bukawai, she was not likely to be deterred by threats of future punishment at the hands of old Mbonga, whom she secretly despised. Yet she appeared to accede to his injunctions, returning to her hut in silence.
But if Momaya could boldly face a trip into the jungle and a visit to the scary home of Bukawai, she was not likely to be scared off by threats of future punishment from old Mbonga, whom she secretly hated. Still, she seemed to go along with his orders, heading back to her hut in silence.
She would have preferred starting upon her quest by daylight, but this was now out of the question, since she must carry food and a weapon of some sort—things which she never could pass out of the village with by day without being subjected to curious questioning that surely would come immediately to the ears of Mbonga.
She would have preferred to start her journey in the daylight, but that was no longer an option. She had to carry food and some kind of weapon—things she could never take out of the village during the day without facing the curious questions that would definitely reach Mbonga's ears.
So Momaya bided her time until night, and just before the gates of the village were closed, she slipped through into the darkness and the jungle. She was much frightened, but she set her face resolutely toward the north, and though she paused often to listen, breathlessly, for the huge cats which, here, were her greatest terror, she nevertheless continued her way stanchly for several hours, until a low moan a little to her right and behind her brought her to a sudden stop.
So Momaya waited until night, and just before the village gates closed, she slipped into the darkness and the jungle. She was very scared, but she determinedly headed north, and even though she frequently paused to listen, breathless, for the large cats that were her biggest fear, she continued on steadily for several hours until a low moan to her right and behind her made her stop suddenly.
With palpitating heart the woman stood, scarce daring to breathe, and then, very faintly but unmistakable to her keen ears, came the stealthy crunching of twigs and grasses beneath padded feet.
With a racing heart, the woman stood, barely daring to breathe, and then, very faintly but unmistakably to her sharp ears, she heard the quiet crunching of twigs and grass beneath soft footsteps.
All about Momaya grew the giant trees of the tropical jungle, festooned with hanging vines and mosses. She seized upon the nearest and started to clamber, apelike, to the branches above. As she did so, there was a sudden rush of a great body behind her, a menacing roar that caused the earth to tremble, and something crashed into the very creepers to which she was clinging—but below her.
All around Momaya, massive trees of the tropical jungle towered, covered in hanging vines and moss. She grabbed onto the nearest one and began to climb, moving like an ape to reach the branches above. Suddenly, she heard a powerful rush behind her, a threatening roar that shook the ground, and something slammed into the very vines she was holding onto—but down below her.
Momaya drew herself to safety among the leafy branches and thanked the foresight which had prompted her to bring along the dried human ear which hung from a cord about her neck. She always had known that that ear was good medicine. It had been given her, when a girl, by the witch-doctor of her own tribe, and was nothing like the poor, weak medicine of Mbonga’s witch-doctor.
Momaya pulled herself to safety among the leafy branches and thanked her instincts for prompting her to bring the dried human ear that hung from a cord around her neck. She always knew that the ear was a powerful charm. It had been given to her as a girl by the witch doctor of her own tribe, and it was nothing like the weak, inferior charm from Mbonga's witch doctor.
All night Momaya clung to her perch, for although the lion sought other prey after a short time, she dared not descend into the darkness again, for fear she might encounter him or another of his kind; but at daylight she clambered down and resumed her way.
All night, Momaya held onto her spot. Even though the lion went after something else after a little while, she didn't dare to go back down into the dark, afraid she might run into him or another lion. But when the sun came up, she climbed down and continued on her way.
Tarzan of the Apes, finding that his balu never ceased to give evidence of terror in the presence of the apes of the tribe, and also that most of the adult apes were a constant menace to Go-bu-balu’s life, so that Tarzan dared not leave him alone with them, took to hunting with the little black boy farther and farther from the stamping grounds of the anthropoids.
Tarzan of the Apes, noticing that his little friend never stopped showing signs of fear around the tribe's apes, and aware that most of the adult apes posed a constant threat to Go-bu-balu’s safety, which made Tarzan hesitant to leave him alone with them, began to hunt with the little black boy farther and farther away from the apes' territory.
Little by little his absences from the tribe grew in length as he wandered farther away from them, until finally he found himself a greater distance to the north than he ever before had hunted, and with water and ample game and fruit, he felt not at all inclined to return to the tribe.
Little by little, he spent longer and longer away from the tribe as he ventured farther from them. Eventually, he found himself further north than he had ever hunted before, surrounded by water, plenty of game, and fruit. He felt no desire to return to the tribe at all.
Little Go-bu-balu gave evidences of a greater interest in life, an interest which varied in direct proportion to the distance he was from the apes of Kerchak. He now trotted along behind Tarzan when the ape-man went upon the ground, and in the trees he even did his best to follow his mighty foster parent. The boy was still sad and lonely. His thin, little body had grown steadily thinner since he had come among the apes, for while, as a young cannibal, he was not overnice in the matter of diet, he found it not always to his taste to stomach the weird things which tickled the palates of epicures among the apes.
Little Go-bu-balu showed a greater interest in life, an interest that increased the farther away he was from the apes of Kerchak. He now trotted along behind Tarzan whenever the ape-man was on the ground, and in the trees, he even tried his hardest to keep up with his powerful foster parent. The boy still felt sad and lonely. His small, thin body had become steadily thinner since he joined the apes, because while, as a young cannibal, he wasn't picky about food, he didn't always enjoy eating the strange things that appealed to the apes’ refined tastes.
His large eyes were very large indeed now, his cheeks sunken, and every rib of his emaciated body plainly discernible to whomsoever should care to count them. Constant terror, perhaps, had had as much to do with his physical condition as had improper food. Tarzan noticed the change and was worried. He had hoped to see his balu wax sturdy and strong. His disappointment was great. In only one respect did Go-bu-balu seem to progress—he readily was mastering the language of the apes. Even now he and Tarzan could converse in a fairly satisfactory manner by supplementing the meager ape speech with signs; but for the most part, Go-bu-balu was silent other than to answer questions put to him. His great sorrow was yet too new and too poignant to be laid aside even momentarily. Always he pined for Momaya—shrewish, hideous, repulsive, perhaps, she would have been to you or me, but to Tibo she was mamma, the personification of that one great love which knows no selfishness and which does not consume itself in its own fires.
His eyes were extremely large now, his cheeks sunken, and every rib of his thin body distinctly visible to anyone who bothered to count them. Constant fear, perhaps, contributed as much to his physical state as poor nutrition did. Tarzan noticed the change and felt worried. He had hoped to see his little one grow sturdy and strong. His disappointment was significant. The only area where Go-bu-balu seemed to make progress was in quickly learning the ape language. Even now, he and Tarzan could communicate fairly well by combining the limited ape vocabulary with gestures; but for the most part, Go-bu-balu was quiet except for answering questions directed at him. His deep sorrow was still too fresh and intense to set aside, even for a moment. He constantly longed for Momaya—who might seem bothersome, ugly, and repulsive to you or me, but to Tibo, she was mom, the embodiment of that one great love which knows no selfishness and doesn’t burn itself out.
As the two hunted, or rather as Tarzan hunted and Go-bu-balu tagged along in his wake, the ape-man noticed many things and thought much. Once they came upon Sabor moaning in the tall grasses. About her romped and played two little balls of fur, but her eyes were for one which lay between her great forepaws and did not romp, one who never would romp again.
As Tarzan hunted, with Go-bu-balu following behind, he noticed a lot and reflected on many things. At one point, they found Sabor crying in the tall grass. Playing nearby were two tiny furballs, but her gaze was fixed on one that lay between her large front paws and wasn’t playing, one who would never play again.
Tarzan read aright the anguish and the suffering of the huge mother cat. He had been minded to bait her. It was to do this that he had sneaked silently through the trees until he had come almost above her, but something held the ape-man as he saw the lioness grieving over her dead cub. With the acquisition of Go-bu-balu, Tarzan had come to realize the responsibilities and sorrows of parentage, without its joys. His heart went out to Sabor as it might not have done a few weeks before. As he watched her, there rose quite unbidden before him a vision of Momaya, the skewer through the septum of her nose, her pendulous under lip sagging beneath the weight which dragged it down. Tarzan saw not her unloveliness; he saw only the same anguish that was Sabor’s, and he winced. That strange functioning of the mind which sometimes is called association of ideas snapped Teeka and Gazan before the ape-man’s mental vision. What if one should come and take Gazan from Teeka. Tarzan uttered a low and ominous growl as though Gazan were his own. Go-bu-balu glanced here and there apprehensively, thinking that Tarzan had espied an enemy. Sabor sprang suddenly to her feet, her yellow-green eyes blazing, her tail lashing as she cocked her ears, and raising her muzzle, sniffed the air for possible danger. The two little cubs, which had been playing, scampered quickly to her, and standing beneath her, peered out from between her forelegs, their big ears upstanding, their little heads cocked first upon one side and then upon the other.
Tarzan understood the pain and suffering of the large mother cat. He had planned to tease her. He had silently crept through the trees until he was almost above her, but something stopped him when he saw the lioness mourning her dead cub. With the arrival of Go-bu-balu, Tarzan had started to grasp the responsibilities and sorrows of parenthood, without the joys. His heart went out to Sabor in a way it might not have a few weeks earlier. As he watched her, an image of Momaya unexpectedly came to mind, the skewer through the septum of her nose, her drooping underlip sagging under its weight. Tarzan overlooked her lack of beauty; he only saw the same grief that Sabor felt, and he flinched. That strange function of the mind, known as the association of ideas, brought Teeka and Gazan before Tarzan's mental image. What if someone came and took Gazan away from Teeka? Tarzan let out a low, ominous growl as if Gazan were his own. Go-bu-balu glanced around nervously, thinking that Tarzan had spotted an enemy. Sabor suddenly jumped to her feet, her yellow-green eyes shining, her tail whipping as she perked her ears and raised her muzzle, sniffing the air for any signs of danger. The two little cubs, who had been playing, quickly ran to her, standing beneath her while peeking out from between her forelegs, their large ears perked up, their little heads tilting back and forth.
With a shake of his black shock, Tarzan turned away and resumed his hunting in another direction; but all day there rose one after another, above the threshold of his objective mind, memory portraits of Sabor, of Momaya, and of Teeka—a lioness, a cannibal, and a she-ape, yet to the ape-man they were identical through motherhood.
With a shake of his black hair, Tarzan turned away and continued his hunt in a different direction; but all day long, memories of Sabor, Momaya, and Teeka—a lioness, a cannibal, and a female ape—kept surfacing in his mind. To the ape-man, they were all the same because of their motherhood.
It was noon of the third day when Momaya came within sight of the cave of Bukawai, the unclean. The old witch-doctor had rigged a framework of interlaced boughs to close the mouth of the cave from predatory beasts. This was now set to one side, and the black cavern beyond yawned mysterious and repellant. Momaya shivered as from a cold wind of the rainy season. No sign of life appeared about the cave, yet Momaya experienced that uncanny sensation as of unseen eyes regarding her malevolently. Again she shuddered. She tried to force her unwilling feet onward toward the cave, when from its depths issued an uncanny sound that was neither brute nor human, a weird sound that was akin to mirthless laughter.
It was noon on the third day when Momaya finally saw the cave of Bukawai, the unclean. The old witch-doctor had built a frame of intertwined branches to block the cave's entrance from wild animals. This was now pushed to one side, and the dark cavern beyond opened up, both mysterious and terrifying. Momaya shivered as if a cold wind from the rainy season had swept over her. There was no sign of life around the cave, yet Momaya felt that strange sensation of being watched by unseen eyes, filled with malice. She shuddered again. She tried to move her reluctant feet toward the cave, when a strange sound emerged from its depths—something that was neither animal nor human, a bizarre noise that resembled joyless laughter.
With a stifled scream, Momaya turned and fled into the jungle. For a hundred yards she ran before she could control her terror, and then she paused, listening. Was all her labor, were all the terrors and dangers through which she had passed to go for naught? She tried to steel herself to return to the cave, but again fright overcame her.
With a muffled scream, Momaya turned and dashed into the jungle. She ran for a hundred yards before she could calm her fear, and then she stopped, listening. Was all her hard work, all the fears and dangers she had faced, going to be in vain? She tried to gather her courage to go back to the cave, but once again fear took over.
Saddened, disheartened, she turned slowly upon the back trail toward the village of Mbonga. Her young shoulders now were drooped like those of an old woman who bears a great burden of many years with their accumulated pains and sorrows, and she walked with tired feet and a halting step. The spring of youth was gone from Momaya.
Saddened and disheartened, she slowly turned back toward the village of Mbonga. Her young shoulders now slumped like those of an old woman carrying the heavy burden of many years filled with pain and sorrow, and she walked with weary feet and a hesitant step. The vitality of youth had faded from Momaya.
For another hundred yards she dragged her weary way, her brain half paralyzed from dumb terror and suffering, and then there came to her the memory of a little babe that suckled at her breast, and of a slim boy who romped, laughing, about her, and they were both Tibo—her Tibo!
For another hundred yards, she dragged herself along, her mind half-numb from fear and pain, and then a memory hit her: a little baby nursed at her breast, and a slim boy who played and laughed around her, and they were both Tibo—her Tibo!
Her shoulders straightened. She shook her savage head, and she turned about and walked boldly back to the mouth of the cave of Bukawai, the unclean—of Bukawai, the witch-doctor.
Her shoulders squared. She shook her wild head and turned around, walking confidently back to the entrance of the cave of Bukawai, the filthy—of Bukawai, the witch doctor.
Again, from the interior of the cave came the hideous laughter that was not laughter. This time Momaya recognized it for what it was, the strange cry of a hyena. No more did she shudder, but she held her spear ready and called aloud to Bukawai to come out.
Again, from deep inside the cave came the terrifying sound that wasn't really laughter. This time Momaya recognized it for what it was, the eerie call of a hyena. She no longer flinched; instead, she kept her spear at the ready and shouted for Bukawai to come out.
Instead of Bukawai came the repulsive head of a hyena. Momaya poked at it with her spear, and the ugly, sullen brute drew back with an angry growl. Again Momaya called Bukawai by name, and this time there came an answer in mumbling tones that were scarce more human than those of the beast.
Instead of Bukawai, the disgusting head of a hyena appeared. Momaya prodded it with her spear, and the ugly, moody creature recoiled with an annoyed growl. Once again, Momaya called out Bukawai's name, and this time, a response came back in mumbled tones that were hardly more human than those of the beast.
“Who comes to Bukawai?” queried the voice.
“Who’s coming to Bukawai?” asked the voice.
“It is Momaya,” replied the woman; “Momaya from the village of Mbonga, the chief.”
“It’s Momaya,” the woman replied; “Momaya from the village of Mbonga, the chief.”
“What do you want?”
"What do you need?"
“I want good medicine, better medicine than Mbonga’s witch-doctor can make,” replied Momaya. “The great, white, jungle god has stolen my Tibo, and I want medicine to bring him back, or to find where he is hidden that I may go and get him.”
“I want good medicine, better medicine than what Mbonga’s witch-doctor can make,” replied Momaya. “The great, white jungle god has taken my Tibo, and I want medicine to bring him back or to find out where he is hidden so I can go and get him.”
“Who is Tibo?” asked Bukawai.
“Who’s Tibo?” asked Bukawai.
Momaya told him.
Momaya informed him.
“Bukawai’s medicine is very strong,” said the voice. “Five goats and a new sleeping mat are scarce enough in exchange for Bukawai’s medicine.”
“Bukawai’s medicine is really powerful,” the voice said. “Five goats and a new sleeping mat are hardly enough in exchange for Bukawai’s medicine.”
“Two goats are enough,” said Momaya, for the spirit of barter is strong in the breasts of the blacks.
“Two goats are enough,” said Momaya, because the spirit of trade is strong in the hearts of the people.
The pleasure of haggling over the price was a sufficiently potent lure to draw Bukawai to the mouth of the cave. Momaya was sorry when she saw him that he had not remained within. There are some things too horrible, too hideous, too repulsive for description—Bukawai’s face was of these. When Momaya saw him she understood why it was that he was almost inarticulate.
The thrill of negotiating the price was enough to pull Bukawai to the mouth of the cave. Momaya felt regret when she saw him that he hadn’t stayed inside. Some things are too awful, too ugly, too disgusting to describe—Bukawai’s face was one of those. When Momaya looked at him, she realized why he could barely speak.
Beside him were the two hyenas, which rumor had said were his only and constant companions. They made an excellent trio—the most repulsive of beasts with the most repulsive of humans.
Beside him were the two hyenas, which rumors said were his only and constant companions. They made an excellent trio—the most disgusting of animals with the most disgusting of humans.
“Five goats and a new sleeping mat,” mumbled Bukawai.
“Five goats and a new mattress,” mumbled Bukawai.
“Two fat goats and a sleeping mat.” Momaya raised her bid; but Bukawai was obdurate. He stuck for the five goats and the sleeping mat for a matter of half an hour, while the hyenas sniffed and growled and laughed hideously. Momaya was determined to give all that Bukawai asked if she could do no better, but haggling is second nature to black barterers, and in the end it partly repaid her, for a compromise finally was reached which included three fat goats, a new sleeping mat, and a piece of copper wire.
“Two plump goats and a sleeping mat.” Momaya raised her bid, but Bukawai was stubborn. He held out for the five goats and the sleeping mat for about half an hour, while the hyenas sniffed and growled and laughed grotesquely. Momaya was set on giving Bukawai whatever he asked for if she couldn’t do better, but negotiating is second nature to Black traders, and in the end, it paid off a little for her, as they finally came to a compromise that included three plump goats, a new sleeping mat, and a piece of copper wire.
“Come back tonight,” said Bukawai, “when the moon is two hours in the sky. Then will I make the strong medicine which shall bring Tibo back to you. Bring with you the three fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and the piece of copper wire the length of a large man’s forearm.”
“Come back tonight,” said Bukawai, “when the moon is two hours high. Then I will make the strong medicine that will bring Tibo back to you. Bring with you the three fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and a piece of copper wire as long as a large man’s forearm.”
“I cannot bring them,” said Momaya. “You will have to come after them. When you have restored Tibo to me, you shall have them all at the village of Mbonga.”
“I can’t bring them,” said Momaya. “You’ll have to come get them. Once you’ve returned Tibo to me, you can have all of them at the village of Mbonga.”
Bukawai shook his head.
Bukawai nodded no.
“I will make no medicine,” he said, “until I have the goats and the mat and the copper wire.”
“I won’t make any medicine,” he said, “until I have the goats, the mat, and the copper wire.”
Momaya plead and threatened, but all to no avail. Finally, she turned away and started off through the jungle toward the village of Mbonga. How she could get three goats and a sleeping mat out of the village and through the jungle to the cave of Bukawai, she did not know, but that she would do it somehow she was quite positive—she would do it or die. Tibo must be restored to her.
Momaya begged and threatened, but nothing seemed to work. Finally, she turned away and began walking through the jungle towards the village of Mbonga. She had no idea how she would get three goats and a sleeping mat out of the village and through the jungle to Bukawai's cave, but she was determined to find a way—she would do it or die trying. Tibo had to be brought back to her.
Tarzan coming lazily through the jungle with little Go-bu-balu, caught the scent of Bara, the deer. Tarzan hungered for the flesh of Bara. Naught tickled his palate so greatly; but to stalk Bara with Go-bu-balu at his heels, was out of the question, so he hid the child in the crotch of a tree where the thick foliage screened him from view, and set off swiftly and silently upon the spoor of Bara.
Tarzan strolled through the jungle with little Go-bu-balu, picking up the scent of Bara, the deer. Tarzan craved the taste of Bara's meat; nothing satisfied him more. However, tracking Bara with Go-bu-balu following him was not an option, so he tucked the child into the fork of a tree where the dense leaves concealed him from sight and set off quickly and quietly on the trail of Bara.
Tibo alone was more terrified than Tibo even among the apes. Real and apparent dangers are less disconcerting than those which we imagine, and only the gods of his people knew how much Tibo imagined.
Tibo was more scared than even the other apes. Real threats and fake ones are less unsettling than those we create in our minds, and only the gods of his people understood how much Tibo imagined.
He had been but a short time in his hiding place when he heard something approaching through the jungle. He crouched closer to the limb upon which he lay and prayed that Tarzan would return quickly. His wide eyes searched the jungle in the direction of the moving creature.
He had only been in his hiding spot for a short time when he heard something coming through the jungle. He crouched closer to the branch beneath him and hoped that Tarzan would come back soon. His wide eyes scanned the jungle in the direction of the moving creature.
What if it was a leopard that had caught his scent! It would be upon him in a minute. Hot tears flowed from the large eyes of little Tibo. The curtain of jungle foliage rustled close at hand. The thing was but a few paces from his tree! His eyes fairly popped from his black face as he watched for the appearance of the dread creature which presently would thrust a snarling countenance from between the vines and creepers.
What if a leopard had caught his scent! It would be on him in no time. Hot tears streamed from little Tibo's big eyes. The curtain of jungle leaves rustled nearby. The creature was just a few steps away from his tree! His eyes bulged from his dark face as he waited for the scary beast to push its snarling face through the vines and creepers.
And then the curtain parted and a woman stepped into full view. With a gasping cry, Tibo tumbled from his perch and raced toward her. Momaya suddenly started back and raised her spear, but a second later she cast it aside and caught the thin body in her strong arms.
And then the curtain opened and a woman came into full view. With a startled shout, Tibo fell from his spot and rushed toward her. Momaya quickly stepped back and lifted her spear, but a moment later she tossed it aside and embraced the slim figure in her strong arms.
Crushing it to her, she cried and laughed all at one and the same time, and hot tears of joy, mingled with the tears of Tibo, trickled down the crease between her naked breasts.
Crushing it to her, she cried and laughed all at once, and hot tears of joy, mixed with Tibo's tears, streamed down the crease between her bare breasts.
Disturbed by the noise so close at hand, there arose from his sleep in a near-by thicket Numa, the lion. He looked through the tangled underbrush and saw the black woman and her young. He licked his chops and measured the distance between them and himself. A short charge and a long leap would carry him upon them. He flicked the end of his tail and sighed.
Disturbed by the noise nearby, Numa, the lion, woke up from his sleep in a nearby thicket. He peered through the thick underbrush and spotted the Black woman and her child. He licked his lips and gauged the distance between them and himself. A quick sprint and a long jump would get him to them easily. He flicked the tip of his tail and sighed.
A vagrant breeze, swirling suddenly in the wrong direction, carried the scent of Tarzan to the sensitive nostrils of Bara, the deer. There was a startled tensing of muscles and cocking of ears, a sudden dash, and Tarzan’s meat was gone. The ape-man angrily shook his head and turned back toward the spot where he had left Go-bu-balu. He came softly, as was his way. Before he reached the spot he heard strange sounds—the sound of a woman laughing and of a woman weeping, and the two which seemed to come from one throat were mingled with the convulsive sobbing of a child. Tarzan hastened, and when Tarzan hastened, only the birds and the wind went faster.
A stray breeze, unexpectedly blowing in the wrong direction, carried the scent of Tarzan to Bara, the deer. There was a sudden tension in her muscles, her ears perked up, there was a quick dash, and Tarzan’s meal was gone. The ape-man shook his head in frustration and turned back toward where he had left Go-bu-balu. He approached quietly, as he usually did. Before he got there, he heard strange sounds—a woman laughing and a woman crying, both coming from the same voice, mixed with the frantic sobbing of a child. Tarzan quickened his pace, and when Tarzan moved faster, only the birds and the wind kept up.
And as Tarzan approached the sounds, he heard another, a deep sigh. Momaya did not hear it, nor did Tibo; but the ears of Tarzan were as the ears of Bara, the deer. He heard the sigh, and he knew, so he unloosed the heavy spear which dangled at his back. Even as he sped through the branches of the trees, with the same ease that you or I might take out a pocket handkerchief as we strolled nonchalantly down a lazy country lane, Tarzan of the Apes took the spear from its thong that it might be ready against any emergency.
And as Tarzan got closer to the sounds, he heard another one, a deep sigh. Momaya didn’t hear it, and neither did Tibo; but Tarzan’s ears were like those of a deer. He heard the sigh and understood, so he released the heavy spear that hung at his back. Just like you or I might pull out a pocket handkerchief while casually walking down a relaxed country lane, Tarzan of the Apes pulled the spear from its strap, ready for any situation.
Numa, the lion, did not rush madly to attack. He reasoned again, and reason told him that already the prey was his, so he pushed his great bulk through the foliage and stood eyeing his meat with baleful, glaring eyes.
Numa, the lion, didn’t charge recklessly to attack. He thought it over again, and logic told him that the prey was already his, so he pushed his massive body through the undergrowth and stood gazing at his meal with intense, piercing eyes.
Momaya saw him and shrieked, drawing Tibo closer to her breast. To have found her child and to lose him, all in a moment! She raised her spear, throwing her hand far back of her shoulder. Numa roared and stepped slowly forward. Momaya cast her weapon. It grazed the tawny shoulder, inflicting a flesh wound which aroused all the terrific bestiality of the carnivore, and the lion charged.
Momaya saw him and screamed, pulling Tibo closer to her chest. To find her child and lose him in an instant! She lifted her spear, swinging her arm back over her shoulder. Numa roared and moved forward slowly. Momaya threw her weapon. It barely missed the lion's tan shoulder, causing a flesh wound that provoked all the terrifying primal instincts of the predator, and the lion charged.
Momaya tried to close her eyes, but could not. She saw the flashing swiftness of the huge, oncoming death, and then she saw something else. She saw a mighty, naked white man drop as from the heavens into the path of the charging lion. She saw the muscles of a great arm flash in the light of the equatorial sun as it filtered, dappling, through the foliage above. She saw a heavy hunting spear hurtle through the air to meet the lion in midleap.
Momaya tried to shut her eyes, but she couldn't. She saw the quick approach of the huge, looming death, and then she noticed something else. She saw a powerful, naked white man descend from the sky into the path of the charging lion. She saw the muscles of a strong arm glimmer in the light of the equatorial sun as it filtered through the leaves above. She saw a heavy hunting spear soar through the air to intercept the lion mid-leap.
Numa brought up upon his haunches, roaring terribly and striking at the spear which protruded from his breast. His great blows bent and twisted the weapon. Tarzan, crouching and with hunting knife in hand, circled warily about the frenzied cat. Momaya, wide-eyed, stood rooted to the spot, watching, fascinated.
Numa rose up on his haunches, roaring loudly and striking at the spear that stuck out from his chest. His powerful hits bent and twisted the weapon. Tarzan, crouching with a hunting knife in hand, moved cautiously around the frantic big cat. Momaya, with wide eyes, stood frozen in place, watching in fascination.
In sudden fury Numa hurled himself toward the ape-man, but the wiry creature eluded the blundering charge, side-stepping quickly only to rush in upon his foe. Twice the hunting blade flashed in the air. Twice it fell upon the back of Numa, already weakening from the spear point so near his heart. The second stroke of the blade pierced fair into the beast’s spine, and with a last convulsive sweep of the forepaws, in a vain attempt to reach his tormentor, Numa sprawled upon the ground, paralyzed and dying.
In a fit of rage, Numa charged at the ape-man, but the quick creature dodged the clumsy attack, swiftly moving aside to then rush at his opponent. Twice the hunting knife flashed through the air. Twice it struck Numa’s back, which was already weakening from the spear that was so close to his heart. The second strike of the knife pierced deep into the beast’s spine, and with one last desperate sweep of his forepaws, trying to reach his attacker, Numa collapsed on the ground, paralyzed and dying.
Bukawai, fearful lest he should lose any recompense, followed Momaya with the intention of persuading her to part with her ornaments of copper and iron against her return with the price of the medicine—to pay, as it were, for an option on his services as one pays a retaining fee to an attorney, for, like an attorney, Bukawai knew the value of his medicine and that it was well to collect as much as possible in advance.
Bukawai, worried about missing out on any payment, followed Momaya with the aim of convincing her to give up her copper and iron ornaments in exchange for her return with the money for the medicine—essentially paying a sort of advance for his services, similar to how someone pays a retainer to a lawyer. Like a lawyer, Bukawai understood the worth of his medicine and knew it was wise to collect as much as he could beforehand.
The witch-doctor came upon the scene as Tarzan leaped to meet the lion’s charge. He saw it all and marveled, guessing immediately that this must be the strange white demon concerning whom he had heard vague rumors before Momaya came to him.
The witch-doctor arrived as Tarzan jumped to face the lion's attack. He witnessed everything and was amazed, instantly realizing that this must be the unusual white demon he had heard vague stories about before Momaya came to see him.
Momaya, now that the lion was past harming her or hers, gazed with new terror upon Tarzan. It was he who had stolen her Tibo. Doubtless he would attempt to steal him again. Momaya hugged the boy close to her. She was determined to die this time rather than suffer Tibo to be taken from her again.
Momaya, now that the lion was no longer a threat to her or her family, looked at Tarzan with fresh fear. He was the one who had taken her Tibo. Surely, he would try to take him again. Momaya held the boy tightly against her. She was resolved to die this time rather than let Tibo be taken from her again.
Tarzan eyed them in silence. The sight of the boy clinging, sobbing, to his mother aroused within his savage breast a melancholy loneliness. There was none thus to cling to Tarzan, who yearned so for the love of someone, of something.
Tarzan watched them quietly. Seeing the boy holding tightly to his mother and crying stirred a deep sense of loneliness in him. There was no one for Tarzan to hold onto, and he longed for the love of someone or something.
At last Tibo looked up, because of the quiet that had fallen upon the jungle, and saw Tarzan. He did not shrink.
At last, Tibo looked up because of the silence that had settled over the jungle and saw Tarzan. He didn’t flinch.
“Tarzan,” he said, in the speech of the great apes of the tribe of Kerchak, “do not take me from Momaya, my mother. Do not take me again to the lair of the hairy, tree men, for I fear Taug and Gunto and the others. Let me stay with Momaya, O Tarzan, God of the Jungle! Let me stay with Momaya, my mother, and to the end of our days we will bless you and put food before the gates of the village of Mbonga that you may never hunger.”
“Tarzan,” he said, using the language of the great apes from Kerchak’s tribe, “don’t take me away from Momaya, my mother. Don’t bring me back to the den of the hairy tree men, because I’m scared of Taug, Gunto, and the others. Please let me stay with Momaya, O Tarzan, God of the Jungle! Let me stay with Momaya, my mother, and for the rest of our lives, we will honor you and put food at the gates of the village of Mbonga so that you may never go hungry.”
Tarzan sighed.
Tarzan let out a sigh.
“Go,” he said, “back to the village of Mbonga, and Tarzan will follow to see that no harm befalls you.”
“Go,” he said, “back to the village of Mbonga, and Tarzan will follow to make sure you’re safe.”
Tibo translated the words to his mother, and the two turned their backs upon the ape-man and started off toward home. In the heart of Momaya was a great fear and a great exultation, for never before had she walked with God, and never had she been so happy. She strained little Tibo to her, stroking his thin cheek. Tarzan saw and sighed again.
Tibo translated the words for his mother, and they both turned away from the ape-man and headed home. In Momaya's heart, there was a mix of deep fear and immense joy, for she had never walked with God before, and she had never felt this happy. She pulled little Tibo close, gently stroking his thin cheek. Tarzan watched them and sighed again.
“For Teeka there is Teeka’s balu,” he soliloquized; “for Sabor there are balus, and for the she-Gomangani, and for Bara, and for Manu, and even for Pamba, the rat; but for Tarzan there can be none—neither a she nor a balu. Tarzan of the Apes is a man, and it must be that man walks alone.”
“For Teeka, there’s Teeka’s balu,” he mused; “for Sabor, there are balus, and for the she-Gomangani, and for Bara, and for Manu, and even for Pamba, the rat; but for Tarzan, there can be none—neither a she nor a balu. Tarzan of the Apes is a man, and it seems that man must walk alone.”
Bukawai saw them go, and he mumbled through his rotting face, swearing a great oath that he would yet have the three fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and the bit of copper wire.
Bukawai watched them leave, and he muttered through his decaying face, swearing a strong oath that he would still get the three fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and the piece of copper wire.
CHAPTER VI
The Witch-Doctor Seeks Vengeance
Lord Greystoke was hunting, or, to be more accurate, he was shooting pheasants at Chamston-Hedding. Lord Greystoke was immaculately and appropriately garbed—to the minutest detail he was vogue. To be sure, he was among the forward guns, not being considered a sporting shot, but what he lacked in skill he more than made up in appearance. At the end of the day he would, doubtless, have many birds to his credit, since he had two guns and a smart loader—many more birds than he could eat in a year, even had he been hungry, which he was not, having but just arisen from the breakfast table.
Lord Greystoke was out hunting, or more accurately, shooting pheasants at Chamston-Hedding. He was perfectly and stylishly dressed—down to the last detail he was on-trend. Although he was among the inexperienced shooters and not considered a skilled shot, he more than made up for his lack of ability with his appearance. By the end of the day, he would likely have plenty of birds to show for his efforts, since he had two guns and an efficient loader—far more birds than he could eat in a year, even if he had been hungry, which he wasn’t, having just come from the breakfast table.
The beaters—there were twenty-three of them, in white smocks—had but just driven the birds into a patch of gorse, and were now circling to the opposite side that they might drive down toward the guns. Lord Greystoke was quite as excited as he ever permitted himself to become. There was an exhilaration in the sport that would not be denied. He felt his blood tingling through his veins as the beaters approached closer and closer to the birds. In a vague and stupid sort of way Lord Greystoke felt, as he always felt upon such occasions, that he was experiencing a sensation somewhat akin to a reversion to a prehistoric type—that the blood of an ancient forbear was coursing hot through him, a hairy, half-naked forbear who had lived by the hunt.
The beaters—twenty-three of them in white smocks—had just driven the birds into a patch of gorse and were now circling to the other side to push them down toward the guns. Lord Greystoke was just as excited as he ever allowed himself to be. There was an undeniable exhilaration in the sport. He felt his blood tingling in his veins as the beaters got closer and closer to the birds. In a vague and silly way, Lord Greystoke felt, as he always did on such occasions, that he was experiencing something similar to reverting to a prehistoric type—that the blood of an ancient ancestor was running hot through him, a hairy, half-naked ancestor who had lived by the hunt.
And far away in a matted equatorial jungle another Lord Greystoke, the real Lord Greystoke, hunted. By the standards which he knew, he, too, was vogue—utterly vogue, as was the primal ancestor before the first eviction. The day being sultry, the leopard skin had been left behind. The real Lord Greystoke had not two guns, to be sure, nor even one, neither did he have a smart loader; but he possessed something infinitely more efficacious than guns, or loaders, or even twenty-three beaters in white smocks—he possessed an appetite, an uncanny woodcraft, and muscles that were as steel springs.
And far away in a tangled equatorial jungle, another Lord Greystoke, the real Lord Greystoke, was hunting. By the standards he knew, he was also in style—totally in style, just like his primal ancestor before the first eviction. Since it was a hot day, he left the leopard skin behind. The real Lord Greystoke didn't have two guns, or even one, nor did he have a fancy loader; but he had something much more effective than guns, or loaders, or even twenty-three beaters in white smocks—he had a craving, incredible survival skills, and muscles like steel springs.
Later that day, in England, a Lord Greystoke ate bountifully of things he had not killed, and he drank other things which were uncorked to the accompaniment of much noise. He patted his lips with snowy linen to remove the faint traces of his repast, quite ignorant of the fact that he was an impostor and that the rightful owner of his noble title was even then finishing his own dinner in far-off Africa. He was not using snowy linen, though. Instead he drew the back of a brown forearm and hand across his mouth and wiped his bloody fingers upon his thighs. Then he moved slowly through the jungle to the drinking place, where, upon all fours, he drank as drank his fellows, the other beasts of the jungle.
Later that day, in England, Lord Greystoke feasted on plenty of things he hadn’t hunted himself, and he enjoyed drinks that were uncorked with a lot of commotion. He dabbed his lips with pristine linen to remove the faint traces of his meal, completely unaware that he was a fraud and that the true owner of his noble title was finishing his own dinner in distant Africa. He wasn’t using pristine linen, though. Instead, he wiped the back of a brown forearm and hand across his mouth and cleaned his bloody fingers on his thighs. Then he moved slowly through the jungle to the watering hole, where he got down on all fours and drank like the other creatures of the jungle.
As he quenched his thirst, another denizen of the gloomy forest approached the stream along the path behind him. It was Numa, the lion, tawny of body and black of mane, scowling and sinister, rumbling out low, coughing roars. Tarzan of the Apes heard him long before he came within sight, but the ape-man went on with his drinking until he had had his fill; then he arose, slowly, with the easy grace of a creature of the wilds and all the quiet dignity that was his birthright.
As he drank, another inhabitant of the dark forest approached the stream from behind him. It was Numa, the lion, with a tawny body and a black mane, looking fierce and ominous, letting out low, rumbling roars. Tarzan of the Apes heard him long before he came into view, but the ape-man continued drinking until he was satisfied; then he stood up slowly, with the effortless grace of a wild creature and all the quiet dignity that was his by birth.
Numa halted as he saw the man standing at the very spot where the king would drink. His jaws were parted, and his cruel eyes gleamed. He growled and advanced slowly. The man growled, too, backing slowly to one side, and watching, not the lion’s face, but its tail. Should that commence to move from side to side in quick, nervous jerks, it would be well to be upon the alert, and should it rise suddenly erect, straight and stiff, then one might prepare to fight or flee; but it did neither, so Tarzan merely backed away and the lion came down and drank scarce fifty feet from where the man stood.
Numa paused when he saw the man standing right where the king would drink. His jaws were open, and his cruel eyes shone. He growled and moved forward slowly. The man growled in response, backing away slowly to the side and watching not the lion’s face, but its tail. If that tail started to move from side to side in quick, nervous jerks, it would be wise to be on high alert, and if it shot up suddenly, straight and stiff, then one should be ready to fight or run; but since it did neither, Tarzan simply stepped back while the lion came down and drank less than fifty feet away from where the man stood.
Tomorrow they might be at one another’s throats, but today there existed one of those strange and inexplicable truces which so often are seen among the savage ones of the jungle. Before Numa had finished drinking, Tarzan had returned into the forest, and was swinging away in the direction of the village of Mbonga, the black chief.
Tomorrow they might be ready to fight, but today there was one of those odd and unexplainable lulls in conflict that often happen among the wild ones of the jungle. Before Numa had finished drinking, Tarzan had gone back into the forest and was swinging off in the direction of Mbonga, the black chief's village.
It had been at least a moon since the ape-man had called upon the Gomangani. Not since he had restored little Tibo to his grief-stricken mother had the whim seized him to do so. The incident of the adopted balu was a closed one to Tarzan. He had sought to find something upon which to lavish such an affection as Teeka lavished upon her balu, but a short experience of the little black boy had made it quite plain to the ape-man that no such sentiment could exist between them.
It had been at least a month since the ape-man had visited the Gomangani. Not since he had returned little Tibo to his heartbroken mother had he felt the urge to do so. The situation with the adopted balu was in the past for Tarzan. He had tried to find something to care for like Teeka cared for her balu, but a brief experience with the little black boy had made it clear to the ape-man that no such feelings could develop between them.
The fact that he had for a time treated the little black as he might have treated a real balu of his own had in no way altered the vengeful sentiments with which he considered the murderers of Kala. The Gomangani were his deadly enemies, nor could they ever be aught else. Today he looked forward to some slight relief from the monotony of his existence in such excitement as he might derive from baiting the blacks.
The fact that he had, for a while, treated the little black like he might have treated a real pet of his own didn’t change the intense hatred he felt towards the murderers of Kala. The Gomangani were his sworn enemies, and they would never be anything else. Today, he hoped for a little break from the boredom of his life by finding some excitement in provoking the blacks.
It was not yet dark when he reached the village and took his place in the great tree overhanging the palisade. From beneath came a great wailing out of the depths of a near-by hut. The noise fell disagreeably upon Tarzan’s ears—it jarred and grated. He did not like it, so he decided to go away for a while in the hopes that it might cease; but though he was gone for a couple of hours the wailing still continued when he returned.
It wasn't dark yet when he got to the village and climbed up into the large tree that hung over the palisade. From below came loud crying from a nearby hut. The sound grated on Tarzan's ears—it was unpleasant. He didn't like it, so he chose to leave for a while hoping it would stop; but even after he was gone for a couple of hours, the crying was still going when he got back.
With the intention of putting a violent termination to the annoying sound, Tarzan slipped silently from the tree into the shadows beneath. Creeping stealthily and keeping well in the cover of other huts, he approached that from which rose the sounds of lamentation. A fire burned brightly before the doorway as it did before other doorways in the village. A few females squatted about, occasionally adding their own mournful howlings to those of the master artist within.
With the goal of stopping the annoying sound once and for all, Tarzan quietly climbed down from the tree and into the shadows below. He crept carefully, staying hidden behind other huts, as he made his way towards the source of the cries. A fire blazed brightly in front of the doorway, just like it did in front of other houses in the village. A few women sat nearby, occasionally adding their own sad howls to those of the main voice inside.
The ape-man smiled a slow smile as he thought of the consternation which would follow the quick leap that would carry him among the females and into the full light of the fire. Then he would dart into the hut during the excitement, throttle the chief screamer, and be gone into the jungle before the blacks could gather their scattered nerves for an assault.
The ape-man grinned as he imagined the confusion that would erupt when he swiftly jumped among the women and into the bright light of the fire. Then, he would slip into the hut during the chaos, choke the loudest one, and vanish into the jungle before the locals could collect themselves to fight back.
Many times had Tarzan behaved similarly in the village of Mbonga, the chief. His mysterious and unexpected appearances always filled the breasts of the poor, superstitious blacks with the panic of terror; never, it seemed, could they accustom themselves to the sight of him. It was this terror which lent to the adventures the spice of interest and amusement which the human mind of the ape-man craved. Merely to kill was not in itself sufficient. Accustomed to the sight of death, Tarzan found no great pleasure in it. Long since had he avenged the death of Kala, but in the accomplishment of it, he had learned the excitement and the pleasure to be derived from the baiting of the blacks. Of this he never tired.
Many times Tarzan had acted the same way in the village of Mbonga, the chief. His mysterious and unexpected appearances always filled the poor, superstitious locals with sheer terror; it seemed they could never get used to seeing him. It was this fear that added an intriguing and entertaining element to the adventures that the ape-man's human mind craved. Simply killing wasn’t enough on its own. Being used to death, Tarzan didn’t find much enjoyment in it. Long ago, he had avenged Kala's death, but in doing so, he discovered the thrill and pleasure that came from teasing the locals. He never grew tired of this.
It was just as he was about to spring forward with a savage roar that a figure appeared in the doorway of the hut. It was the figure of the wailer whom he had come to still, the figure of a young woman with a wooden skewer through the split septum of her nose, with a heavy metal ornament depending from her lower lip, which it had dragged down to hideous and repulsive deformity, with strange tattooing upon forehead, cheeks, and breasts, and a wonderful coiffure built up with mud and wire.
It was just as he was about to leap forward with a fierce roar that a figure appeared in the doorway of the hut. It was the wailer he had come to silence, a young woman with a wooden skewer through the split septum of her nose, with a heavy metal ornament hanging from her lower lip, which it had pulled down into a hideous and repulsive deformity, with strange tattoos on her forehead, cheeks, and chest, and an incredible hairstyle constructed with mud and wire.
A sudden flare of the fire threw the grotesque figure into high relief, and Tarzan recognized her as Momaya, the mother of Tibo. The fire also threw out a fitful flame which carried to the shadows where Tarzan lurked, picking out his light brown body from the surrounding darkness. Momaya saw him and knew him. With a cry, she leaped forward and Tarzan came to meet her. The other women, turning, saw him, too; but they did not come toward him. Instead they rose as one, shrieked as one, fled as one.
A sudden burst of the fire highlighted the grotesque figure, and Tarzan recognized her as Momaya, Tibo's mother. The flames flickered, casting light into the shadows where Tarzan hid, revealing his light brown body against the darkness. Momaya spotted him and recognized him. With a cry, she rushed forward, and Tarzan moved to meet her. The other women turned to see him too, but they didn't approach. Instead, they all stood up together, screamed in unison, and ran away as one.
Momaya threw herself at Tarzan’s feet, raising supplicating hands toward him and pouring forth from her mutilated lips a perfect cataract of words, not one of which the ape-man comprehended. For a moment he looked down upon the upturned, frightful face of the woman. He had come to slay, but that overwhelming torrent of speech filled him with consternation and with awe. He glanced about him apprehensively, then back at the woman. A revulsion of feeling seized him. He could not kill little Tibo’s mother, nor could he stand and face this verbal geyser. With a quick gesture of impatience at the spoiling of his evening’s entertainment, he wheeled and leaped away into the darkness. A moment later he was swinging through the black jungle night, the cries and lamentations of Momaya growing fainter in the distance.
Momaya threw herself at Tarzan’s feet, raising her hands in desperation toward him and pouring out a stream of words from her damaged lips, not one of which the ape-man understood. For a moment, he looked down at the upturned, frightening face of the woman. He had come to kill, but that overwhelming flood of speech filled him with confusion and awe. He glanced around nervously, then back at the woman. A wave of mixed feelings hit him. He couldn’t kill little Tibo’s mother, nor could he stay and deal with this verbal outburst. With a quick gesture of irritation at ruining his evening's entertainment, he turned and leaped away into the darkness. Moments later, he was swinging through the black jungle night, the cries and laments of Momaya fading into the distance.
It was with a sigh of relief that he finally reached a point from which he could no longer hear them, and finding a comfortable crotch high among the trees, composed himself for a night of dreamless slumber, while a prowling lion moaned and coughed beneath him, and in far-off England the other Lord Greystoke, with the assistance of a valet, disrobed and crawled between spotless sheets, swearing irritably as a cat meowed beneath his window.
It was with a sigh of relief that he finally reached a spot where he could no longer hear them. Finding a comfortable nook high among the trees, he settled in for a night of deep, dreamless sleep, while a wandering lion moaned and coughed beneath him. Meanwhile, in distant England, the other Lord Greystoke, with the help of a valet, undressed and crawled into clean sheets, muttering irritably as a cat meowed outside his window.
As Tarzan followed the fresh spoor of Horta, the boar, the following morning, he came upon the tracks of two Gomangani, a large one and a small one. The ape-man, accustomed as he was to questioning closely all that fell to his perceptions, paused to read the story written in the soft mud of the game trail. You or I would have seen little of interest there, even if, by chance, we could have seen aught. Perhaps had one been there to point them out to us, we might have noted indentations in the mud, but there were countless indentations, one overlapping another into a confusion that would have been entirely meaningless to us. To Tarzan each told its own story. Tantor, the elephant, had passed that way as recently as three suns since. Numa had hunted here the night just gone, and Horta, the boar, had walked slowly along the trail within an hour; but what held Tarzan’s attention was the spoor tale of the Gomangani. It told him that the day before an old man had gone toward the north in company with a little boy, and that with them had been two hyenas.
As Tarzan followed the fresh tracks of Horta, the boar, the next morning, he came across the footprints of two Gomangani, one large and one small. The ape-man, used to closely examining everything he encountered, paused to interpret the story written in the soft mud of the game trail. You or I might have seen little of interest there, even if we could have perceived anything at all. Perhaps if someone had pointed them out to us, we might have noticed the imprints in the mud, but there were countless marks, overlapping each other in a confusion that would have seemed entirely meaningless to us. To Tarzan, each imprint had its own story. Tantor, the elephant, had passed that way as recently as three days ago. Numa had hunted there the previous night, and Horta, the boar, had walked slowly along the trail within the past hour; but what captured Tarzan’s attention was the spoor story of the Gomangani. It revealed to him that the day before, an old man had headed north with a little boy and two hyenas.
Tarzan scratched his head in puzzled incredulity. He could see by the overlapping of the footprints that the beasts had not been following the two, for sometimes one was ahead of them and one behind, and again both were in advance, or both were in the rear. It was very strange and quite inexplicable, especially where the spoor showed where the hyenas in the wider portions of the path had walked one on either side of the human pair, quite close to them. Then Tarzan read in the spoor of the smaller Gomangani a shrinking terror of the beast that brushed his side, but in that of the old man was no sign of fear.
Tarzan scratched his head in confused disbelief. He noticed from the overlapping footprints that the animals weren't following the two; sometimes one was in front and one was behind, and at other times both were ahead or behind. It was really strange and completely puzzling, especially where the tracks showed that the hyenas had walked on either side of the humans very closely. Then Tarzan saw in the tracks of the smaller Gomangani a sense of shrinking fear from the creature that brushed against him, but in the old man's footprints, there was no hint of fear.
At first Tarzan had been solely occupied by the remarkable juxtaposition of the spoor of Dango and Gomangani, but now his keen eyes caught something in the spoor of the little Gomangani which brought him to a sudden stop. It was as though, finding a letter in the road, you suddenly had discovered in it the familiar handwriting of a friend.
At first, Tarzan was completely focused on the striking contrast between the tracks of Dango and Gomangani, but now his sharp eyes spotted something in the tracks of the little Gomangani that made him stop in his tracks. It was like finding a letter on the street and suddenly recognizing the familiar handwriting of a friend.
“Go-bu-balu!” exclaimed the ape-man, and at once memory flashed upon the screen of recollection the supplicating attitude of Momaya as she had hurled herself before him in the village of Mbonga the night before. Instantly all was explained—the wailing and lamentation, the pleading of the black mother, the sympathetic howling of the shes about the fire. Little Go-bu-balu had been stolen again, and this time by another than Tarzan. Doubtless the mother had thought that he was again in the power of Tarzan of the Apes, and she had been beseeching him to return her balu to her.
“Go-bu-balu!” shouted the ape-man, and suddenly he remembered the desperate look on Momaya's face as she had thrown herself in front of him in the village of Mbonga the night before. Everything became clear—the crying and mourning, the mother's pleas, the sympathetic howls of the females around the fire. Little Go-bu-balu had been taken again, and this time it was not by Tarzan. The mother must have thought he was once more in Tarzan of the Apes' grasp, and she had been begging him to give her child back.
Yes, it was all quite plain now; but who could have stolen Go-bu-balu this time? Tarzan wondered, and he wondered, too, about the presence of Dango. He would investigate. The spoor was a day old and it ran toward the north. Tarzan set out to follow it. In places it was totally obliterated by the passage of many beasts, and where the way was rocky, even Tarzan of the Apes was almost baffled; but there was still the faint effluvium which clung to the human spoor, appreciable only to such highly trained perceptive powers as were Tarzan’s.
Yes, it was all pretty clear now; but who could have stolen Go-bu-balu this time? Tarzan wondered, and he also thought about Dango's presence. He would look into it. The tracks were a day old and headed north. Tarzan began to follow them. In some places, the trail was completely washed out by the passage of many animals, and where the ground was rocky, even Tarzan of the Apes was nearly stumped; but there was still the faint scent that lingered on the human tracks, noticeable only to someone with the keen observational skills that Tarzan had.
It had all happened to little Tibo very suddenly and unexpectedly within the brief span of two suns. First had come Bukawai, the witch-doctor—Bukawai, the unclean—with the ragged bit of flesh which still clung to his rotting face. He had come alone and by day to the place at the river where Momaya went daily to wash her body and that of Tibo, her little boy. He had stepped out from behind a great bush quite close to Momaya, frightening little Tibo so that he ran screaming to his mother’s protecting arms.
It all happened to little Tibo very suddenly and unexpectedly within the short span of two days. First came Bukawai, the witch-doctor—Bukawai, the filthy one—with the ragged piece of flesh still hanging from his decaying face. He had approached alone and in broad daylight to the riverbank where Momaya went every day to wash herself and her little boy, Tibo. He stepped out from behind a big bush right near Momaya, scaring little Tibo so much that he ran screaming into his mother’s protective arms.
But Momaya, though startled, had wheeled to face the fearsome thing with all the savage ferocity of a she-tiger at bay. When she saw who it was, she breathed a sigh of partial relief, though she still clung tightly to Tibo.
But Momaya, though taken aback, had turned to confront the terrifying thing with all the fierce intensity of a she-tiger cornered. When she realized who it was, she let out a sigh of partial relief, but she still held onto Tibo tightly.
“I have come,” said Bukawai without preliminary, “for the three fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and the bit of copper wire as long as a tall man’s arm.”
“I’ve come,” Bukawai said directly, “for the three fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and the piece of copper wire that’s as long as a tall man’s arm.”
“I have no goats for you,” snapped Momaya, “nor a sleeping mat, nor any wire. Your medicine was never made. The white jungle god gave me back my Tibo. You had nothing to do with it.”
“I don’t have any goats for you,” Momaya shot back, “or a sleeping mat, or any wire. Your medicine was never made. The white jungle god returned my Tibo to me. You had nothing to do with it.”
“But I did,” mumbled Bukawai through his fleshless jaws. “It was I who commanded the white jungle god to give back your Tibo.”
“But I did,” mumbled Bukawai through his fleshless jaws. “It was I who commanded the white jungle god to give back your Tibo.”
Momaya laughed in his face. “Speaker of lies,” she cried, “go back to your foul den and your hyenas. Go back and hide your stinking face in the belly of the mountain, lest the sun, seeing it, cover his face with a black cloud.”
Momaya laughed in his face. “Speaker of lies,” she shouted, “go back to your disgusting lair and your hyenas. Go back and hide your rotten face in the belly of the mountain, or the sun, seeing it, will cover his face with a dark cloud.”
“I have come,” reiterated Bukawai, “for the three fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and the bit of copper wire the length of a tall man’s arm, which you were to pay me for the return of your Tibo.”
“I have come,” Bukawai repeated, “for the three fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and the piece of copper wire the length of a tall man’s arm, which you promised to pay me for bringing back your Tibo.”
“It was to be the length of a man’s forearm,” corrected Momaya, “but you shall have nothing, old thief. You would not make medicine until I had brought the payment in advance, and when I was returning to my village the great, white jungle god gave me back my Tibo—gave him to me out of the jaws of Numa. His medicine is true medicine—yours is the weak medicine of an old man with a hole in his face.”
“It was supposed to be the length of a man’s forearm,” Momaya corrected, “but you’ll get nothing, old thief. You refused to make medicine until I paid you upfront, and when I was on my way back to my village, the great, white jungle god returned my Tibo to me—rescued him from the jaws of Numa. His medicine is real medicine—yours is the weak stuff of an old man with a hole in his face.”
“I have come,” repeated Bukawai patiently, “for the three fat—” But Momaya had not waited to hear more of what she already knew by heart. Clasping Tibo close to her side, she was hurrying away toward the palisaded village of Mbonga, the chief.
“I have come,” Bukawai said again, waiting patiently, “for the three fat—” But Momaya didn’t wait to hear more of what she already knew by heart. Holding Tibo tightly to her side, she hurried away toward the palisaded village of Mbonga, the chief.
And the next day, when Momaya was working in the plantain field with others of the women of the tribe, and little Tibo had been playing at the edge of the jungle, casting a small spear in anticipation of the distant day when he should be a full-fledged warrior, Bukawai had come again.
And the next day, when Momaya was working in the plantain field with other women from the tribe, and little Tibo had been playing at the edge of the jungle, throwing a small spear in hopes of the day he would become a full-fledged warrior, Bukawai had come again.
Tibo had seen a squirrel scampering up the bole of a great tree. His childish mind had transformed it into the menacing figure of a hostile warrior. Little Tibo had raised his tiny spear, his heart filled with the savage blood lust of his race, as he pictured the night’s orgy when he should dance about the corpse of his human kill as the women of his tribe prepared the meat for the feast to follow.
Tibo had seen a squirrel scurrying up the trunk of a big tree. His young mind had turned it into the threatening figure of an aggressive warrior. Little Tibo had raised his small spear, his heart filled with the fierce bloodlust of his people, as he imagined the night’s celebration when he would dance around the body of his human prey while the women of his tribe got the meat ready for the feast to come.
But when he cast the spear, he missed both squirrel and tree, losing his missile far among the tangled undergrowth of the jungle. However, it could be but a few steps within the forbidden labyrinth. The women were all about in the field. There were warriors on guard within easy hail, and so little Tibo boldly ventured into the dark place.
But when he threw the spear, he missed both the squirrel and the tree, losing his projectile deep in the thick underbrush of the jungle. However, it could only be a few steps into the forbidden maze. The women were all around in the field. There were warriors on watch nearby, so little Tibo confidently stepped into the dark area.
Just behind the screen of creepers and matted foliage lurked three horrid figures—an old, old man, black as the pit, with a face half eaten away by leprosy, his sharp-filed teeth, the teeth of a cannibal, showing yellow and repulsive through the great gaping hole where his mouth and nose had been. And beside him, equally hideous, stood two powerful hyenas—carrion-eaters consorting with carrion.
Just behind the curtain of vines and tangled plants hid three terrifying figures—an ancient man, dark as the abyss, with a face mostly destroyed by leprosy, his razor-sharp teeth, the teeth of a cannibal, visible in the large, gaping hole where his mouth and nose used to be. Next to him stood two equally grotesque hyenas—scavengers hanging out with the dead.
Tibo did not see them until, head down, he had forced his way through the thickly growing vines in search of his little spear, and then it was too late. As he looked up into the face of Bukawai, the old witch-doctor seized him, muffling his screams with a palm across his mouth. Tibo struggled futilely.
Tibo didn't notice them until, with his head down, he pushed through the dense vines looking for his little spear, and by then it was too late. When he looked up and saw Bukawai's face, the old witch doctor grabbed him, covering his mouth with a hand to stifle his screams. Tibo struggled in vain.
A moment later he was being hustled away through the dark and terrible jungle, the frightful old man still muffling his screams, and the two hideous hyenas pacing now on either side, now before, now behind, always prowling, always growling, snapping, snarling, or, worst of all, laughing hideously.
A moment later, he was being rushed through the dark and terrifying jungle, the creepy old man still covering his screams, while the two ugly hyenas paced on either side, in front, and behind, always lurking, always growling, snapping, snarling, or, worst of all, laughing in a horrifying way.
To little Tibo, who within his brief existence had passed through such experiences as are given to few to pass through in a lifetime, the northward journey was a nightmare of terror. He thought now of the time that he had been with the great, white jungle god, and he prayed with all his little soul that he might be back again with the white-skinned giant who consorted with the hairy tree men. Terror-stricken he had been then, but his surroundings had been nothing by comparison with those which he now endured.
To little Tibo, who in his short life had gone through experiences that most people only encounter in a lifetime, the journey north felt like a terrifying nightmare. He now thought about the time he spent with the great, white jungle god, and he prayed with all his heart to be back with the white-skinned giant who hung out with the hairy tree men. He had been scared then, but what he faced now was far worse.
The old man seldom addressed Tibo, though he kept up an almost continuous mumbling throughout the long day. Tibo caught repeated references to fat goats, sleeping mats, and pieces of copper wire. “Ten fat goats, ten fat goats,” the old Negro would croon over and over again. By this little Tibo guessed that the price of his ransom had risen. Ten fat goats? Where would his mother get ten fat goats, or thin ones, either, for that matter, to buy back just a poor little boy? Mbonga would never let her have them, and Tibo knew that his father never had owned more than three goats at the same time in all his life. Ten fat goats! Tibo sniffled. The putrid old man would kill him and eat him, for the goats would never be forthcoming. Bukawai would throw his bones to the hyenas. The little black boy shuddered and became so weak that he almost fell in his tracks. Bukawai cuffed him on an ear and jerked him along.
The old man rarely spoke to Tibo, but he mumbled almost non-stop throughout the long day. Tibo caught repeated mentions of fat goats, sleeping mats, and bits of copper wire. "Ten fat goats, ten fat goats," the old man would sing over and over. From this, Tibo figured that the price for his ransom had gone up. Ten fat goats? Where would his mother even get ten fat goats, or any goats for that matter, to buy back just a poor little boy? Mbonga would never let her have them, and Tibo knew his father had never owned more than three goats at any one time in his entire life. Ten fat goats! Tibo sniffled. The disgusting old man would kill him and eat him, as the goats would never appear. Bukawai would throw his bones to the hyenas. The little black boy trembled and became so weak that he almost collapsed. Bukawai slapped him on the ear and pulled him along.
After what seemed an eternity to Tibo, they arrived at the mouth of a cave between two rocky hills. The opening was low and narrow. A few saplings bound together with strips of rawhide closed it against stray beasts. Bukawai removed the primitive door and pushed Tibo within. The hyenas, snarling, rushed past him and were lost to view in the blackness of the interior. Bukawai replaced the saplings and seizing Tibo roughly by the arm, dragged him along a narrow, rocky passage. The floor was comparatively smooth, for the dirt which lay thick upon it had been trodden and tramped by many feet until few inequalities remained.
After what felt like forever to Tibo, they reached the entrance of a cave nestled between two rocky hills. The opening was low and narrow. A few young trees tied together with strips of rawhide blocked it from stray animals. Bukawai removed the makeshift door and pushed Tibo inside. The hyenas, growling, rushed past him and vanished into the darkness within. Bukawai put the saplings back in place and roughly grabbed Tibo by the arm, pulling him down a narrow, rocky passage. The floor was relatively smooth, as the dirt covering it had been stamped down by countless feet until few bumps remained.
The passage was tortuous, and as it was very dark and the walls rough and rocky, Tibo was scratched and bruised from the many bumps he received. Bukawai walked as rapidly through the winding gallery as one would traverse a familiar lane by daylight. He knew every twist and turn as a mother knows the face of her child, and he seemed to be in a hurry. He jerked poor little Tibo possibly a trifle more ruthlessly than necessary even at the pace Bukawai set; but the old witch-doctor, an outcast from the society of man, diseased, shunned, hated, feared, was far from possessing an angelic temper. Nature had given him few of the kindlier characteristics of man, and these few Fate had eradicated entirely. Shrewd, cunning, cruel, vindictive, was Bukawai, the witch-doctor.
The path was winding, and since it was very dark with rough, rocky walls, Tibo got scratched and bruised from all the bumps he took. Bukawai moved through the twisting gallery as quickly as someone would walk down a familiar street in the daylight. He knew every twist and turn like a mother knows her child's face, and he seemed to be in a hurry. He pulled poor little Tibo possibly a bit more harshly than necessary, even given the speed Bukawai was going; but the old witch-doctor, an outcast from humanity, sick, avoided, hated, and feared, was far from having a gentle temperament. Nature had given him few of the kinder traits of humanity, and those few had been completely taken away by Fate. Shrewd, cunning, cruel, and vengeful, Bukawai was the witch-doctor.
Frightful tales were whispered of the cruel tortures he inflicted upon his victims. Children were frightened into obedience by the threat of his name. Often had Tibo been thus frightened, and now he was reaping a grisly harvest of terror from the seeds his mother had innocently sown. The darkness, the presence of the dreaded witch-doctor, the pain of the contusions, with a haunting premonition of the future, and the fear of the hyenas combined to almost paralyze the child. He stumbled and reeled until Bukawai was dragging rather than leading him.
Frightening stories circulated about the brutal tortures he inflicted on his victims. Children were scared into obedience just by the mention of his name. Tibo had often been terrified in this way, and now he was facing the grim consequences of the fear his mother had unknowingly instilled in him. The darkness, the looming presence of the feared witch-doctor, the pain from his bruises, a chilling sense of the future, and the fear of the hyenas all combined to nearly paralyze the child. He stumbled and swayed until Bukawai was pulling him instead of guiding him.
Presently Tibo saw a faint lightness ahead of them, and a moment later they emerged into a roughly circular chamber to which a little daylight filtered through a rift in the rocky ceiling. The hyenas were there ahead of them, waiting. As Bukawai entered with Tibo, the beasts slunk toward them, baring yellow fangs. They were hungry. Toward Tibo they came, and one snapped at his naked legs. Bukawai seized a stick from the floor of the chamber and struck a vicious blow at the beast, at the same time mumbling forth a volley of execrations. The hyena dodged and ran to the side of the chamber, where he stood growling. Bukawai took a step toward the creature, which bristled with rage at his approach. Fear and hatred shot from its evil eyes, but, fortunately for Bukawai, fear predominated.
Currently, Tibo noticed a faint light ahead, and a moment later, they stepped into a roughly circular chamber where a bit of daylight filtered through a crack in the rocky ceiling. The hyenas were there waiting for them. As Bukawai entered with Tibo, the animals crept toward them, showing their yellow fangs. They were hungry. One of the hyenas approached Tibo and snapped at his bare legs. Bukawai grabbed a stick from the chamber floor and delivered a fierce blow at the beast while muttering a stream of curses. The hyena dodged and ran to the side of the chamber, growling. Bukawai took a step toward the creature, which was tense with rage at his approach. Fear and hatred glared from its menacing eyes, but, fortunately for Bukawai, fear took the upper hand.
Seeing that he was unnoticed, the second beast made a short, quick rush for Tibo. The child screamed and darted after the witch-doctor, who now turned his attention to the second hyena. This one he reached with his heavy stick, striking it repeatedly and driving it to the wall. There the two carrion-eaters commenced to circle the chamber while the human carrion, their master, now in a perfect frenzy of demoniacal rage, ran to and fro in an effort to intercept them, striking out with his cudgel and lashing them with his tongue, calling down upon them the curses of whatever gods and demons he could summon to memory, and describing in lurid figures the ignominy of their ancestors.
Seeing that no one noticed him, the second beast made a quick dash for Tibo. The child screamed and ran after the witch-doctor, who now focused on the second hyena. He reached it with his heavy stick, hitting it repeatedly and driving it toward the wall. There, the two scavengers began to circle the room while their human master, now in a frenzied rage, ran back and forth trying to intercept them, swinging his cudgel and hurling insults, invoking the curses of whatever gods and demons he could remember, and vividly detailing the shame of their ancestors.
Several times one or the other of the beasts would turn to make a stand against the witch-doctor, and then Tibo would hold his breath in agonized terror, for never in his brief life had he seen such frightful hatred depicted upon the countenance of man or beast; but always fear overcame the rage of the savage creatures, so that they resumed their flight, snarling and bare-fanged, just at the moment that Tibo was certain they would spring at Bukawai’s throat.
Several times, one of the animals would stop and confront the witch-doctor, and each time Tibo would hold his breath in sheer terror, because he had never witnessed such intense hatred on the face of a person or an animal; but fear always won out over the anger of the savage creatures, forcing them to flee again, snarling with their teeth bared, just when Tibo was sure they would lunge at Bukawai’s throat.
At last the witch-doctor tired of the futile chase. With a snarl quite as bestial as those of the beasts, he turned toward Tibo. “I go to collect the ten fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and the two pieces of copper wire that your mother will pay for the medicine I shall make to bring you back to her,” he said. “You will stay here. There,” and he pointed toward the passage which they had followed to the chamber, “I will leave the hyenas. If you try to escape, they will eat you.”
At last, the witch-doctor got tired of the pointless chase. With a snarl that was just as animalistic as that of the beasts, he turned to Tibo. “I’m going to gather the ten fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and the two pieces of copper wire that your mother will pay for the medicine I’ll make to bring you back to her,” he said. “You’ll stay here. There,” and he pointed to the passage they had followed to the chamber, “I will leave the hyenas. If you try to escape, they will eat you.”
He cast aside the stick and called to the beasts. They came, snarling and slinking, their tails between their legs. Bukawai led them to the passage and drove them into it. Then he dragged a rude lattice into place before the opening after he, himself, had left the chamber. “This will keep them from you,” he said. “If I do not get the ten fat goats and the other things, they shall at least have a few bones after I am through.” And he left the boy to think over the meaning of his all-too-suggestive words.
He tossed aside the stick and called to the animals. They approached, growling and sneaking, their tails tucked between their legs. Bukawai led them to the passage and pushed them inside. Then he pulled a rough barrier into position in front of the opening after he had exited the room. “This will keep them away from you,” he said. “If I don’t get the ten fat goats and the other things, they’ll at least have a few bones left when I’m done.” And he left the boy to ponder the implications of his very suggestive words.
When he was gone, Tibo threw himself upon the earth floor and broke into childish sobs of terror and loneliness. He knew that his mother had no ten fat goats to give and that when Bukawai returned, little Tibo would be killed and eaten. How long he lay there he did not know, but presently he was aroused by the growling of the hyenas. They had returned through the passage and were glaring at him from beyond the lattice. He could see their yellow eyes blazing through the darkness. They reared up and clawed at the barrier. Tibo shivered and withdrew to the opposite side of the chamber. He saw the lattice sag and sway to the attacks of the beasts. Momentarily he expected that it would fall inward, letting the creatures upon him.
When he was gone, Tibo threw himself onto the dirt floor and burst into childish sobs of fear and loneliness. He understood that his mother had no ten fat goats to give and that when Bukawai came back, little Tibo would be killed and eaten. He didn’t know how long he lay there, but soon he was jolted awake by the growling of the hyenas. They had come back through the passage and were staring at him from beyond the lattice. He could see their yellow eyes glowing in the darkness. They reared up and clawed at the barrier. Tibo shivered and moved to the other side of the chamber. He watched the lattice sag and sway under the assaults of the beasts. For a moment, he expected it to collapse inward, letting the creatures get to him.
Wearily the horror-ridden hours dragged their slow way. Night came, and for a time Tibo slept, but it seemed that the hungry beasts never slept. Always they stood just beyond the lattice growling their hideous growls or laughing their hideous laughs. Through the narrow rift in the rocky roof above him, Tibo could see a few stars, and once the moon crossed. At last daylight came again. Tibo was very hungry and thirsty, for he had not eaten since the morning before, and only once upon the long march had he been permitted to drink, but even hunger and thirst were almost forgotten in the terror of his position.
Wearily, the terrifying hours dragged on. Night fell, and for a while, Tibo managed to sleep, but it felt like the hungry beasts never rested. They always lurked just beyond the lattice, growling their awful growls or laughing their dreadful laughs. Through the narrow gap in the rocky roof above him, Tibo could see a few stars, and once the moon passed by. Finally, daylight returned. Tibo was very hungry and thirsty, having not eaten since the morning before, and he had only been allowed to drink once during the long march. But even his hunger and thirst were almost forgotten in the fear of his situation.
It was after daylight that the child discovered a second opening in the walls of the subterranean chamber, almost opposite that at which the hyenas still stood glaring hungrily at him. It was only a narrow slit in the rocky wall. It might lead in but a few feet, or it might lead to freedom! Tibo approached it and looked within. He could see nothing. He extended his arm into the blackness, but he dared not venture farther. Bukawai never would have left open a way of escape, Tibo reasoned, so this passage must lead either nowhere or to some still more hideous danger.
It was after sunrise that the child found a second opening in the walls of the underground chamber, almost directly across from where the hyenas were still staring hungrily at him. It was just a narrow slit in the rocky wall. It could lead in just a few feet, or it might lead to freedom! Tibo walked over and looked inside. He couldn't see anything. He reached his arm into the darkness, but he didn't dare go any further. Tibo thought that Bukawai would never have left a way out, so this passage must either go nowhere or lead to an even worse danger.
To the boy’s fear of the actual dangers which menaced him—Bukawai and the two hyenas—his superstition added countless others quite too horrible even to name, for in the lives of the blacks, through the shadows of the jungle day and the black horrors of the jungle night, flit strange, fantastic shapes peopling the already hideously peopled forests with menacing figures, as though the lion and the leopard, the snake and the hyena, and the countless poisonous insects were not quite sufficient to strike terror to the hearts of the poor, simple creatures whose lot is cast in earth’s most fearsome spot.
To the boy's fear of the real dangers threatening him—Bukawai and the two hyenas—his superstition added countless others that were far too terrifying to even mention. In the lives of the people living there, through the shadows of the jungle during the day and the terrifying nightmares of the jungle night, strange, fantastic shapes dart through the already horrifying forests, adding to the menacing figures. It's as if the lion, the leopard, the snake, the hyena, and the countless poisonous insects weren't terrifying enough for the poor, simple souls cast in the most frightening place on Earth.
And so it was that little Tibo cringed not only from real menaces but from imaginary ones. He was afraid even to venture upon a road that might lead to escape, lest Bukawai had set to watch it some frightful demon of the jungle.
And so it was that little Tibo flinched not just from real dangers but also from imaginary ones. He was scared to even take a road that could lead to escape, worried that Bukawai had stationed some terrifying jungle demon to watch it.
But the real menaces suddenly drove the imaginary ones from the boy’s mind, for with the coming of daylight the half-famished hyenas renewed their efforts to break down the frail barrier which kept them from their prey. Rearing upon their hind feet they clawed and struck at the lattice. With wide eyes Tibo saw it sag and rock. Not for long, he knew, could it withstand the assaults of these two powerful and determined brutes. Already one corner had been forced past the rocky protuberance of the entrance way which had held it in place. A shaggy forearm protruded into the chamber. Tibo trembled as with ague, for he knew that the end was near.
But the real dangers suddenly pushed the imaginary ones out of the boy’s mind, because with the arrival of daylight, the half-starved hyenas renewed their attempts to break through the weak barrier that kept them from their prey. Standing on their hind legs, they clawed and struck at the lattice. With wide eyes, Tibo watched it sag and sway. He knew it wouldn’t hold against the fierce attacks of these two strong and determined animals for long. One corner had already been pushed past the rocky edge of the entrance that had held it in place. A shaggy forearm was reaching into the chamber. Tibo trembled as if he had a fever, knowing that the end was near.
Backing against the farther wall he stood flattened out as far from the beasts as he could get. He saw the lattice give still more. He saw a savage, snarling head forced past it, and grinning jaws snapping and gaping toward him. In another instant the pitiful fabric would fall inward, and the two would be upon him, rending his flesh from his bones, gnawing the bones themselves, fighting for possession of his entrails.
Backing against the far wall, he pressed himself as far away from the beasts as possible. He watched the lattice bend even more. He saw a fierce, snarling head push through, with grinning jaws snapping and gaping toward him. In another moment, the weak structure would collapse inward, and the two would be on him, tearing his flesh from his bones, gnawing on the bones themselves, fighting over his innards.
* * *
Understood! Please provide the text for me to modernize.
Bukawai came upon Momaya outside the palisade of Mbonga, the chief. At sight of him the woman drew back in revulsion, then she flew at him, tooth and nail; but Bukawai threatening her with a spear held her at a safe distance.
Bukawai encountered Momaya outside the palisade of Mbonga, the chief. When she saw him, the woman recoiled in disgust, then charged at him, fighting fiercely; however, Bukawai pointed a spear at her to keep her at a safe distance.
“Where is my baby?” she cried. “Where is my little Tibo?”
“Where's my baby?” she cried. “Where's my little Tibo?”
Bukawai opened his eyes in well-simulated amazement. “Your baby!” he exclaimed. “What should I know of him, other than that I rescued him from the white god of the jungle and have not yet received my pay. I come for the goats and the sleeping mat and the piece of copper wire the length of a tall man’s arm from the shoulder to the tips of his fingers.”
Bukawai opened his eyes in genuine surprise. “Your baby!” he said. “What do I need to know about him, other than that I saved him from the white god of the jungle and still haven’t been paid? I came for the goats, the sleeping mat, and a piece of copper wire the length of a tall man’s arm from shoulder to fingertips.”
“Offal of a hyena!” shrieked Momaya. “My child has been stolen, and you, rotting fragment of a man, have taken him. Return him to me or I shall tear your eyes from your head and feed your heart to the wild hogs.”
“Offal of a hyena!” screamed Momaya. “My child has been stolen, and you, decaying piece of a man, have taken him. Return him to me, or I will rip your eyes from your head and feed your heart to the wild hogs.”
Bukawai shrugged his shoulders. “What do I know about your child?” he asked. “I have not taken him. If he is stolen again, what should Bukawai know of the matter? Did Bukawai steal him before? No, the white jungle god stole him, and if he stole him once he would steal him again. It is nothing to me. I returned him to you before and I have come for my pay. If he is gone and you would have him returned, Bukawai will return him—for ten fat goats, a new sleeping mat and two pieces of copper wire the length of a tall man’s arm from the shoulder to the tips of his fingers, and Bukawai will say nothing more about the goats and the sleeping mat and the copper wire which you were to pay for the first medicine.”
Bukawai shrugged. “What do I know about your kid?” he asked. “
“Ten fat goats!” screamed Momaya. “I could not pay you ten fat goats in as many years. Ten fat goats, indeed!”
“Ten fat goats!” yelled Momaya. “I couldn’t pay you ten fat goats in ten years. Ten fat goats, really!”
“Ten fat goats,” repeated Bukawai. “Ten fat goats, the new sleeping mat and two pieces of copper wire the length of——”
“Ten fat goats,” Bukawai repeated. “Ten fat goats, the new sleeping mat, and two pieces of copper wire the length of——”
Momaya stopped him with an impatient gesture. “Wait!” she cried. “I have no goats. You waste your breath. Stay here while I go to my man. He has but three goats, yet something may be done. Wait!”
Momaya stopped him with an impatient gesture. “Wait!” she shouted. “I don’t have any goats. You're wasting your breath. Stay here while I go to my guy. He only has three goats, but maybe something can be done. Wait!”
Bukawai sat down beneath a tree. He felt quite content, for he knew that he should have either payment or revenge. He did not fear harm at the hands of these people of another tribe, although he well knew that they must fear and hate him. His leprosy alone would prevent their laying hands upon him, while his reputation as a witch-doctor rendered him doubly immune from attack. He was planning upon compelling them to drive the ten goats to the mouth of his cave when Momaya returned. With her were three warriors—Mbonga, the chief, Rabba Kega, the village witch-doctor, and Ibeto, Tibo’s father. They were not pretty men even under ordinary circumstances, and now, with their faces marked by anger, they well might have inspired terror in the heart of anyone; but if Bukawai felt any fear, he did not betray it. Instead he greeted them with an insolent stare, intended to awe them, as they came and squatted in a semi-circle before him.
Bukawai sat down under a tree. He felt completely at ease because he knew he would either get paid or get revenge. He wasn’t worried about getting hurt by these people from another tribe, even though he understood that they must fear and hate him. His leprosy alone would stop them from touching him, while his reputation as a witch-doctor made him even more immune to attacks. He was planning to force them to bring the ten goats to the entrance of his cave when Momaya returned. With her were three warriors—Mbonga, the chief, Rabba Kega, the village witch-doctor, and Ibeto, Tibo’s father. They weren’t exactly attractive men under normal circumstances, and now, with their faces twisted in anger, they could easily frighten anyone; but if Bukawai felt any fear, he didn’t show it. Instead, he welcomed them with a defiant stare, meant to intimidate them, as they came and sat in a half-circle in front of him.
“Where is Ibeto’s son?” asked Mbonga.
“Where is Ibeto’s son?” asked Mbonga.
“How should I know?” returned Bukawai. “Doubtless the white devil-god has him. If I am paid I will make strong medicine and then we shall know where is Ibeto’s son, and shall get him back again. It was my medicine which got him back the last time, for which I got no pay.”
“How should I know?” Bukawai replied. “Probably the white devil-god has him. If I’m paid, I’ll make some powerful medicine and then we’ll find out where Ibeto’s son is, and we’ll get him back. It was my medicine that brought him back last time, and I didn’t get paid for that.”
“I have my own witch-doctor to make medicine,” replied Mbonga with dignity.
“I have my own witch doctor to make medicine,” Mbonga replied confidently.
Bukawai sneered and rose to his feet. “Very well,” he said, “let him make his medicine and see if he can bring Ibeto’s son back.” He took a few steps away from them, and then he turned angrily back. “His medicine will not bring the child back—that I know, and I also know that when you find him it will be too late for any medicine to bring him back, for he will be dead. This have I just found out, the ghost of my father’s sister but now came to me and told me.”
Bukawai sneered and stood up. “Fine,” he said, “let him perform his magic and see if he can bring Ibeto’s son back.” He took a few steps away from them but then turned back angrily. “His magic won’t bring the child back—I know that, and I also know that when you find him, it will be too late for any magic to help, because he’ll be dead. This is what I just learned; the ghost of my father’s sister just came to me and told me this.”
Now Mbonga and Rabba Kega might not take much stock in their own magic, and they might even be skeptical as to the magic of another; but there was always a chance of something being in it, especially if it were not their own. Was it not well known that old Bukawai had speech with the demons themselves and that two even lived with him in the forms of hyenas! Still they must not accede too hastily. There was the price to be considered, and Mbonga had no intention of parting lightly with ten goats to obtain the return of a single little boy who might die of smallpox long before he reached a warrior’s estate.
Now Mbonga and Rabba Kega might not think much of their own magic, and they might even be doubtful about someone else's magic; but there was always a chance of something being real, especially if it wasn’t theirs. Wasn’t it well known that old Bukawai talked to demons themselves and that two even lived with him as hyenas? Still, they shouldn't rush into things. There was the cost to think about, and Mbonga had no intention of giving up ten goats just to get back a single little boy who might die of smallpox long before he became a warrior.
“Wait,” said Mbonga. “Let us see some of your magic, that we may know if it be good magic. Then we can talk about payment. Rabba Kega will make some magic, too. We will see who makes the best magic. Sit down, Bukawai.”
“Wait,” Mbonga said. “Show us some of your magic so we can see if it’s good. Then we can talk about payment. Rabba Kega will show some magic as well. We’ll see who does it best. Sit down, Bukawai.”
“The payment will be ten goats—fat goats—a new sleeping mat and two pieces of copper wire the length of a tall man’s arm from the shoulder to the ends of his fingers, and it will be made in advance, the goats being driven to my cave. Then will I make the medicine, and on the second day the boy will be returned to his mother. It cannot be done more quickly than that because it takes time to make such strong medicine.”
“The payment will be ten goats—fat goats—a new sleeping mat, and two pieces of copper wire the length of a tall man's arm from shoulder to fingertips, and it will be prepared ahead of time, with the goats brought to my cave. Then I will make the medicine, and on the second day, the boy will be returned to his mother. It can't be done any faster than that because making such strong medicine takes time.”
“Make us some medicine now,” said Mbonga. “Let us see what sort of medicine you make.”
“Make us some medicine now,” Mbonga said. “Let’s see what kind of medicine you can create.”
“Bring me fire,” replied Bukawai, “and I will make you a little magic.”
“Bring me fire,” Bukawai replied, “and I’ll make you a bit of magic.”
Momaya was dispatched for the fire, and while she was away Mbonga dickered with Bukawai about the price. Ten goats, he said, was a high price for an able-bodied warrior. He also called Bukawai’s attention to the fact that he, Mbonga, was very poor, that his people were very poor, and that ten goats were at least eight too many, to say nothing of a new sleeping mat and the copper wire; but Bukawai was adamant. His medicine was very expensive and he would have to give at least five goats to the gods who helped him make it. They were still arguing when Momaya returned with the fire.
Momaya was sent to deal with the fire, and while she was gone, Mbonga haggled with Bukawai over the price. He insisted that ten goats was too much for a strong warrior. Mbonga pointed out that he was very poor, his people were struggling, and ten goats were at least eight too many, not to mention needing a new sleeping mat and copper wire. But Bukawai wouldn't budge. His medicine was costly, and he had to give at least five goats to the gods who assisted him in making it. They were still in the middle of their argument when Momaya came back with the fire.
Bukawai placed a little on the ground before him, took a pinch of powder from a pouch at his side and sprinkled it on the embers. A cloud of smoke rose with a puff. Bukawai closed his eyes and rocked back and forth. Then he made a few passes in the air and pretended to swoon. Mbonga and the others were much impressed. Rabba Kega grew nervous. He saw his reputation waning. There was some fire left in the vessel which Momaya had brought. He seized the vessel, dropped a handful of dry leaves into it while no one was watching and then uttered a frightful scream which drew the attention of Bukawai’s audience to him. It also brought Bukawai quite miraculously out of his swoon, but when the old witch-doctor saw the reason for the disturbance he quickly relapsed into unconsciousness before anyone discovered his faux pas.
Bukawai placed a small amount of something on the ground in front of him, took a pinch of powder from a pouch at his side, and sprinkled it on the glowing embers. A puff of smoke rose up. Bukawai closed his eyes and rocked back and forth. Then he waved his hands in the air and pretended to faint. Mbonga and the others were really impressed. Rabba Kega started to feel anxious. He noticed his reputation slipping. There was still some fire left in the vessel that Momaya had brought. He grabbed the vessel, dropped a handful of dry leaves into it while no one was looking, and then let out a terrifying scream that redirected Bukawai’s audience's attention to him. It also miraculously brought Bukawai out of his faint, but when the old witch-doctor realized what was causing the disruption, he quickly pretended to collapse again before anyone caught his mistake.
Rabba Kega, seeing that he had the attention of Mbonga, Ibeto, and Momaya, blew suddenly into the vessel, with the result that the leaves commenced to smolder, and smoke issued from the mouth of the receptacle. Rabba Kega was careful to hold it so that none might see the dry leaves. Their eyes opened wide at this remarkable demonstration of the village witch-doctor’s powers. The latter, greatly elated, let himself out. He shouted, jumped up and down, and made frightful grimaces; then he put his face close over the mouth of the vessel and appeared to be communing with the spirits within.
Rabba Kega, noticing that he had the attention of Mbonga, Ibeto, and Momaya, suddenly blew into the container, causing the leaves to start smoldering, and smoke began to rise from the opening of the vessel. Rabba Kega was careful to hold it in a way that no one could see the dry leaves inside. Their eyes widened at this impressive display of the village witch-doctor’s powers. He, feeling very pleased, let himself out. He shouted, jumped up and down, and made scary faces; then he leaned his face close to the opening of the vessel and seemed to be communicating with the spirits inside.
It was while he was thus engaged that Bukawai came out of his trance, his curiosity finally having gotten the better of him. No one was paying him the slightest attention. He blinked his one eye angrily, then he, too, let out a loud roar, and when he was sure that Mbonga had turned toward him, he stiffened rigidly and made spasmodic movements with his arms and legs.
It was while he was busy with this that Bukawai snapped out of his trance, his curiosity finally winning out. No one was paying him any attention. He blinked his one eye in annoyance, then he let out a loud roar. When he was sure that Mbonga was looking at him, he tensed up and started making jerky movements with his arms and legs.
“I see him!” he cried. “He is far away. The white devil-god did not get him. He is alone and in great danger; but,” he added, “if the ten fat goats and the other things are paid to me quickly there is yet time to save him.”
“I see him!” he shouted. “He’s really far away. The white devil-god didn’t catch him. He’s on his own and in serious danger; but,” he continued, “if you pay me the ten fat goats and the other stuff quickly, there’s still time to save him.”
Rabba Kega had paused to listen. Mbonga looked toward him. The chief was in a quandary. He did not know which medicine was the better. “What does your magic tell you?” he asked of Rabba Kega.
Rabba Kega had stopped to listen. Mbonga glanced at him. The chief was in a dilemma. He wasn’t sure which medicine was better. “What does your magic say?” he asked Rabba Kega.
“I, too, see him,” screamed Rabba Kega; “but he is not where Bukawai says he is. He is dead at the bottom of the river.”
“I see him too,” yelled Rabba Kega; “but he’s not where Bukawai says he is. He’s dead at the bottom of the river.”
At this Momaya commenced to howl loudly.
At this, Momaya started to howl loudly.
Tarzan had followed the spoor of the old man, the two hyenas, and the little black boy to the mouth of the cave in the rocky cañon between the two hills. Here he paused a moment before the sapling barrier which Bukawai had set up, listening to the snarls and growls which came faintly from the far recesses of the cavern.
Tarzan had traced the tracks of the old man, the two hyenas, and the little black boy to the entrance of the cave in the rocky canyon between the two hills. He stopped for a moment in front of the sapling barrier that Bukawai had built, listening to the distant snarls and growls coming from deep inside the cave.
Presently, mingled with the beastly cries, there came faintly to the keen ears of the ape-man, the agonized moan of a child. No longer did Tarzan hesitate. Hurling the door aside, he sprang into the dark opening. Narrow and black was the corridor; but long use of his eyes in the Stygian blackness of the jungle nights had given to the ape-man something of the nocturnal visionary powers of the wild things with which he had consorted since babyhood.
Presently, mixed with the animal cries, the ape-man faintly heard the agonized moan of a child. Tarzan no longer hesitated. Throwing the door aside, he leaped into the dark opening. The corridor was narrow and dark; but due to his long experience in the pitch-blackness of jungle nights, the ape-man had developed some of the night vision abilities of the wild creatures he had lived with since childhood.
He moved rapidly and yet with caution, for the place was dark, unfamiliar and winding. As he advanced, he heard more and more loudly the savage snarls of the two hyenas, mingled with the scraping and scratching of their paws upon wood. The moans of a child grew in volume, and Tarzan recognized in them the voice of the little black boy he once had sought to adopt as his balu.
He moved quickly but carefully, because the place was dark, unfamiliar, and winding. As he went on, he heard the vicious snarls of the two hyenas getting louder, mixed with the sounds of their claws scraping against wood. The moans of a child grew louder, and Tarzan recognized the voice of the little black boy he had once tried to adopt as his own.
There was no hysteria in the ape-man’s advance. Too accustomed was he to the passing of life in the jungle to be greatly wrought even by the death of one whom he knew; but the lust for battle spurred him on. He was only a wild beast at heart and his wild beast’s heart beat high in anticipation of conflict.
There was no panic in the ape-man’s approach. He was so used to the cycle of life in the jungle that he wasn't deeply affected even by the death of someone he knew; however, the craving for battle pushed him forward. At his core, he was just a wild animal, and his wild heart raced with excitement at the thought of a fight.
In the rocky chamber of the hill’s center, little Tibo crouched low against the wall as far from the hunger-crazed beasts as he could drag himself. He saw the lattice giving to the frantic clawing of the hyenas. He knew that in a few minutes his little life would flicker out horribly beneath the rending, yellow fangs of these loathsome creatures.
In the rocky chamber at the center of the hill, little Tibo crouched low against the wall, trying to get as far away as possible from the starving beasts. He watched as the lattice began to give way under the frantic scratching of the hyenas. He realized that in just a few minutes, his young life would end in a terrifying way beneath the sharp, yellow teeth of these disgusting creatures.
Beneath the buffetings of the powerful bodies, the lattice sagged inward, until, with a crash it gave way, letting the carnivora in upon the boy. Tibo cast one affrighted glance toward them, then closed his eyes and buried his face in his arms, sobbing piteously.
Beneath the pounding of the strong bodies, the lattice bent inward, until, with a crash, it broke apart, allowing the predators to reach the boy. Tibo cast one terrified look in their direction, then closed his eyes and buried his face in his arms, crying broken-heartedly.
For a moment the hyenas paused, caution and cowardice holding them from their prey. They stood thus glaring at the lad, then slowly, stealthily, crouching, they crept toward him. It was thus that Tarzan came upon them, bursting into the chamber swiftly and silently; but not so silently that the keen-eared beasts did not note his coming. With angry growls they turned from Tibo upon the ape-man, as, with a smile upon his lips, he ran toward them. For an instant one of the animals stood its ground; but the ape-man did not deign even to draw his hunting knife against despised Dango. Rushing in upon the brute he grasped it by the scruff of the neck, just as it attempted to dodge past him, and hurled it across the cavern after its fellow which already was slinking into the corridor, bent upon escape.
For a moment, the hyenas paused, a mix of caution and cowardice keeping them from their prey. They stood there, glaring at the boy, then slowly and stealthily crouched down and crept toward him. It was at that moment that Tarzan discovered them, bursting into the chamber quickly and quietly; but not so silently that the sharp-eared beasts didn't notice his approach. With angry growls, they shifted their attention from Tibo to the ape-man as he ran toward them with a smile on his lips. For an instant, one of the animals held its ground; but the ape-man didn't even bother to draw his hunting knife against the despised Dango. Charging at the beast, he grabbed it by the scruff of the neck just as it tried to dodge past him, and flung it across the cavern after the other one that was already slinking into the corridor, intent on escaping.
Then Tarzan picked Tibo from the floor, and when the child felt human hands upon him instead of the paws and fangs of the hyenas, he rolled his eyes upward in surprise and incredulity, and as they fell upon Tarzan, sobs of relief broke from the childish lips and his hands clutched at his deliverer as though the white devil-god was not the most feared of jungle creatures.
Then Tarzan lifted Tibo from the ground, and when the child felt human hands on him instead of the paws and fangs of the hyenas, he looked up in surprise and disbelief. When his gaze met Tarzan's, sobs of relief escaped his lips, and he clung to his rescuer as if the white god was not the most feared creature in the jungle.
When Tarzan came to the cave mouth the hyenas were nowhere in sight, and after permitting Tibo to quench his thirst in the spring which rose near by, he lifted the boy to his shoulders and set off toward the jungle at a rapid trot, determined to still the annoying howlings of Momaya as quickly as possible, for he shrewdly had guessed that the absence of her balu was the cause of her lamentation.
When Tarzan arrived at the cave entrance, the hyenas were nowhere to be seen. After letting Tibo drink from the nearby spring, he lifted the boy onto his shoulders and quickly headed into the jungle at a brisk pace. He was eager to silence Momaya's frustrating howls as soon as he could, having smartly figured out that her cries were due to the absence of her cub.
“He is not dead at the bottom of the river,” cried Bukawai. “What does this fellow know about making magic? Who is he, anyway, that he dare say Bukawai’s magic is not good magic? Bukawai sees Momaya’s son. He is far away and alone and in great danger. Hasten then with the ten fat goats, the—”
“He's not dead at the bottom of the river,” shouted Bukawai. “What does this guy know about magic? Who does he think he is, to say that Bukawai’s magic isn't good magic? Bukawai sees Momaya’s son. He’s far away, alone, and in big trouble. So hurry with the ten fat goats, the—”
But he got no further. There was a sudden interruption from above, from the branches of the very tree beneath which they squatted, and as the five blacks looked up they almost swooned in fright as they saw the great, white devil-god looking down upon them; but before they could flee they saw another face, that of the lost little Tibo, and his face was laughing and very happy.
But he didn't get to say anything more. Suddenly, there was a noise from above, from the branches of the very tree they were sitting under, and as the five Black men looked up, they nearly fainted in fear at the sight of the huge, white devil-god staring down at them. But before they could run away, they saw another face—little Tibo, who was lost. His face was filled with laughter and happiness.
And then Tarzan dropped fearlessly among them, the boy still upon his back, and deposited him before his mother. Momaya, Ibeto, Rabba Kega, and Mbonga were all crowding around the lad trying to question him at the same time. Suddenly Momaya turned ferociously to fall upon Bukawai, for the boy had told her all that he had suffered at the hands of the cruel old man; but Bukawai was no longer there—he had required no recourse to black art to assure him that the vicinity of Momaya would be no healthful place for him after Tibo had told his story, and now he was running through the jungle as fast as his old legs would carry him toward the distant lair where he knew no black would dare pursue him.
And then Tarzan fearlessly dropped down among them, with the boy still on his back, and set him down in front of his mother. Momaya, Ibeto, Rabba Kega, and Mbonga were all crowding around the boy, trying to ask him questions all at once. Suddenly, Momaya turned angrily to confront Bukawai, because the boy had told her everything he had endured at the hands of the cruel old man; but Bukawai was no longer there—he didn’t need any dark magic to know that being near Momaya would not be good for him after Tibo had shared his story, and now he was running through the jungle as fast as his old legs could take him toward the distant hideout where he knew no black man would dare to follow him.
Tarzan, too, had vanished, as he had a way of doing, to the mystification of the blacks. Then Momaya’s eyes lighted upon Rabba Kega. The village witch-doctor saw something in those eyes of her’s which boded no good to him, and backed away.
Tarzan had also disappeared, as he often did, leaving the locals puzzled. Then Momaya noticed Rabba Kega. The village witch-doctor saw something in her eyes that signaled trouble for him and started to back away.
“So my Tibo is dead at the bottom of the river, is he?” the woman shrieked. “And he’s far away and alone and in great danger, is he? Magic!” The scorn which Momaya crowded into that single word would have done credit to a Thespian of the first magnitude. “Magic, indeed!” she screamed. “Momaya will show you some magic of her own,” and with that she seized upon a broken limb and struck Rabba Kega across the head. With a howl of pain, the man turned and fled, Momaya pursuing him and beating him across the shoulders, through the gateway and up the length of the village street, to the intense amusement of the warriors, the women, and the children who were so fortunate as to witness the spectacle, for one and all feared Rabba Kega, and to fear is to hate.
“So my Tibo is dead at the bottom of the river, huh?” the woman yelled. “And he’s far away, alone, and in big trouble, right? Magic!” The derision in Momaya’s voice when she said that single word would have impressed even the best actors. “Magic, really!” she shouted. “Momaya will show you some magic of her own,” and with that, she grabbed a broken branch and hit Rabba Kega on the head. With a cry of pain, the man turned and ran, with Momaya chasing him and striking him on the back, through the gateway and up the village street, to the great amusement of the warriors, women, and children who happened to see it, as everyone feared Rabba Kega, and to fear is to hate.
Thus it was that to his host of passive enemies, Tarzan of the Apes added that day two active foes, both of whom remained awake long into the night planning means of revenge upon the white devil-god who had brought them into ridicule and disrepute, but with their most malevolent schemings was mingled a vein of real fear and awe that would not down.
Thus it was that to his many passive enemies, Tarzan of the Apes added that day two active foes, both of whom stayed up late into the night plotting ways to get back at the white devil-god who had made them a source of mockery and disgrace. However, alongside their most sinister plans was a strong current of genuine fear and respect that they couldn't shake off.
Young Lord Greystoke did not know that they planned against him, nor, knowing, would have cared. He slept as well that night as he did on any other night, and though there was no roof above him, and no doors to lock against intruders, he slept much better than his noble relative in England, who had eaten altogether too much lobster and drank too much wine at dinner that night.
Young Lord Greystoke had no idea that they were plotting against him, and even if he did, he wouldn't have cared. He slept just as well that night as he did any other night, and even though there was no roof over his head and no doors to lock out intruders, he slept much better than his noble relative in England, who had overeaten lobster and drunk too much wine at dinner that night.
CHAPTER VII
The End of Bukawai
When Tarzan of the Apes was still but a boy he had learned, among other things, to fashion pliant ropes of fibrous jungle grass. Strong and tough were the ropes of Tarzan, the little Tarmangani. Tublat, his foster father, would have told you this much and more. Had you tempted him with a handful of fat caterpillars he even might have sufficiently unbended to narrate to you a few stories of the many indignities which Tarzan had heaped upon him by means of his hated rope; but then Tublat always worked himself into such a frightful rage when he devoted any considerable thought either to the rope or to Tarzan, that it might not have proved comfortable for you to have remained close enough to him to hear what he had to say.
When Tarzan of the Apes was still just a boy, he learned, among other skills, how to make flexible ropes out of tough jungle grass. Tarzan, the little Tarmangani, created strong and durable ropes. Tublat, his foster father, would have told you this and more. If you tempted him with a handful of fat caterpillars, he might have even relaxed enough to share a few stories about the many humiliations Tarzan had inflicted upon him with that hated rope. But Tublat always got so incredibly angry when he thought too much about either the rope or Tarzan that it might not have been comfortable for you to stay close enough to hear what he had to say.
So often had that snakelike noose settled unexpectedly over Tublat’s head, so often had he been jerked ridiculously and painfully from his feet when he was least looking for such an occurrence, that there is little wonder he found scant space in his savage heart for love of his white-skinned foster child, or the inventions thereof. There had been other times, too, when Tublat had swung helplessly in midair, the noose tightening about his neck, death staring him in the face, and little Tarzan dancing upon a near-by limb, taunting him and making unseemly grimaces.
So often had that snake-like noose settled unexpectedly around Tublat’s neck, so often had he been yanked embarrassingly and painfully off his feet when he was least expecting it, that it’s no surprise he had little room in his fierce heart for love for his white-skinned foster child or any of the emotions that came with it. There had also been other moments when Tublat hung helplessly in midair, the noose tightening around his neck, death staring him down, while little Tarzan danced on a nearby branch, teasing him and making silly faces.
Then there had been another occasion in which the rope had figured prominently—an occasion, and the only one connected with the rope, which Tublat recalled with pleasure. Tarzan, as active in brain as he was in body, was always inventing new ways in which to play. It was through the medium of play that he learned much during his childhood. This day he learned something, and that he did not lose his life in the learning of it, was a matter of great surprise to Tarzan, and the fly in the ointment, to Tublat.
Then there was another time when the rope played a big role—only this one memory related to the rope brought Tublat joy. Tarzan, sharp in both mind and body, was always coming up with new ways to have fun. It was through play that he learned a lot during his childhood. On this day, he picked up something new, and the fact that he didn't lose his life while figuring it out surprised Tarzan greatly and annoyed Tublat.
The man-child had, in throwing his noose at a playmate in a tree above him, caught a projecting branch instead. When he tried to shake it loose it but drew the tighter. Then Tarzan started to climb the rope to remove it from the branch. When he was part way up a frolicsome playmate seized that part of the rope which lay upon the ground and ran off with it as far as he could go. When Tarzan screamed at him to desist, the young ape released the rope a little and then drew it tight again. The result was to impart a swinging motion to Tarzan’s body which the ape-boy suddenly realized was a new and pleasurable form of play. He urged the ape to continue until Tarzan was swinging to and fro as far as the short length of rope would permit, but the distance was not great enough, and, too, he was not far enough above the ground to give the necessary thrills which add so greatly to the pastimes of the young.
The boy had, while throwing his noose at a friend in a tree above him, caught a sticking-out branch instead. When he tried to shake it loose, it only got tighter. Then Tarzan began to climb the rope to free it from the branch. When he was partway up, a playful friend grabbed the part of the rope that was on the ground and ran off with it as far as he could. When Tarzan yelled at him to stop, the young ape loosened the rope a bit and then pulled it tight again. This made Tarzan’s body swing, which the ape-boy suddenly realized was a fun new game. He encouraged the ape to keep going until Tarzan was swinging back and forth as much as the short length of rope allowed, but it wasn’t far enough, and he wasn’t high enough off the ground to create the thrills that make young playtimes so exciting.
So he clambered to the branch where the noose was caught and after removing it carried the rope far aloft and out upon a long and powerful branch. Here he again made it fast, and taking the loose end in his hand, clambered quickly down among the branches as far as the rope would permit him to go; then he swung out upon the end of it, his lithe, young body turning and twisting—a human bob upon a pendulum of grass—thirty feet above the ground.
So he climbed up to the branch where the noose was caught, and after removing it, he carried the rope high up onto a long, strong branch. There, he tied it again and took the loose end in his hand, quickly climbing down among the branches as far as the rope would let him. Then he swung out on the end of it, his agile, young body twisting and turning—a human bob on a pendulum of grass—thirty feet above the ground.
Ah, how delectable! This was indeed a new play of the first magnitude. Tarzan was entranced. Soon he discovered that by wriggling his body in just the right way at the proper time he could diminish or accelerate his oscillation, and, being a boy, he chose, naturally, to accelerate. Presently he was swinging far and wide, while below him, the apes of the tribe of Kerchak looked on in mild amaze.
Ah, how delicious! This was definitely a groundbreaking play. Tarzan was captivated. Soon he realized that by moving his body in the right way at the right time, he could slow down or speed up his swinging. Being a boy, he naturally chose to speed up. Before long, he was swinging high and wide, while below him, the apes of Kerchak's tribe watched in mild amazement.
Had it been you or I swinging there at the end of that grass rope, the thing which presently happened would not have happened, for we could not have hung on so long as to have made it possible; but Tarzan was quite as much at home swinging by his hands as he was standing upon his feet, or, at least, almost. At any rate he felt no fatigue long after the time that an ordinary mortal would have been numb with the strain of the physical exertion. And this was his undoing.
Had it been you or me swinging there at the end of that grass rope, what happened next wouldn't have happened, because we couldn't have held on long enough to make it possible; but Tarzan was just as comfortable swinging by his hands as he was standing on his feet, or at least almost. Anyway, he felt no fatigue long after an ordinary person would have been numb from the strain of physical effort. And this was his downfall.
Tublat was watching him as were others of the tribe. Of all the creatures of the wild, there was none Tublat so cordially hated as he did this hideous, hairless, white-skinned, caricature of an ape. But for Tarzan’s nimbleness, and the zealous watchfulness of savage Kala’s mother love, Tublat would long since have rid himself of this stain upon his family escutcheon. So long had it been since Tarzan became a member of the tribe, that Tublat had forgotten the circumstances surrounding the entrance of the jungle waif into his family, with the result that he now imagined that Tarzan was his own offspring, adding greatly to his chagrin.
Tublat was watching him, just like the others from the tribe. Of all the creatures in the wild, there was none that Tublat hated more than this hideous, hairless, white-skinned version of an ape. If it weren’t for Tarzan’s agility and the fierce protectiveness of savage Kala's motherly love, Tublat would have gotten rid of this embarrassment to his family a long time ago. It had been so long since Tarzan joined the tribe that Tublat had forgotten the details of how the jungle orphan came into his family, leading him to believe that Tarzan was actually his own son, which only added to his frustration.
Wide and far swung Tarzan of the Apes, until at last, as he reached the highest point of the arc the rope, which rapidly had frayed on the rough bark of the tree limb, parted suddenly. The watching apes saw the smooth, brown body shoot outward and down, plummet-like. Tublat leaped high in the air, emitting what in a human being would have been an exclamation of delight. This would be the end of Tarzan and most of Tublat’s troubles. From now on he could lead his life in peace and security.
Wide and far swung Tarzan of the Apes until, at last, as he reached the highest point of his swing, the rope, which had quickly frayed on the rough bark of the tree limb, suddenly snapped. The watching apes saw his smooth, brown body shoot outward and downward like a falling stone. Tublat leaped high in the air, letting out what would have been a delighted shout if he were human. This would be the end of Tarzan and most of Tublat’s problems. From now on, he could live his life in peace and security.
Tarzan fell quite forty feet, alighting on his back in a thick bush. Kala was the first to reach his side—ferocious, hideous, loving Kala. She had seen the life crushed from her own balu in just such a fall years before. Was she to lose this one too in the same way? Tarzan was lying quite still when she found him, embedded deeply in the bush. It took Kala several minutes to disentangle him and drag him forth; but he was not killed. He was not even badly injured. The bush had broken the force of the fall. A cut upon the back of his head showed where he had struck the tough stem of the shrub and explained his unconsciousness.
Tarzan fell about forty feet, landing on his back in a thick bush. Kala was the first to reach him—fierce, ugly, loving Kala. She had witnessed the life drained from her own cub in a similar fall years ago. Was she going to lose this one the same way? Tarzan lay completely still when she found him, deeply entangled in the bush. It took Kala several minutes to free him and pull him out; but he was not dead. He wasn't even seriously hurt. The bush had cushioned the impact of the fall. A cut on the back of his head showed where he hit the tough stem of the shrub, which explained his unconsciousness.
In a few minutes he was as active as ever. Tublat was furious. In his rage he snapped at a fellow-ape without first discovering the identity of his victim, and was badly mauled for his ill temper, having chosen to vent his spite upon a husky and belligerent young bull in the full prime of his vigor.
In a few minutes, he was as lively as ever. Tublat was fuming. In his anger, he snapped at another ape without checking who it was first, and ended up getting badly hurt for his bad attitude, having decided to take out his frustrations on a strong and aggressive young bull at the peak of his strength.
But Tarzan had learned something new. He had learned that continued friction would wear through the strands of his rope, though it was many years before this knowledge did more for him than merely to keep him from swinging too long at a time, or too far above the ground at the end of his rope.
But Tarzan had learned something new. He had discovered that constant friction would wear down the strands of his rope, though it took many years before this knowledge did more for him than just stop him from swinging too long at once, or too high above the ground at the end of his rope.
The day came, however, when the very thing that had once all but killed him proved the means of saving his life.
The day eventually arrived when the thing that had nearly destroyed him turned out to be the very thing that saved his life.
He was no longer a child, but a mighty jungle male. There was none now to watch over him, solicitously, nor did he need such. Kala was dead. Dead, too, was Tublat, and though with Kala passed the one creature that ever really had loved him, there were still many who hated him after Tublat departed unto the arms of his fathers. It was not that he was more cruel or more savage than they that they hated him, for though he was both cruel and savage as were the beasts, his fellows, yet too was he often tender, which they never were. No, the thing which brought Tarzan most into disrepute with those who did not like him, was the possession and practice of a characteristic which they had not and could not understand—the human sense of humor. In Tarzan it was a trifle broad, perhaps, manifesting itself in rough and painful practical jokes upon his friends and cruel baiting of his enemies.
He was no longer a child, but a powerful male of the jungle. No one was there to look after him, nor did he need that anymore. Kala was dead. Tublat was dead too, and even though with Kala passed the only creature that had ever truly loved him, there were still many who despised him after Tublat went to join his ancestors. It wasn’t that he was more brutal or savage than they were; he was both cruel and savage like the animals around him, yet he was also often gentle, which they never were. No, the main reason Tarzan was disliked by those who opposed him was because of a trait they lacked and couldn’t comprehend—the human sense of humor. In Tarzan, it was a bit rough around the edges, often showing up as harsh and painful practical jokes on his friends and cruel teasing of his enemies.
But to neither of these did he owe the enmity of Bukawai, the witch-doctor, who dwelt in the cave between the two hills far to the north of the village of Mbonga, the chief. Bukawai was jealous of Tarzan, and Bukawai it was who came near proving the undoing of the ape-man. For months Bukawai had nursed his hatred while revenge seemed remote indeed, since Tarzan of the Apes frequented another part of the jungle, miles away from the lair of Bukawai. Only once had the black witch-doctor seen the devil-god, as he was most often called among the blacks, and upon that occasion Tarzan had robbed him of a fat fee, at the same time putting the lie in the mouth of Bukawai, and making his medicine seem poor medicine. All this Bukawai never could forgive, though it seemed unlikely that the opportunity would come to be revenged.
But he didn't owe the hatred of Bukawai, the witch-doctor who lived in a cave between the two hills far to the north of the village of Mbonga, the chief. Bukawai was jealous of Tarzan, and it was Bukawai who nearly caused the downfall of the ape-man. For months, Bukawai had been harboring his hatred while revenge felt very distant, since Tarzan of the Apes roamed a different part of the jungle, miles away from Bukawai's lair. The black witch-doctor had only seen the devil-god, as he was often referred to among the locals, once, and during that encounter, Tarzan had taken a hefty payment from him, while also making Bukawai look like a fraud and his medicine seem ineffective. Bukawai could never forgive all of this, even though it seemed unlikely that he would get a chance to take revenge.
Yet it did come, and quite unexpectedly. Tarzan was hunting far to the north. He had wandered away from the tribe, as he did more and more often as he approached maturity, to hunt alone for a few days. As a child he had enjoyed romping and playing with the young apes, his companions; but now these play-fellows of his had grown to surly, lowering bulls, or to touchy, suspicious mothers, jealously guarding helpless balus. So Tarzan found in his own man-mind a greater and a truer companionship than any or all of the apes of Kerchak could afford him.
Yet it did happen, and quite unexpectedly. Tarzan was hunting far to the north. He had wandered away from the tribe, as he increasingly did as he approached adulthood, to hunt alone for a few days. As a child, he had enjoyed playing and having fun with the young apes, his friends; but now, these playmates had turned into grumpy, brooding males or overly protective, suspicious mothers, jealously watching over their vulnerable babies. So Tarzan found in his own human mind a deeper and more genuine companionship than any or all of the apes of Kerchak could offer him.
This day, as Tarzan hunted, the sky slowly became overcast. Torn clouds, whipped to ragged streamers, fled low above the tree tops. They reminded Tarzan of frightened antelope fleeing the charge of a hungry lion. But though the light clouds raced so swiftly, the jungle was motionless. Not a leaf quivered and the silence was a great, dead weight—insupportable. Even the insects seemed stilled by apprehension of some frightful thing impending, and the larger things were soundless. Such a forest, such a jungle might have stood there in the beginning of that unthinkably far-gone age before God peopled the world with life, when there were no sounds because there were no ears to hear.
This day, as Tarzan hunted, the sky slowly turned cloudy. Torn clouds, whipped into ragged streamers, raced low above the treetops. They reminded Tarzan of frightened antelope fleeing from a hungry lion. But even though the light clouds moved so quickly, the jungle was still. Not a single leaf stirred, and the silence was a heavy, unbearable weight. Even the insects seemed quiet with fear of something terrible about to happen, and the larger creatures were silent. This forest, this jungle could have existed at the very beginning of that unimaginably distant time before God filled the world with life, when there were no sounds because there were no ears to hear.
And over all lay a sickly, pallid ocher light through which the scourged clouds raced. Tarzan had seen all these conditions many times before, yet he never could escape a strange feeling at each recurrence of them. He knew no fear, but in the face of Nature’s manifestations of her cruel, immeasurable powers, he felt very small—very small and very lonely.
And above everything was a sickly, pale ocher light that the battered clouds raced through. Tarzan had witnessed these conditions many times before, yet he always felt a strange sense of something each time they returned. He felt no fear, but when confronted with Nature’s displays of her harsh, limitless powers, he felt very small—very small and very alone.
Now he heard a low moaning, far away. “The lions seek their prey,” he murmured to himself, looking up once again at the swift-flying clouds. The moaning rose to a great volume of sound. “They come!” said Tarzan of the Apes, and sought the shelter of a thickly foliaged tree. Quite suddenly the trees bent their tops simultaneously as though God had stretched a hand from the heavens and pressed His flat palm down upon the world. “They pass!” whispered Tarzan. “The lions pass.” Then came a vivid flash of lightning, followed by deafening thunder. “The lions have sprung,” cried Tarzan, “and now they roar above the bodies of their kills.”
Now he heard a distant, low moaning. “The lions are hunting,” he murmured to himself, glancing up at the fast-moving clouds again. The moaning grew louder. “They’re coming!” said Tarzan of the Apes, and he looked for cover in a thickly-leaved tree. Suddenly, the trees all bent their tops at once, as if God had reached down from the sky and pressed His flat hand on the earth. “They’re passing!” whispered Tarzan. “The lions are passing.” Then a bright flash of lightning lit up the sky, followed by a thunderous roar. “The lions have pounced,” shouted Tarzan, “and now they’re roaring over their prey.”
The trees were waving wildly in all directions now, a perfectly demoniacal wind threshed the jungle pitilessly. In the midst of it the rain came—not as it comes upon us of the northlands, but in a sudden, choking, blinding deluge. “The blood of the kill,” thought Tarzan, huddling himself closer to the bole of the great tree beneath which he stood.
The trees were waving wildly in every direction now, a perfectly demonic wind battered the jungle mercilessly. In the middle of it, the rain came—not like it does in the north, but as a sudden, suffocating, blinding downpour. “The blood of the kill,” thought Tarzan, pressing himself closer to the trunk of the massive tree he stood under.
He was close to the edge of the jungle, and at a little distance he had seen two hills before the storm broke; but now he could see nothing. It amused him to look out into the beating rain, searching for the two hills and imagining that the torrents from above had washed them away, yet he knew that presently the rain would cease, the sun come out again and all be as it was before, except where a few branches had fallen and here and there some old and rotted patriarch had crashed back to enrich the soil upon which he had fatted for, maybe, centuries. All about him branches and leaves filled the air or fell to earth, torn away by the strength of the tornado and the weight of the water upon them. A gaunt corpse toppled and fell a few yards away; but Tarzan was protected from all these dangers by the wide-spreading branches of the sturdy young giant beneath which his jungle craft had guided him. Here there was but a single danger, and that a remote one. Yet it came. Without warning the tree above him was riven by lightning, and when the rain ceased and the sun came out Tarzan lay stretched as he had fallen, upon his face amidst the wreckage of the jungle giant that should have shielded him.
He was near the edge of the jungle, and not too far away he had seen two hills before the storm hit; but now he couldn’t see anything. It amused him to look out into the pouring rain, trying to find the two hills and imagining that the downpour had swept them away, yet he knew that soon the rain would stop, the sun would come out again, and everything would be as it was before, except for a few fallen branches and here and there some old, decayed tree that had crashed down to enrich the soil it had fed for possibly centuries. All around him, branches and leaves filled the air or fell to the ground, ripped away by the force of the storm and the weight of the water. A gaunt tree fell a few yards away, but Tarzan was shielded from all these dangers by the spreading branches of the sturdy young giant under which his jungle skills had guided him. Here there was only one danger, and that was a distant one. Yet it came. Without warning, the tree above him was struck by lightning, and when the rain stopped and the sun came out, Tarzan lay stretched out as he had fallen, face down in the wreckage of the jungle giant that was supposed to protect him.
Bukawai came to the entrance of his cave after the rain and the storm had passed and looked out upon the scene. From his one eye Bukawai could see; but had he had a dozen eyes he could have found no beauty in the fresh sweetness of the revivified jungle, for to such things, in the chemistry of temperament, his brain failed to react; nor, even had he had a nose, which he had not for years, could he have found enjoyment or sweetness in the clean-washed air.
Bukawai arrived at the entrance of his cave after the rain and storm had cleared and looked out at the landscape. With his one eye, Bukawai could see; but even if he had a dozen eyes, he wouldn't find beauty in the fresh vibrancy of the revived jungle, because his temperament didn't respond to such things. And even if he had a nose, which he hadn't had for years, he still wouldn't find any joy or sweetness in the fresh, clean air.
At either side of the leper stood his sole and constant companions, the two hyenas, sniffing the air. Presently one of them uttered a low growl and with flattened head started, sneaking and wary, toward the jungle. The other followed. Bukawai, his curiosity aroused, trailed after them, in his hand a heavy knob-stick.
At either side of the leper stood his only and constant companions, the two hyenas, sniffing the air. Soon, one of them let out a low growl and with its head down, began to sneak cautiously toward the jungle. The other followed. Bukawai, his curiosity piqued, trailed after them, holding a heavy stick in his hand.
The hyenas halted a few yards from the prostrate Tarzan, sniffing and growling. Then came Bukawai, and at first he could not believe the witness of his own eyes; but when he did and saw that it was indeed the devil-god his rage knew no bounds, for he thought him dead and himself cheated of the revenge he had so long dreamed upon.
The hyenas stopped a few yards from the lying Tarzan, sniffing and growling. Then Bukawai arrived, and at first, he couldn’t believe what he was seeing; but when he did realize it was really the devil-god, his anger was limitless, as he thought Tarzan was dead and felt robbed of the revenge he had dreamed about for so long.
The hyenas approached the ape-man with bared fangs. Bukawai, with an inarticulate scream, rushed upon them, striking cruel and heavy blows with his knob-stick, for there might still be life in the apparently lifeless form. The beasts, snapping and snarling, half turned upon their master and their tormentor, but long fear still held them from his putrid throat. They slunk away a few yards and squatted upon their haunches, hatred and baffled hunger gleaming from their savage eyes.
The hyenas approached the ape-man, showing their teeth. Bukawai, letting out a guttural scream, charged at them, hitting hard with his club, hoping there was still life in the seemingly lifeless body. The animals, snapping and growling, partially turned on their master and tormentor, but deep-rooted fear kept them from attacking his rotting throat. They backed off a few yards and sat on their haunches, their eyes shining with anger and frustrated hunger.
Bukawai stooped and placed his ear above the ape-man’s heart. It still beat. As well as his sloughed features could register pleasure they did so; but it was not a pretty sight. At the ape-man’s side lay his long, grass rope. Quickly Bukawai bound the limp arms behind his prisoner’s back, then he raised him to one of his shoulders, for, though Bukawai was old and diseased, he was still a strong man. The hyenas fell in behind as the witch-doctor set off toward the cave, and through the long black corridors they followed as Bukawai bore his victim into the bowels of the hills. Through subterranean chambers, connected by winding passageways, Bukawai staggered with his load. At a sudden turning of the corridor, daylight flooded them and Bukawai stepped out into a small, circular basin in the hill, apparently the crater of an ancient volcano, one of those which never reached the dignity of a mountain and are little more than lava-rimmed pits close to the earth’s surface.
Bukawai bent down and put his ear to the ape-man’s heart. It was still beating. As much as his worn features could show pleasure, they did; but it wasn't a pleasant sight. Next to the ape-man lay his long, grass rope. Quickly, Bukawai tied the limp arms behind his prisoner’s back, then lifted him onto one of his shoulders, because even though Bukawai was old and sick, he was still strong. The hyenas followed behind as the witch-doctor headed toward the cave, moving through the long dark corridors as Bukawai carried his captive into the depths of the hills. He staggered through underground chambers connected by winding passageways. Suddenly, as they turned a corner, daylight flooded in, and Bukawai stepped out into a small, circular basin in the hill, seemingly the crater of an ancient volcano—one of those that never quite became a mountain and are little more than lava-rimmed pits close to the earth’s surface.
Steep walls rimmed the cavity. The only exit was through the passageway by which Bukawai had entered. A few stunted trees grew upon the rocky floor. A hundred feet above could be seen the ragged lips of this cold, dead mouth of hell.
Steep walls surrounded the hollow. The only way out was through the passage where Bukawai had come in. A few scraggly trees grew on the rocky ground. A hundred feet above, the jagged edges of this cold, lifeless mouth of hell were visible.
Bukawai propped Tarzan against a tree and bound him there with his own grass rope, leaving his hands free but securing the knots in such a way that the ape-man could not reach them. The hyenas slunk to and fro, growling. Bukawai hated them and they hated him. He knew that they but waited for the time when he should be helpless, or when their hatred should rise to such a height as to submerge their cringing fear of him.
Bukawai leaned Tarzan against a tree and tied him there with his own grass rope, leaving his hands free but securing the knots in a way that the ape-man couldn’t reach them. The hyenas prowled back and forth, growling. Bukawai despised them, and they despised him. He knew they were just waiting for the moment when he would be defenseless or when their hatred would grow strong enough to overpower their fearful submission to him.
In his own heart was not a little fear of these repulsive creatures, and because of that fear, Bukawai always kept the beasts well fed, often hunting for them when their own forages for food failed, but ever was he cruel to them with the cruelty of a little brain, diseased, bestial, primitive.
In his heart, there was a fair amount of fear of these repulsive creatures, and because of that fear, Bukawai always made sure the beasts were well-fed, often hunting for them when they couldn't find food themselves. However, he was always cruel to them, showing the cruelty of a small, sick, primitive mind.
He had had them since they were puppies. They had known no other life than that with him, and though they went abroad to hunt, always they returned. Of late Bukawai had come to believe that they returned not so much from habit as from a fiendish patience which would submit to every indignity and pain rather than forego the final vengeance, and Bukawai needed but little imagination to picture what that vengeance would be. Today he would see for himself what his end would be; but another should impersonate Bukawai.
He had them since they were puppies. They had known no other life but the one with him, and even though they went out to hunt, they always came back. Lately, Bukawai had started to think that they returned not just out of habit, but out of a wicked determination that would endure any humiliation and pain instead of giving up on the final revenge, and he didn't need much imagination to picture what that revenge would look like. Today he would see for himself what his fate would be; but someone else would take on Bukawai's role.
When he had trussed Tarzan securely, Bukawai went back into the corridor, driving the hyenas ahead of him, and pulling across the opening a lattice of laced branches, which shut the pit from the cave during the night that Bukawai might sleep in security, for then the hyenas were penned in the crater that they might not sneak upon a sleeping Bukawai in the darkness.
When he had tied up Tarzan tight, Bukawai went back into the hallway, driving the hyenas ahead of him and pulling a lattice of intertwined branches across the opening to block the pit from the cave during the night so Bukawai could sleep safely, as the hyenas were contained in the crater to prevent them from sneaking up on a sleeping Bukawai in the dark.
Bukawai returned to the outer cave mouth, filled a vessel with water at the spring which rose in the little cañon close at hand and returned toward the pit. The hyenas stood before the lattice looking hungrily toward Tarzan. They had been fed in this manner before.
Bukawai went back to the entrance of the cave, filled a container with water from the spring that bubbled up nearby, and headed toward the pit. The hyenas were sitting in front of the bars, eyeing Tarzan with hunger. They had been fed this way before.
With his water, the witch-doctor approached Tarzan and threw a portion of the contents of the vessel in the ape-man’s face. There was fluttering of the eyelids, and at the second application Tarzan opened his eyes and looked about.
With his water, the witch-doctor walked up to Tarzan and splashed some of the liquid from the vessel in the ape-man's face. Tarzan's eyelids fluttered, and after the second splash, he opened his eyes and looked around.
“Devil-god,” cried Bukawai, “I am the great witch-doctor. My medicine is strong. Yours is weak. If it is not, why do you stay tied here like a goat that is bait for lions?”
“Devil-god,” shouted Bukawai, “I am the great witch-doctor. My medicine is powerful. Yours is weak. If it isn’t, why are you tied up here like a goat that is bait for lions?”
Tarzan understood nothing the witch-doctor said, therefore he did not reply, but only stared straight at Bukawai with cold and level gaze. The hyenas crept up behind him. He heard them growl; but he did not even turn his head. He was a beast with a man’s brain. The beast in him refused to show fear in the face of a death which the man-mind already admitted to be inevitable.
Tarzan didn't understand anything the witch-doctor was saying, so he didn't respond; he just looked straight at Bukawai with a cold, steady stare. The hyenas snuck up behind him. He heard them growl but didn’t even turn his head. He was a creature with a human brain. The animal in him wouldn't show fear in front of a death that his human mind already accepted as unavoidable.
Bukawai, not yet ready to give his victim to the beasts, rushed upon the hyenas with his knob-stick. There was a short scrimmage in which the brutes came off second best, as they always did. Tarzan watched it. He saw and realized the hatred which existed between the two animals and the hideous semblance of a man.
Bukawai, not ready to hand his victim over to the beasts, charged at the hyenas with his club. There was a brief scuffle, and as usual, the hyenas came out on the losing side. Tarzan observed it all. He recognized the animosity that existed between the two animals and the grotesque likeness of a man.
With the hyenas subdued, Bukawai returned to the baiting of Tarzan; but finding that the ape-man understood nothing he said, the witch-doctor finally desisted. Then he withdrew into the corridor and pulled the latticework barrier across the opening. He went back into the cave and got a sleeping mat, which he brought to the opening, that he might lie down and watch the spectacle of his revenge in comfort.
With the hyenas taken care of, Bukawai went back to taunting Tarzan; but when he realized that the ape-man didn’t understand anything he was saying, the witch-doctor gave up. He then retreated into the corridor and pulled the lattice barrier across the entrance. He returned to the cave, grabbed a sleeping mat, and brought it to the opening so he could lie down and enjoy the show of his revenge in comfort.
The hyenas were sneaking furtively around the ape-man. Tarzan strained at his bonds for a moment, but soon realized that the rope he had braided to hold Numa, the lion, would hold him quite as successfully. He did not wish to die; but he could look death in the face now as he had many times before without a quaver.
The hyenas were creeping stealthily around the ape-man. Tarzan struggled against his restraints for a moment, but quickly understood that the rope he had woven to capture Numa, the lion, would restrain him just as effectively. He didn't want to die; yet he could face death now as he had many times before without flinching.
As he pulled upon the rope he felt it rub against the small tree about which it was passed. Like a flash of the cinematograph upon the screen, a picture was flashed before his mind’s eye from the storehouse of his memory. He saw a lithe, boyish figure swinging high above the ground at the end of a rope. He saw many apes watching from below, and then he saw the rope part and the boy hurtle downward toward the ground. Tarzan smiled. Immediately he commenced to draw the rope rapidly back and forth across the tree trunk.
As he pulled on the rope, he felt it rub against the small tree it was wrapped around. Like a scene projected onto a screen, a memory flashed in his mind. He saw a nimble, youthful figure swinging high in the air at the end of a rope. He saw several apes watching from below, and then he saw the rope snap and the boy plummet toward the ground. Tarzan smiled. He quickly started to move the rope back and forth across the tree trunk.
The hyenas, gaining courage, came closer. They sniffed at his legs; but when he struck at them with his free arms they slunk off. He knew that with the growth of hunger they would attack. Coolly, methodically, without haste, Tarzan drew the rope back and forth against the rough trunk of the small tree.
The hyenas, getting bolder, moved in closer. They sniffed at his legs, but when he swung his free arms at them, they backed off. He realized that as their hunger grew, they would make their move. Calmly, systematically, and without rushing, Tarzan pulled the rope back and forth against the rough trunk of the small tree.
In the entrance to the cavern Bukawai fell asleep. He thought it would be some time before the beasts gained sufficient courage or hunger to attack the captive. Their growls and the cries of the victim would awaken him. In the meantime he might as well rest, and he did.
In the entrance to the cave, Bukawai fell asleep. He thought it would take a while before the beasts gathered enough courage or hunger to attack the captive. Their growls and the cries of the victim would wake him up. In the meantime, he might as well rest, and he did.
Thus the day wore on, for the hyenas were not famished, and the rope with which Tarzan was bound was a stronger one than that of his boyhood, which had parted so quickly to the chafing of the rough tree bark. Yet, all the while hunger was growing upon the beasts and the strands of the grass rope were wearing thinner and thinner. Bukawai slept.
Thus the day went on, as the hyenas weren't starving, and the rope tying Tarzan was much stronger than the one from his childhood, which had snapped easily against the rough tree bark. Still, hunger kept increasing for the beasts, and the strands of the grass rope were getting thinner and thinner. Bukawai was asleep.
It was late afternoon before one of the beasts, irritated by the gnawing of appetite, made a quick, growling dash at the ape-man. The noise awoke Bukawai. He sat up quickly and watched what went on within the crater. He saw the hungry hyena charge the man, leaping for the unprotected throat. He saw Tarzan reach out and seize the growling animal, and then he saw the second beast spring for the devil-god’s shoulder. There was a mighty heave of the great, smooth-skinned body. Rounded muscles shot into great, tensed piles beneath the brown hide—the ape-man surged forward with all his weight and all his great strength—the bonds parted, and the three were rolling upon the floor of the crater snarling, snapping, and rending.
It was late afternoon when one of the beasts, annoyed by its hunger, made a quick, growling dash at the ape-man. The noise woke Bukawai. He sat up quickly and watched what was happening in the crater. He saw the hungry hyena charge at the man, leaping for his unprotected throat. He saw Tarzan reach out and grab the growling animal, and then he saw the second beast spring for the devil-god’s shoulder. There was a powerful heave of the great, smooth-skinned body. Muscles bulged into huge, tensed piles beneath the brown hide—the ape-man surged forward with all his weight and strength—the bonds broke apart, and the three were rolling on the crater floor, snarling, snapping, and tearing at each other.
Bukawai leaped to his feet. Could it be that the devil-god was to prevail against his servants? Impossible! The creature was unarmed, and he was down with two hyenas on top of him; but Bukawai did not know Tarzan.
Bukawai jumped to his feet. Could it be that the devil-god was going to win against his servants? No way! The creature was unarmed, and he was pinned down with two hyenas on top of him; but Bukawai didn't know Tarzan.
The ape-man fastened his fingers upon the throat of one of the hyenas and rose to one knee, though the other beast tore at him frantically in an effort to pull him down. With a single hand Tarzan held the one, and with the other hand he reached forth and pulled toward him the second beast.
The ape-man gripped one of the hyenas by its throat and knelt on one knee, even though the other beast was fiercely trying to drag him down. With one hand, Tarzan held onto the first hyena, while with his other hand, he reached out and pulled the second beast toward him.
And then Bukawai, seeing the battle going against his forces, rushed forward from the cavern brandishing his knob-stick. Tarzan saw him coming, and rising now to both feet, a hyena in each hand, he hurled one of the foaming beasts straight at the witch-doctor’s head. Down went the two in a snarling, biting heap. Tarzan tossed the second hyena across the crater, while the first gnawed at the rotting face of its master; but this did not suit the ape-man. With a kick he sent the beast howling after its companion, and springing to the side of the prostrate witch-doctor, dragged him to his feet.
And then Bukawai, seeing that his forces were losing the battle, charged out of the cave swinging his club. Tarzan noticed him approaching and, now standing on both feet with a hyena in each hand, threw one of the aggressive animals right at the witch-doctor’s head. The two tumbled down in a snarling, biting mess. Tarzan tossed the second hyena across the crater, while the first bit at its master’s decaying face; but this didn't sit well with the ape-man. With a kick, he sent the beast yelping after its friend and quickly moved to the side of the fallen witch-doctor, pulling him up to his feet.
Bukawai, still conscious, saw death, immediate and terrible, in the cold eyes of his captor, so he turned upon Tarzan with teeth and nails. The ape-man shuddered at the proximity of that raw face to his. The hyenas had had enough and disappeared through the small aperture leading into the cave. Tarzan had little difficulty in overpowering and binding Bukawai. Then he led him to the very tree to which he had been bound; but in binding Bukawai, Tarzan saw to it that escape after the same fashion that he had escaped would be out of the question; then he left him.
Bukawai, still aware, saw death, immediate and horrifying, in the cold eyes of his captor, so he lunged at Tarzan with teeth and claws. The ape-man shuddered at how close that raw face was to his own. The hyenas had had enough and slinked away through the small opening into the cave. Tarzan had little trouble overpowering and tying up Bukawai. Then he took him to the very tree where he had been tied; but while tying up Bukawai, Tarzan made sure that escaping the same way he had would be impossible; then he left him.
As he passed through the winding corridors and the subterranean apartments, Tarzan saw nothing of the hyenas.
As he walked through the winding hallways and the underground rooms, Tarzan didn’t see any hyenas.
“They will return,” he said to himself.
“They'll be back,” he said to himself.
In the crater between the towering walls Bukawai, cold with terror, trembled as with ague.
In the crater between the towering walls, Bukawai shivered with fear, trembling as if with a chill.
“They will return!” he cried, his voice rising to a fright-filled shriek.
“They will come back!” he shouted, his voice climbing to a terrified scream.
And they did.
And they did.
CHAPTER VIII
The Lion
Numa, the lion, crouched behind a thorn bush close beside the drinking pool where the river eddied just below the bend. There was a ford there and on either bank a well-worn trail, broadened far out at the river’s brim, where, for countless centuries, the wild things of the jungle and of the plains beyond had come down to drink, the carnivora with bold and fearless majesty, the herbivora timorous, hesitating, fearful.
Numa, the lion, crouched behind a thorn bush near the drinking pool where the river swirled just below the bend. There was a shallow crossing there, and on both sides, a well-trodden path widened at the river’s edge, where, for countless centuries, the wild creatures of the jungle and the plains beyond had come down to drink—the carnivores with bold and fearless pride, and the herbivores anxious, hesitant, and scared.
Numa, the lion, was hungry, he was very hungry, and so he was quite silent now. On his way to the drinking place he had moaned often and roared not a little; but as he neared the spot where he would lie in wait for Bara, the deer, or Horta, the boar, or some other of the many luscious-fleshed creatures who came hither to drink, he was silent. It was a grim, a terrible silence, shot through with yellow-green light of ferocious eyes, punctuated with undulating tremors of sinuous tail.
Numa, the lion, was hungry—really hungry—so he stayed completely quiet now. On his way to the waterhole, he had moaned a lot and roared quite a bit; but as he approached the place where he would wait for Bara, the deer, or Horta, the boar, or any of the other many tasty animals that came here to drink, he was silent. It was a grim, terrifying silence, pierced by the yellow-green glow of his fierce eyes and highlighted by the restless movements of his sinuous tail.
It was Pacco, the zebra, who came first, and Numa, the lion, could scarce restrain a roar of anger, for of all the plains people, none are more wary than Pacco, the zebra. Behind the black-striped stallion came a herd of thirty or forty of the plump and vicious little horselike beasts. As he neared the river, the leader paused often, cocking his ears and raising his muzzle to sniff the gentle breeze for the telltale scent spoor of the dread flesh-eaters.
It was Pacco, the zebra, who arrived first, and Numa, the lion, could barely hold back a roar of anger, because of all the creatures on the plains, none are more cautious than Pacco, the zebra. Following the black-striped stallion was a herd of thirty or forty plump and aggressive little horse-like animals. As he approached the river, the leader frequently stopped, perked up his ears, and raised his muzzle to catch the subtle scent of the dreaded flesh-eaters in the gentle breeze.
Numa shifted uneasily, drawing his hind quarters far beneath his tawny body, gathering himself for the sudden charge and the savage assault. His eyes shot hungry fire. His great muscles quivered to the excitement of the moment.
Numa shifted restlessly, pulling his back end beneath his brown body, preparing for the sudden charge and fierce attack. His eyes blazed with hunger. His powerful muscles trembled with the thrill of the moment.
Pacco came a little nearer, halted, snorted, and wheeled. There was a pattering of scurrying hoofs and the herd was gone; but Numa, the lion, moved not. He was familiar with the ways of Pacco, the zebra. He knew that he would return, though many times he might wheel and fly before he summoned the courage to lead his harem and his offspring to the water. There was the chance that Pacco might be frightened off entirely. Numa had seen this happen before, and so he became almost rigid lest he be the one to send them galloping, waterless, back to the plain.
Pacco moved a little closer, stopped, snorted, and turned around. There was a quick sound of hooves as the herd ran away; but Numa, the lion, remained still. He was used to Pacco’s behavior. He knew that Pacco would come back, even though he might turn and dash away several times before finding the courage to lead his group and his young ones to the water. There was a risk that Pacco might get scared off completely. Numa had seen this happen before, so he stayed almost frozen, making sure he wouldn’t be the one to send them running, thirsty, back to the plain.
Again and again came Pacco and his family, and again and again did they turn and flee; but each time they came closer to the river, until at last the plump stallion dipped his velvet muzzle daintily into the water. The others, stepping warily, approached their leader. Numa selected a sleek, fat filly and his flaming eyes burned greedily as they feasted upon her, for Numa, the lion, loves scarce anything better than the meat of Pacco, perhaps because Pacco is, of all the grass-eaters, the most difficult to catch.
Again and again, Pacco and his family showed up, and again and again, they turned and ran; but each time, they got closer to the river, until finally, the plump stallion dipped his soft muzzle delicately into the water. The others stepped carefully to join their leader. Numa picked out a sleek, fat filly, and his intense eyes burned with desire as he stared at her, for Numa, the lion, loves nothing more than the meat of Pacco, maybe because Pacco is the hardest of all the herbivores to catch.
Slowly the lion rose, and as he rose, a twig snapped beneath one of his great, padded paws. Like a shot from a rifle he charged upon the filly; but the snapped twig had been enough to startle the timorous quarry, so that they were in instant flight simultaneously with Numa’s charge.
Slowly, the lion got up, and as he did, a twig cracked under one of his large, soft paws. Like a gunshot, he charged at the filly, but the snapped twig had startled the fearful prey, causing them to take off running at the same moment as Numa's charge.
The stallion was last, and with a prodigious leap, the lion catapulted through the air to seize him; but the snapping twig had robbed Numa of his dinner, though his mighty talons raked the zebra’s glossy rump, leaving four crimson bars across the beautiful coat.
The stallion was last, and with an incredible leap, the lion launched itself through the air to catch him; but the breaking twig had stolen Numa's meal, even though his powerful claws raked the zebra’s shiny rear, leaving four red stripes across the beautiful coat.
It was an angry Numa that quitted the river and prowled, fierce, dangerous, and hungry, into the jungle. Far from particular now was his appetite. Even Dango, the hyena, would have seemed a titbit to that ravenous maw. And in this temper it was that the lion came upon the tribe of Kerchak, the great ape.
It was an angry Numa that left the river and stalked, fierce, dangerous, and hungry, into the jungle. His appetite was no longer specific. Even Dango, the hyena, would have seemed like a snack to that ravenous maw. And in this mood, the lion encountered the tribe of Kerchak, the great ape.
One does not look for Numa, the lion, thus late in the morning. He should be lying up asleep beside his last night’s kill by now; but Numa had made no kill last night. He was still hunting, hungrier than ever.
One doesn’t look for Numa, the lion, this late in the morning. He should be lying asleep next to his kill from last night by now; but Numa hadn’t made a kill last night. He was still hunting, hungrier than ever.
The anthropoids were idling about the clearing, the first keen desire of the morning’s hunger having been satisfied. Numa scented them long before he saw them. Ordinarily he would have turned away in search of other game, for even Numa respected the mighty muscles and the sharp fangs of the great bulls of the tribe of Kerchak, but today he kept on steadily toward them, his bristled snout wrinkled into a savage snarl.
The primates were lounging around the clearing, their initial morning hunger having been satisfied. Numa smelled them long before he spotted them. Usually, he would have moved on in search of other prey, because even Numa respected the powerful muscles and sharp fangs of the strong males in the Kerchak tribe, but today he kept moving steadily towards them, his bristled snout twisted into a fierce snarl.
Without an instant’s hesitation, Numa charged the moment he reached a point from where the apes were visible to him. There were a dozen or more of the hairy, manlike creatures upon the ground in a little glade. In a tree at one side sat a brown-skinned youth. He saw Numa’s swift charge; he saw the apes turn and flee, huge bulls trampling upon little balus; only a single she held her ground to meet the charge, a young she inspired by new motherhood to the great sacrifice that her balu might escape.
Without a moment's hesitation, Numa lunged as soon as he reached a spot where he could see the apes. There were a dozen or more of the hairy, human-like creatures on the ground in a small clearing. In a tree nearby sat a brown-skinned young man. He watched Numa's quick advance; he saw the apes panic and run, massive males trampling over smaller infants; only one female stood her ground to face the charge, a young mother driven by her instinct to protect her baby so it could escape.
Tarzan leaped from his perch, screaming at the flying bulls beneath and at those who squatted in the safety of surrounding trees. Had the bulls stood their ground, Numa would not have carried through that charge unless goaded by great rage or the gnawing pangs of starvation. Even then he would not have come off unscathed.
Tarzan jumped from his spot, yelling at the flying bulls below and at those who were safely sitting in the nearby trees. If the bulls had held their ground, Numa wouldn't have made that charge unless pushed by intense anger or desperate hunger. Even then, he wouldn’t have come out unhurt.
If the bulls heard, they were too slow in responding, for Numa had seized the mother ape and dragged her into the jungle before the males had sufficiently collected their wits and their courage to rally in defense of their fellow. Tarzan’s angry voice aroused similar anger in the breasts of the apes. Snarling and barking they followed Numa into the dense labyrinth of foliage wherein he sought to hide himself from them. The ape-man was in the lead, moving rapidly and yet with caution, depending even more upon his ears and nose than upon his eyes for information of the lion’s whereabouts.
If the bulls heard, they were too slow to react, because Numa had grabbed the mother ape and dragged her into the jungle before the males had gathered their wits and courage to defend their companion. Tarzan's angry voice stirred similar anger in the hearts of the apes. Snarling and barking, they followed Numa into the thick maze of foliage where he tried to hide from them. The ape-man was in the lead, moving quickly yet cautiously, relying even more on his ears and nose than on his eyes to track the lion's location.
The spoor was easy to follow, for the dragged body of the victim left a plain trail, blood-spattered and scentful. Even such dull creatures as you or I might easily have followed it. To Tarzan and the apes of Kerchak it was as obvious as a cement sidewalk.
The trail was easy to follow, since the dragged body of the victim left a clear path, marked with blood and a strong scent. Even someone as dull as you or me could have tracked it. For Tarzan and the apes of Kerchak, it was as clear as a paved sidewalk.
Tarzan knew that they were nearing the great cat even before he heard an angry growl of warning just ahead. Calling to the apes to follow his example, he swung into a tree and a moment later Numa was surrounded by a ring of growling beasts, well out of reach of his fangs and talons but within plain sight of him. The carnivore crouched with his forequarters upon the she-ape. Tarzan could see that the latter was already dead; but something within him made it seem quite necessary to rescue the useless body from the clutches of the enemy and to punish him.
Tarzan sensed they were getting close to the big cat even before he heard an angry growl warning him up ahead. He called to the apes to follow his lead, then swung into a tree. Moments later, Numa found himself surrounded by a ring of growling animals, safely out of reach of his claws and teeth but clearly visible to him. The predator was crouched with his front half over the she-ape. Tarzan could tell she was already dead, but something inside him made him feel it was essential to save her useless body from the enemy's grip and to take action against it.
He shrieked taunts and insults at Numa, and tearing dead branches from the tree in which he danced, hurled them at the lion. The apes followed his example. Numa roared out in rage and vexation. He was hungry, but under such conditions he could not feed.
He yelled insults at Numa and ripped dead branches from the tree he was dancing in, throwing them at the lion. The apes copied him. Numa roared in anger and frustration. He was hungry, but in this situation, he couldn’t eat.
The apes, if they had been left to themselves, would doubtless soon have left the lion to peaceful enjoyment of his feast, for was not the she dead? They could not restore her to life by throwing sticks at Numa, and they might even now be feeding in quiet themselves; but Tarzan was of a different mind. Numa must be punished and driven away. He must be taught that even though he killed a Mangani, he would not be permitted to feed upon his kill. The man-mind looked into the future, while the apes perceived only the immediate present. They would be content to escape today the menace of Numa, while Tarzan saw the necessity, and the means as well, of safeguarding the days to come.
The apes, if they had been left on their own, would probably have quickly allowed the lion to enjoy his meal in peace, since wasn't the female dead? They couldn't bring her back to life by throwing sticks at Numa, and they could just as easily be feeding quietly themselves right now; but Tarzan thought differently. Numa had to be punished and chased away. He needed to learn that even though he killed a Mangani, he couldn't be allowed to eat his kill. The human mind looked to the future, while the apes only focused on the immediate present. They would be satisfied just to avoid Numa's threat today, while Tarzan recognized the need, and also the way, to protect the days ahead.
So he urged the great anthropoids on until Numa was showered with missiles that kept his head dodging and his voice pealing forth its savage protest; but still he clung desperately to his kill.
So he pushed the huge apes forward until Numa was bombarded with projectiles that made him duck and his voice shout out its fierce protest; but he still held on tightly to his catch.
The twigs and branches hurled at Numa, Tarzan soon realized, did not hurt him greatly even when they struck him, and did not injure him at all, so the ape-man looked about for more effective missiles, nor did he have to look long. An out-cropping of decomposed granite not far from Numa suggested ammunition of a much more painful nature. Calling to the apes to watch him, Tarzan slipped to the ground and gathered a handful of small fragments. He knew that when once they had seen him carry out his idea they would be much quicker to follow his lead than to obey his instructions, were he to command them to procure pieces of rock and hurl them at Numa, for Tarzan was not then king of the apes of the tribe of Kerchak. That came in later years. Now he was but a youth, though one who already had wrested for himself a place in the councils of the savage beasts among whom a strange fate had cast him. The sullen bulls of the older generation still hated him as beasts hate those of whom they are suspicious, whose scent characteristic is the scent characteristic of an alien order and, therefore, of an enemy order. The younger bulls, those who had grown up through childhood as his playmates, were as accustomed to Tarzan’s scent as to that of any other member of the tribe. They felt no greater suspicion of him than of any other bull of their acquaintance; yet they did not love him, for they loved none outside the mating season, and the animosities aroused by other bulls during that season lasted well over until the next. They were a morose and peevish band at best, though here and there were those among them in whom germinated the primal seeds of humanity—reversions to type, these, doubtless; reversions to the ancient progenitor who took the first step out of apehood toward humanness, when he walked more often upon his hind feet and discovered other things for idle hands to do.
The twigs and branches thrown at Numa didn’t hurt Tarzan much, even when they hit him, and they didn't injure him at all. So, he started looking for something more effective to throw. He didn’t have to search for long. An outcrop of decomposed granite nearby suggested a much more painful option. Calling to the apes to watch him, Tarzan crouched down and collected a handful of small rocks. He knew that once they saw him execute his plan, they would be quicker to follow his lead than if he just told them to grab rocks and throw them at Numa, since he wasn't the king of Kerchak's tribe yet. That came later. Right now, he was just a young man who had already earned a place among the savage beasts around him due to some strange fate. The older bulls still disliked him, as animals often do toward those they distrust—marked by a smell that set him apart, making him seem like an enemy. The younger bulls, who had grown up playing with him, were used to his scent just like they were to any other member of the tribe. They had no greater suspicion of him than any other bull they knew; however, they didn’t love him either, as they only cared for others during mating season, and the issues stirred up by the other bulls during that time lingered on until the next cycle. Overall, they were a gloomy and irritable bunch, though there were a few among them who showed signs of humanity—throwbacks, undoubtedly; reminders of the ancient ancestor who first stepped out of being an ape toward becoming more human, by walking on two legs more often and finding new tasks for idle hands.
So now Tarzan led where he could not yet command. He had long since discovered the apish propensity for mimicry and learned to make use of it. Having filled his arms with fragments of rotted granite, he clambered again into a tree, and it pleased him to see that the apes had followed his example.
So now Tarzan was leading where he couldn't yet take charge. He had long since figured out that he could mimic the apes, and he'd learned to use that. After gathering some pieces of rotted granite in his arms, he climbed back into a tree, and he was pleased to see that the apes had followed his lead.
During the brief respite while they were gathering their ammunition, Numa had settled himself to feed; but scarce had he arranged himself and his kill when a sharp piece of rock hurled by the practiced hand of the ape-man struck him upon the cheek. His sudden roar of pain and rage was smothered by a volley from the apes, who had seen Tarzan’s act. Numa shook his massive head and glared upward at his tormentors. For a half hour they pursued him with rocks and broken branches, and though he dragged his kill into densest thickets, yet they always found a way to reach him with their missiles, giving him no opportunity to feed, and driving him on and on.
During the short break while they were gathering their ammo, Numa had settled down to eat; but just as he had arranged himself and his prey, a sharp piece of rock thrown by the skilled hand of the ape-man hit him on the cheek. His sudden roar of pain and anger was drowned out by a barrage from the apes, who had witnessed Tarzan’s move. Numa shook his massive head and glared up at his tormentors. For half an hour, they chased him with rocks and broken branches, and even though he dragged his kill into the thickest bushes, they always found a way to hit him with their projectiles, giving him no chance to eat and forcing him to keep running.
The hairless ape-thing with the man scent was worst of all, for he had even the temerity to advance upon the ground to within a few yards of the Lord of the Jungle, that he might with greater accuracy and force hurl the sharp bits of granite and the heavy sticks at him. Time and again did Numa charge—sudden, vicious charges—but the lithe, active tormentor always managed to elude him and with such insolent ease that the lion forgot even his great hunger in the consuming passion of his rage, leaving his meat for considerable spaces of time in vain efforts to catch his enemy.
The hairless ape-like creature with the smell of a man was the worst of all, because he had the nerve to come within a few yards of the Lord of the Jungle, so he could throw sharp pieces of granite and heavy sticks at him with more accuracy and strength. Time and again, Numa charged—fast, furious charges—but the quick, agile tormentor always managed to dodge him with such annoying ease that the lion forgot all about his hunger in his overwhelming rage, abandoning his prey for long stretches as he tried to catch his enemy.
The apes and Tarzan pursued the great beast to a natural clearing, where Numa evidently determined to make a last stand, taking up his position in the center of the open space, which was far enough from any tree to render him practically immune from the rather erratic throwing of the apes, though Tarzan still found him with most persistent and aggravating frequency.
The apes and Tarzan chased the giant beast to a natural clearing, where Numa clearly decided to make his final stand, positioning himself in the center of the open space, far enough from any trees to avoid the apes’ erratic throwing. Still, Tarzan managed to find him with almost annoying regularity.
This, however, did not suit the ape-man, since Numa now suffered an occasional missile with no more than a snarl, while he settled himself to partake of his delayed feast. Tarzan scratched his head, pondering some more effective method of offense, for he had determined to prevent Numa from profiting in any way through his attack upon the tribe. The man-mind reasoned against the future, while the shaggy apes thought only of their present hatred of this ancestral enemy. Tarzan guessed that should Numa find it an easy thing to snatch a meal from the tribe of Kerchak, it would be but a short time before their existence would be one living nightmare of hideous watchfulness and dread. Numa must be taught that the killing of an ape brought immediate punishment and no rewards. It would take but a few lessons to insure the former safety of the tribe. This must be some old lion whose failing strength and agility had forced him to any prey that he could catch; but even a single lion, undisputed, could exterminate the tribe, or at least make its existence so precarious and so terrifying that life would no longer be a pleasant condition.
This, however, didn’t work for the ape-man, since Numa now reacted to the occasional projectile with nothing more than a snarl, while he settled in to enjoy his delayed meal. Tarzan scratched his head, thinking about a more effective way to attack, as he was determined to stop Numa from gaining anything through his assault on the tribe. The human mind considered the future, while the shaggy apes were focused solely on their immediate hatred for this ancestral enemy. Tarzan suspected that if Numa found it easy to grab a meal from Kerchak's tribe, it wouldn’t be long before their lives turned into a constant nightmare of fear and vigilance. Numa needed to learn that killing an ape brought swift punishment and no rewards. Just a few lessons would ensure the tribe's safety. This must be an old lion whose declining strength and agility forced him to go after any prey he could catch; but even a single, undeterred lion could wipe out the tribe, or at least make their existence so precarious and frightening that life would no longer be enjoyable.
“Let him hunt among the Gomangani,” thought Tarzan. “He will find them easier prey. I will teach ferocious Numa that he may not hunt the Mangani.”
“Let him hunt among the Gomangani,” thought Tarzan. “He’ll find them easier targets. I’ll teach the fierce Numa that he can’t hunt the Mangani.”
But how to wrest the body of his victim from the feeding lion was the first question to be solved. At last Tarzan hit upon a plan. To anyone but Tarzan of the Apes it might have seemed rather a risky plan, and perhaps it did even to him; but Tarzan rather liked things that contained a considerable element of danger. At any rate, I rather doubt that you or I would have chosen a similar plan for foiling an angry and a hungry lion.
But figuring out how to get his victim's body away from the feeding lion was the first challenge he needed to tackle. Eventually, Tarzan came up with a plan. To anyone else, it might have seemed pretty risky, and maybe even to him; but Tarzan had a taste for things that involved a good amount of danger. In any case, I doubt you or I would have picked a similar strategy to deal with an angry, hungry lion.
Tarzan required assistance in the scheme he had hit upon and his assistant must be equally as brave and almost as active as he. The ape-man’s eyes fell upon Taug, the playmate of his childhood, the rival in his first love and now, of all the bulls of the tribe, the only one that might be thought to hold in his savage brain any such feeling toward Tarzan as we describe among ourselves as friendship. At least, Tarzan knew, Taug was courageous, and he was young and agile and wonderfully muscled.
Tarzan needed help with the plan he had come up with, and his partner had to be just as brave and nearly as nimble as he was. The ape-man's eyes landed on Taug, his childhood playmate, the competitor for his first love, and now, out of all the bulls in the tribe, the only one who might have any feelings towards Tarzan that we would call friendship. At the very least, Tarzan knew Taug was brave, young, agile, and incredibly strong.
“Taug!” cried the ape-man. The great ape looked up from a dead limb he was attempting to tear from a lightning-blasted tree. “Go close to Numa and worry him,” said Tarzan. “Worry him until he charges. Lead him away from the body of Mamka. Keep him away as long as you can.”
“Taug!” shouted the ape-man. The large ape glanced up from a dead branch he was trying to pull off a lightning-struck tree. “Get close to Numa and annoy him,” Tarzan instructed. “Annoy him until he charges. Draw him away from Mamka's body. Keep him away for as long as you can.”
Taug nodded. He was across the clearing from Tarzan. Wresting the limb at last from the tree he dropped to the ground and advanced toward Numa, growling and barking out his insults. The worried lion looked up and rose to his feet. His tail went stiffly erect and Taug turned in flight, for he knew that warning signal of the charge.
Taug nodded. He was across the clearing from Tarzan. Finally pulling the limb from the tree, he dropped to the ground and moved toward Numa, growling and barking insults. The anxious lion looked up and stood up. His tail went straight up, and Taug took off running because he recognized that warning sign for a charge.
From behind the lion, Tarzan ran quickly toward the center of the clearing and the body of Mamka. Numa, all his eyes for Taug, did not see the ape-man. Instead he shot forward after the fleeing bull, who had turned in flight not an instant too soon, since he reached the nearest tree but a yard or two ahead of the pursuing demon. Like a cat the heavy anthropoid scampered up the bole of his sanctuary. Numa’s talons missing him by little more than inches.
From behind the lion, Tarzan sprinted toward the center of the clearing and the body of Mamka. Numa, focused entirely on Taug, didn’t notice the ape-man. Instead, he lunged after the fleeing bull, who had turned to flee just in time, reaching the nearest tree a yard or two ahead of the chasing beast. Like a cat, the hefty ape quickly climbed the trunk of his refuge, with Numa’s claws just inches away from him.
For a moment the lion paused beneath the tree, glaring up at the ape and roaring until the earth trembled, then he turned back again toward his kill, and as he did so, his tail shot once more to rigid erectness and he charged back even more ferociously than he had come, for what he saw was the naked man-thing running toward the farther trees with the bloody carcass of his prey across a giant shoulder.
For a moment, the lion stopped under the tree, staring up at the ape and roaring so loudly that the ground shook. Then he turned back toward his kill, and as he did, his tail shot up straight again, and he charged back even more fiercely than before. What he saw was the naked human creature running toward the distant trees with the bloody carcass of his prey across one massive shoulder.
The apes, watching the grim race from the safety of the trees, screamed taunts at Numa and warnings to Tarzan. The high sun, hot and brilliant, fell like a spotlight upon the actors in the little clearing, portraying them in glaring relief to the audience in the leafy shadows of the surrounding trees. The light-brown body of the naked youth, all but hidden by the shaggy carcass of the killed ape, the red blood streaking his smooth hide, his muscles rolling, velvety, beneath. Behind him the black-maned lion, head flattened, tail extended, racing, a jungle thoroughbred, across the sunlit clearing.
The apes, watching the intense race from the safety of the trees, shouted insults at Numa and warnings to Tarzan. The bright, hot sun shone down like a spotlight on the scene in the small clearing, casting them in sharp contrast against the audience in the leafy shadows of the surrounding trees. The light-brown body of the bare youth, mostly concealed by the shaggy body of the slain ape, the red blood staining his smooth skin, his muscles flexing, soft beneath. Behind him, the black-maned lion, head lowered, tail outstretched, sprinting like a jungle thoroughbred across the sunlit clearing.
Ah, but this was life! With death at his heels, Tarzan thrilled with the joy of such living as this; but would he reach the trees ahead of the rampant death so close behind?
Ah, but this was life! With death chasing him, Tarzan felt the excitement of living like this; but would he make it to the trees ahead of the relentless death so close behind?
Gunto swung from a limb in a tree before him. Gunto was screaming warnings and advice.
Gunto swung from a branch in a tree ahead of him. Gunto was shouting warnings and advice.
“Catch me!” cried Tarzan, and with his heavy burden leaped straight for the big bull hanging there by his hind feet and one forepaw. And Gunto caught them—the big ape-man and the dead weight of the slain she-ape—caught them with one great, hairy paw and whirled them upward until Tarzan’s fingers closed upon a near-by branch.
“Catch me!” shouted Tarzan, and with his heavy load, he jumped straight for the big bull hanging there by its hind feet and one forepaw. Gunto caught them—the big ape-man and the dead weight of the slain she-ape—caught them with one massive, hairy paw and spun them upward until Tarzan's fingers grasped a nearby branch.
Beneath, Numa leaped; but Gunto, heavy and awkward as he may have appeared, was as quick as Manu, the monkey, so that the lion’s talons but barely grazed him, scratching a bloody streak beneath one hairy arm.
Beneath, Numa jumped; but Gunto, as heavy and clumsy as he looked, was as quick as Manu, the monkey, so the lion’s claws barely touched him, leaving a bloody scratch under one hairy arm.
Tarzan carried Mamka’s corpse to a high crotch, where even Sheeta, the panther, could not get it. Numa paced angrily back and forth beneath the tree, roaring frightfully. He had been robbed of his kill and his revenge also. He was very savage indeed; but his despoilers were well out of his reach, and after hurling a few taunts and missiles at him they swung away through the trees, fiercely reviling him.
Tarzan carried Mamka’s body to a high spot where even Sheeta, the panther, couldn’t reach it. Numa paced angrily back and forth beneath the tree, roaring menacingly. He had been denied his kill and his revenge as well. He was incredibly furious; but his attackers were well out of his reach, and after throwing a few insults and objects at him, they swung away through the trees, harshly mocking him.
Tarzan thought much upon the little adventure of that day. He foresaw what might happen should the great carnivora of the jungle turn their serious attention upon the tribe of Kerchak, the great ape, but equally he thought upon the wild scramble of the apes for safety when Numa first charged among them. There is little humor in the jungle that is not grim and awful. The beasts have little or no conception of humor; but the young Englishman saw humor in many things which presented no humorous angle to his associates.
Tarzan reflected a lot on the little adventure of that day. He imagined what could occur if the major predators of the jungle focused their attention on the tribe of Kerchak, the great ape, but he also considered the chaotic rush of the apes for safety when Numa first charged into them. There's little humor in the jungle that's not dark and terrifying. The animals have little to no sense of humor; however, the young Englishman found humor in many things that his companions saw as entirely serious.
Since earliest childhood he had been a searcher after fun, much to the sorrow of his fellow-apes, and now he saw the humor of the frightened panic of the apes and the baffled rage of Numa even in this grim jungle adventure which had robbed Mamka of life, and jeopardized that of many members of the tribe.
Since he was a kid, he had always been on the lookout for fun, much to the dismay of his fellow apes, and now he found humor in the terrified chaos of the apes and the confused anger of Numa, even amid this dark jungle adventure that had taken Mamka's life and put many tribe members at risk.
It was but a few weeks later that Sheeta, the panther, made a sudden rush among the tribe and snatched a little balu from a tree where it had been hidden while its mother sought food. Sheeta got away with his small prize unmolested. Tarzan was very wroth. He spoke to the bulls of the ease with which Numa and Sheeta, in a single moon, had slain two members of the tribe.
It was just a few weeks later that Sheeta, the panther, made a sudden dash through the tribe and grabbed a little balu from a tree where it had been hiding while its mother looked for food. Sheeta got away with the small prize without any trouble. Tarzan was very angry. He talked to the bulls about how easily Numa and Sheeta had killed two members of the tribe in just a single moon.
“They will take us all for food,” he cried. “We hunt as we will through the jungle, paying no heed to approaching enemies. Even Manu, the monkey, does not so. He keeps two or three always watching for enemies. Pacco, the zebra, and Wappi, the antelope, have those about the herd who keep watch while the others feed, while we, the great Mangani, let Numa, and Sabor, and Sheeta come when they will and carry us off to feed their balus.
“They will take us all for food,” he shouted. “We roam through the jungle as we please, ignoring any enemies that may be near. Even Manu the monkey doesn’t do that. He always keeps two or three on lookout for threats. Pacco the zebra and Wappi the antelope have some in their herd who watch while the others eat, while we, the great Mangani, just let Numa, Sabor, and Sheeta come whenever they want and take us away to feed their young.”
“Gr-r-rmph,” said Numgo.
“Gr-r-rmph,” Numgo said.
“What are we to do?” asked Taug.
“What should we do?” asked Taug.
“We, too, should have two or three always watching for the approach of Numa, and Sabor, and Sheeta,” replied Tarzan. “No others need we fear, except Histah, the snake, and if we watch for the others we will see Histah if he comes, though gliding ever so silently.”
“We should always have two or three people on the lookout for Numa, Sabor, and Sheeta,” Tarzan replied. “We don’t need to worry about anyone else, except for Histah, the snake. If we keep an eye out for the others, we’ll spot Histah when he arrives, even if he’s slithering in silently.”
And so it was that the great apes of the tribe of Kerchak posted sentries thereafter, who watched upon three sides while the tribe hunted, scattered less than had been their wont.
And so it happened that the great apes of the Kerchak tribe stationed sentries from then on, who kept watch on three sides while the tribe hunted, spreading out less than they usually did.
But Tarzan went abroad alone, for Tarzan was a man-thing and sought amusement and adventure and such humor as the grim and terrible jungle offers to those who know it and do not fear it—a weird humor shot with blazing eyes and dappled with the crimson of lifeblood. While others sought only food and love, Tarzan of the Apes sought food and joy.
But Tarzan went out on his own, because Tarzan was part man and part beast and looked for fun and adventure, as well as a certain dark humor that the grim and terrifying jungle has for those who understand it and aren’t afraid—a strange humor filled with fierce eyes and marked by the red of bloodshed. While others only looked for food and romance, Tarzan of the Apes looked for food and happiness.
One day he hovered above the palisaded village of Mbonga, the chief, the jet cannibal of the jungle primeval. He saw, as he had seen many times before, the witch-doctor, Rabba Kega, decked out in the head and hide of Gorgo, the buffalo. It amused Tarzan to see a Gomangani parading as Gorgo; but it suggested nothing in particular to him until he chanced to see stretched against the side of Mbonga’s hut the skin of a lion with the head still on. Then a broad grin widened the handsome face of the savage beast-youth.
One day, he hovered above the walled village of Mbonga, the chief, the fierce cannibal of the ancient jungle. He noticed, as he had many times before, the witch-doctor, Rabba Kega, wearing the head and hide of Gorgo, the buffalo. It amused Tarzan to see a Gomangani acting like Gorgo; but it didn’t really register with him until he happened to see a lion skin stretched out against the side of Mbonga’s hut, still with the head attached. Then a big grin spread across the handsome face of the wild young man.
Back into the jungle he went until chance, agility, strength, and cunning backed by his marvelous powers of perception, gave him an easy meal. If Tarzan felt that the world owed him a living he also realized that it was for him to collect it, nor was there ever a better collector than this son of an English lord, who knew even less of the ways of his forbears than he did of the forbears themselves, which was nothing.
Back into the jungle he went until luck, agility, strength, and cleverness, along with his amazing perception, provided him with an easy meal. If Tarzan thought the world owed him a living, he also understood that it was his responsibility to earn it, and there was never a better collector than this son of an English lord, who knew even less about his ancestors than he did about the ancestors themselves, which was nothing.
It was quite dark when Tarzan returned to the village of Mbonga and took his now polished perch in the tree which overhangs the palisade upon one side of the walled enclosure. As there was nothing in particular to feast upon in the village there was little life in the single street, for only an orgy of flesh and native beer could draw out the people of Mbonga. Tonight they sat gossiping about their cooking fires, the older members of the tribe; or, if they were young, paired off in the shadows cast by the palm-thatched huts.
It was pretty dark when Tarzan got back to the village of Mbonga and took his now polished spot in the tree that hangs over the wall on one side of the enclosed area. Since there wasn’t anything special to eat in the village, there wasn’t much activity in the single street, as only a big feast of meat and native beer could get the people of Mbonga out. Tonight, the older tribe members were sitting around their cooking fires gossiping, while the younger ones were paired off in the shadows cast by the palm-thatched huts.
Tarzan dropped lightly into the village, and sneaking stealthily in the concealment of the denser shadows, approached the hut of the chief, Mbonga. Here he found that which he sought. There were warriors all about him; but they did not know that the feared devil-god slunk noiselessly so near them, nor did they see him possess himself of that which he coveted and depart from their village as noiselessly as he had come.
Tarzan stealthily landed in the village, quietly approaching Chief Mbonga's hut in the denser shadows. Here, he found what he was looking for. There were many warriors around; but they were unaware of this fearsome demon god silently approaching them, nor did they see him quietly take what he craved and leave the village just as silently as he came.
Later that night, as Tarzan curled himself for sleep, he lay for a long time looking up at the burning planets and the twinkling stars and at Goro the moon, and he smiled. He recalled how ludicrous the great bulls had appeared in their mad scramble for safety that day when Numa had charged among them and seized Mamka, and yet he knew them to be fierce and courageous. It was the sudden shock of surprise that always sent them into a panic; but of this Tarzan was not as yet fully aware. That was something he was to learn in the near future.
Later that night, as Tarzan curled up to sleep, he spent a long time gazing at the burning planets, the twinkling stars, and Goro the moon, with a smile on his face. He remembered how ridiculous the massive bulls had looked in their frantic rush for safety that day when Numa charged among them and grabbed Mamka, and yet he understood they were fierce and brave. It was the sudden shock of surprise that always threw them into a panic; however, Tarzan wasn't fully aware of this yet. That was something he would learn in the near future.
He fell asleep with a broad grin upon his face.
He fell asleep with a big smile on his face.
Manu, the monkey, awoke him in the morning by dropping discarded bean pods upon his upturned face from a branch a short distance above him. Tarzan looked up and smiled. He had been awakened thus before many times. He and Manu were fairly good friends, their friendship operating upon a reciprocal basis. Sometimes Manu would come running early in the morning to awaken Tarzan and tell him that Bara, the deer, was feeding close at hand, or that Horta, the boar, was asleep in a mudhole hard by, and in return Tarzan broke open the shells of the harder nuts and fruits for Manu, or frightened away Histah, the snake, and Sheeta, the panther.
Manu, the monkey, woke him up in the morning by dropping old bean pods on his face from a branch above him. Tarzan looked up and smiled. This wasn’t the first time he had been woken like this. He and Manu were pretty good friends, and their friendship worked both ways. Sometimes Manu would come running early in the morning to wake Tarzan and let him know that Bara, the deer, was feeding nearby, or that Horta, the boar, was sleeping in a muddy hole close by. In exchange, Tarzan would crack open the tough shells of nuts and fruits for Manu, or scare away Histah, the snake, and Sheeta, the panther.
The sun had been up for some time, and the tribe had already wandered off in search of food. Manu indicated the direction they had taken with a wave of his hand and a few piping notes of his squeaky little voice.
The sun had been up for a while, and the tribe had already set off to find food. Manu pointed in the direction they had gone with a wave of his hand and a few high-pitched notes from his squeaky little voice.
“Come, Manu,” said Tarzan, “and you will see that which shall make you dance for joy and squeal your wrinkled little head off. Come, follow Tarzan of the Apes.”
“Come on, Manu,” said Tarzan, “and you’ll see something that will make you dance with joy and squeal your little head off. Come, follow Tarzan of the Apes.”
With that he set off in the direction Manu had indicated and above him, chattering, scolding and squealing, skipped Manu, the monkey. Across Tarzan’s shoulders was the thing he had stolen from the village of Mbonga, the chief, the evening before.
With that, he headed in the direction Manu had pointed out, and above him, chattering, scolding, and squealing, was Manu, the monkey. Across Tarzan's shoulders was the item he had taken from the village of Mbonga, the chief, the night before.
The tribe was feeding in the forest beside the clearing where Gunto, and Taug, and Tarzan had so harassed Numa and finally taken away from him the fruit of his kill. Some of them were in the clearing itself. In peace and content they fed, for were there not three sentries, each watching upon a different side of the herd? Tarzan had taught them this, and though he had been away for several days hunting alone, as he often did, or visiting at the cabin by the sea, they had not as yet forgotten his admonitions, and if they continued for a short time longer to post sentries, it would become a habit of their tribal life and thus be perpetuated indefinitely.
The tribe was feeding in the forest next to the clearing where Gunto, Taug, and Tarzan had pestered Numa and finally taken his kill. Some of them were right in the clearing. In peace and contentment, they ate, for three sentries were watching from different sides of the herd. Tarzan had taught them this, and even though he had been away for several days hunting on his own, as he often did, or visiting the cabin by the sea, they hadn’t forgotten his advice. If they kept posting sentries for a little while longer, it would become a habit in their tribal life and continue on indefinitely.
But Tarzan, who knew them better than they knew themselves, was confident that they had ceased to place the watchers about them the moment that he had left them, and now he planned not only to have a little fun at their expense but to teach them a lesson in preparedness, which, by the way, is even a more vital issue in the jungle than in civilized places. That you and I exist today must be due to the preparedness of some shaggy anthropoid of the Oligocene. Of course the apes of Kerchak were always prepared, after their own way—Tarzan had merely suggested a new and additional safeguard.
But Tarzan, who understood them better than they understood themselves, was sure they stopped keeping an eye out as soon as he left them. Now he planned not only to have some fun at their expense but also to teach them a lesson about being prepared, which is actually even more important in the jungle than in civilized areas. The reason you and I are here today is because of the preparedness of some rough-looking ancestor from the Oligocene era. Of course, Kerchak’s apes were always prepared in their own way—Tarzan just suggested a new and extra precaution.
Gunto was posted today to the north of the clearing. He squatted in the fork of a tree from where he might view the jungle for quite a distance about him. It was he who first discovered the enemy. A rustling in the undergrowth attracted his attention, and a moment later he had a partial view of a shaggy mane and tawny yellow back. Just a glimpse it was through the matted foliage beneath him; but it brought from Gunto’s leathern lungs a shrill “Kreeg-ah!” which is the ape for beware, or danger.
Gunto was assigned today to the north of the clearing. He crouched in the fork of a tree where he could see the jungle for quite a distance around him. He was the first to spot the enemy. A rustling in the underbrush caught his attention, and a moment later he caught a glimpse of a shaggy mane and a tawny yellow back. It was just a quick look through the tangled foliage below him, but it made Gunto let out a sharp “Kreeg-ah!” which means beware, or danger, in ape language.
Instantly the tribe took up the cry until “Kreeg-ahs!” rang through the jungle about the clearing as apes swung quickly to places of safety among the lower branches of the trees and the great bulls hastened in the direction of Gunto.
Instantly, the tribe picked up the shout until “Kreeg-ahs!” echoed through the jungle around the clearing as apes swiftly swung to safety among the lower branches of the trees, and the huge bulls rushed toward Gunto.
And then into the clearing strode Numa, the lion—majestic and mighty, and from a deep chest issued the moan and the cough and the rumbling roar that set stiff hairs to bristling from shaggy craniums down the length of mighty spines.
And then into the clearing walked Numa, the lion—majestic and powerful, and from his deep chest came a moan, a cough, and a rumbling roar that made the stiff hairs bristle along the shaggy tops of their heads and down the length of their strong spines.
Inside the clearing, Numa paused and on the instant there fell upon him from the trees near by a shower of broken rock and dead limbs torn from age-old trees. A dozen times he was hit, and then the apes ran down and gathered other rocks, pelting him unmercifully.
Inside the clearing, Numa paused, and at that moment, a shower of broken rocks and dead branches fell on him from the nearby trees. He was struck a dozen times, and then the apes rushed down and collected more rocks, throwing them at him mercilessly.
Numa turned to flee, but his way was barred by a fusilade of sharp-cornered missiles, and then, upon the edge of the clearing, great Taug met him with a huge fragment of rock as large as a man’s head, and down went the Lord of the Jungle beneath the stunning blow.
Numa tried to run away, but his path was blocked by a barrage of sharp missiles, and then, at the edge of the clearing, the massive Taug confronted him with a huge rock the size of a man's head, and down fell the Lord of the Jungle from the stunning hit.
With shrieks and roars and loud barkings the great apes of the tribe of Kerchak rushed upon the fallen lion. Sticks and stones and yellow fangs menaced the still form. In another moment, before he could regain consciousness, Numa would be battered and torn until only a bloody mass of broken bones and matted hair remained of what had once been the most dreaded of jungle creatures.
With shrieks, roars, and loud barks, the great apes from the tribe of Kerchak charged at the fallen lion. Sticks, stones, and sharp teeth threatened the motionless body. In just a moment, before he could come to his senses, Numa would be beaten and shredded until only a bloody heap of broken bones and tangled hair was left of what had once been the most feared creature in the jungle.
But even as the sticks and stones were raised above him and the great fangs bared to tear him, there descended like a plummet from the trees above a diminutive figure with long, white whiskers and a wrinkled face. Square upon the body of Numa it alighted and there it danced and screamed and shrieked out its challenge against the bulls of Kerchak.
But even as the sticks and stones were lifted over him and the sharp teeth bared to attack, a small figure with long white whiskers and a wrinkled face dropped down from the trees above. It landed right on top of Numa and began to dance and shout, challenging the bulls of Kerchak.
For an instant they paused, paralyzed by the wonder of the thing. It was Manu, the monkey, Manu, the little coward, and here he was daring the ferocity of the great Mangani, hopping about upon the carcass of Numa, the lion, and crying out that they must not strike it again.
For a moment, they froze, astonished by what they were seeing. It was Manu, the monkey, Manu, the little coward, and here he was, challenging the ferocity of the great Mangani, jumping around on the carcass of Numa, the lion, and shouting that they shouldn't hit it again.
And when the bulls paused, Manu reached down and seized a tawny ear. With all his little might he tugged upon the heavy head until slowly it turned back, revealing the tousled, black head and clean-cut profile of Tarzan of the Apes.
And when the bulls stopped, Manu bent down and grabbed a brown ear. With all his strength, he pulled on the heavy head until it slowly turned back, showing the messy black hair and sharp features of Tarzan of the Apes.
Some of the older apes were for finishing what they had commenced; but Taug, sullen, mighty Taug, sprang quickly to the ape-man’s side and straddling the unconscious form warned back those who would have struck his childhood playmate. And Teeka, his mate, came too, taking her place with bared fangs at Taug’s side. Others followed their example, until at last Tarzan was surrounded by a ring of hairy champions who would permit no enemy to approach him.
Some of the older apes were determined to finish what they had started; but Taug, gloomy yet powerful Taug, quickly jumped to the ape-man’s side and, straddling the unconscious figure, warned off anyone who tried to attack his childhood friend. Teeka, his mate, joined him, standing with her fangs bared at Taug’s side. Others followed their lead, and soon Tarzan was encircled by a group of hairy champions who wouldn’t allow any enemy to come near him.
It was a surprised and chastened Tarzan who opened his eyes to consciousness a few minutes later. He looked about him at the surrounding apes and slowly there returned to him a realization of what had occurred.
It was a shocked and humbled Tarzan who opened his eyes to awareness a few minutes later. He glanced around at the nearby apes and gradually remembered what had happened.
Gradually a broad grin illuminated his features. His bruises were many and they hurt; but the good that had come from his adventure was worth all that it had cost. He had learned, for instance, that the apes of Kerchak had heeded his teaching, and he had learned that he had good friends among the sullen beasts whom he had thought without sentiment. He had discovered that Manu, the monkey—even little, cowardly Manu—had risked his life in his defense.
Gradually, a wide smile brightened his face. He had a lot of bruises and they hurt, but the good that came from his adventure was worth every bit of pain. He had learned, for example, that Kerchak's apes had listened to his teachings, and he had realized that he had true friends among the grumpy creatures he had assumed were heartless. He had found out that Manu, the monkey—even the small, timid Manu—had risked his life to defend him.
It made Tarzan very glad to know these things; but at the other lesson he had been taught he reddened. He had always been a joker, the only joker in the grim and terrible company; but now as he lay there half dead from his hurts, he almost swore a solemn oath forever to forego practical joking—almost; but not quite.
It made Tarzan really happy to learn these things; but at the other lesson he had been taught, he blushed. He had always been the joker, the only one in the grim and frightening company; but now as he lay there half dead from his injuries, he nearly swore a serious oath to give up practical jokes forever—almost; but not quite.
CHAPTER IX
The Nightmare
The blacks of the village of Mbonga, the chief, were feasting, while above them in a large tree sat Tarzan of the Apes—grim, terrible, empty, and envious. Hunting had proved poor that day, for there are lean days as well as fat ones for even the greatest of the jungle hunters. Oftentimes Tarzan went empty for more than a full sun, and he had passed through entire moons during which he had been but barely able to stave off starvation; but such times were infrequent.
The people of the village of Mbonga were celebrating, while high in a large tree sat Tarzan of the Apes—grim, fearsome, empty, and envious. The hunting had been bad that day, because even the best jungle hunters have lean days as well as fat ones. Often, Tarzan went without food for more than a full day, and there were whole months when he struggled just to avoid starvation; but those times were rare.
There once had been a period of sickness among the grass-eaters which had left the plains almost bare of game for several years, and again the great cats had increased so rapidly and so overrun the country that their prey, which was also Tarzan’s, had been frightened off for a considerable time.
There had once been a time when the plant-eaters were sick, leaving the plains nearly empty of game for several years. The big cats then multiplied so quickly and took over the land that their prey, which was also Tarzan’s, had been scared away for a long time.
But for the most part Tarzan had fed well always. Today, though, he had gone empty, one misfortune following another as rapidly as he raised new quarry, so that now, as he sat perched in the tree above the feasting blacks, he experienced all the pangs of famine and his hatred for his lifelong enemies waxed strong in his breast. It was tantalizing, indeed, to sit there hungry while these Gomangani filled themselves so full of food that their stomachs seemed almost upon the point of bursting, and with elephant steaks at that!
But for the most part, Tarzan had always eaten well. Today, however, he had gone hungry, one misfortune after another happening just as fast as he found new prey. Now, as he sat in the tree above the feasting locals, he felt all the pains of hunger and his hatred for his lifelong enemies grew stronger inside him. It was truly frustrating to sit there hungry while these Gomangani stuffed themselves so much with food that their stomachs looked like they were about to burst, and with elephant steaks no less!
It was true that Tarzan and Tantor were the best of friends, and that Tarzan never yet had tasted of the flesh of the elephant; but the Gomangani evidently had slain one, and as they were eating of the flesh of their kill, Tarzan was assailed by no doubts as to the ethics of his doing likewise, should he have the opportunity. Had he known that the elephant had died of sickness several days before the blacks discovered the carcass, he might not have been so keen to partake of the feast, for Tarzan of the Apes was no carrion-eater. Hunger, however, may blunt the most epicurean taste, and Tarzan was not exactly an epicure.
It was true that Tarzan and Tantor were the best of friends, and that Tarzan had never eaten elephant meat; but the Gomangani had clearly killed one, and as they feasted on the meat from their kill, Tarzan had no doubts about the ethics of doing the same if he got the chance. If he had known that the elephant had died from illness several days before the locals found the body, he might not have been so eager to join the feast, because Tarzan of the Apes was not one to eat rotting flesh. However, hunger can dull even the most refined palate, and Tarzan wasn't exactly a foodie.
What he was at this moment was a very hungry wild beast whom caution was holding in leash, for the great cooking pot in the center of the village was surrounded by black warriors, through whom not even Tarzan of the Apes might hope to pass unharmed. It would be necessary, therefore, for the watcher to remain there hungry until the blacks had gorged themselves to stupor, and then, if they had left any scraps, to make the best meal he could from such; but to the impatient Tarzan it seemed that the greedy Gomangani would rather burst than leave the feast before the last morsel had been devoured. For a time they broke the monotony of eating by executing portions of a hunting dance, a maneuver which sufficiently stimulated digestion to permit them to fall to once more with renewed vigor; but with the consumption of appalling quantities of elephant meat and native beer they presently became too loggy for physical exertion of any sort, some reaching a stage where they no longer could rise from the ground, but lay conveniently close to the great cooking pot, stuffing themselves into unconsciousness.
What he was at that moment was a very hungry wild animal, kept in check by caution, because the large cooking pot in the middle of the village was surrounded by Black warriors, and not even Tarzan of the Apes could hope to get through them unharmed. So, the only option for him was to stay there hungry until the warriors filled themselves to the point of exhaustion, and then, if they left any scraps, to make the best meal he could from what was leftover; but to the restless Tarzan, it seemed like the greedy Gomangani would rather burst than leave the feast before the last bite was gone. For a while, they broke the boredom of eating by performing parts of a hunting dance, which helped digestion enough for them to dive back in with renewed energy; but after consuming ridiculous amounts of elephant meat and native beer, they soon became too sluggish for any kind of physical activity, some reaching a point where they couldn’t even get up from the ground and instead lay conveniently close to the large cooking pot, stuffing themselves into oblivion.
It was well past midnight before Tarzan even could begin to see the end of the orgy. The blacks were now falling asleep rapidly; but a few still persisted. From their condition Tarzan had no doubt but that he easily could enter the village and snatch a handful of meat from before their noses; but a handful was not what he wanted. Nothing less than a stomachful would allay the gnawing craving of that great emptiness. He must therefore have ample time to forage in peace.
It was well past midnight when Tarzan finally started to see the end of the party. The locals were quickly falling asleep, but a few were still awake. From their state, Tarzan had no doubt he could easily sneak into the village and grab a handful of food right in front of them; but a handful wasn’t what he wanted. Nothing less than a full meal would satisfy the intense hunger in his stomach. He needed plenty of time to search for food without being disturbed.
At last but a single warrior remained true to his ideals—an old fellow whose once wrinkled belly was now as smooth and as tight as the head of a drum. With evidences of great discomfort, and even pain, he would crawl toward the pot and drag himself slowly to his knees, from which position he could reach into the receptacle and seize a piece of meat. Then he would roll over on his back with a loud groan and lie there while he slowly forced the food between his teeth and down into his gorged stomach.
At last, only one warrior stood by his beliefs—an old man whose once wrinkled belly was now as smooth and tight as a drumhead. Clearly in great discomfort and even pain, he would crawl toward the pot and slowly pull himself to his knees, allowing him to reach into the container and grab a piece of meat. Then he'd roll onto his back with a loud groan, lying there as he gradually forced the food between his teeth and down into his full stomach.
It was evident to Tarzan that the old fellow would eat until he died, or until there was no more meat. The ape-man shook his head in disgust. What foul creatures were these Gomangani? Yet of all the jungle folk they alone resembled Tarzan closely in form. Tarzan was a man, and they, too, must be some manner of men, just as the little monkeys, and the great apes, and Bolgani, the gorilla, were quite evidently of one great family, though differing in size and appearance and customs. Tarzan was ashamed, for of all the beasts of the jungle, then, man was the most disgusting—man and Dango, the hyena. Only man and Dango ate until they swelled up like a dead rat. Tarzan had seen Dango eat his way into the carcass of a dead elephant and then continue to eat so much that he had been unable to get out of the hole through which he had entered. Now he could readily believe that man, given the opportunity, would do the same. Man, too, was the most unlovely of creatures—with his skinny legs and his big stomach, his filed teeth, and his thick, red lips. Man was disgusting. Tarzan’s gaze was riveted upon the hideous old warrior wallowing in filth beneath him.
It was clear to Tarzan that the old man would keep eating until he either died or there was no more food left. The ape-man shook his head in disgust. What disgusting creatures were these Gomangani? Yet, out of all the jungle inhabitants, they alone looked the most like Tarzan. Tarzan was a man, and they must be some kind of men too, just like the little monkeys, the great apes, and Bolgani, the gorilla, who were all obviously part of one big family, even though they varied in size, appearance, and behavior. Tarzan felt embarrassed because of all the animals in the jungle, humans were the most repulsive—humans and Dango, the hyena. Only humans and Dango overate until they looked like a bloated dead rat. Tarzan had watched Dango eat his way into the body of a dead elephant and then keep eating so much that he couldn't get back out of the opening he had made. Now he could easily believe that a human, given the chance, would do the same. Humans were also the least attractive of all beings—with their skinny legs and huge stomachs, filed teeth, and thick, red lips. Humans were disgusting. Tarzan’s attention was fixed on the ugly old warrior rolling in filth beneath him.
There! the thing was struggling to its knees to reach for another morsel of flesh. It groaned aloud in pain and yet it persisted in eating, eating, ever eating. Tarzan could endure it no longer—neither his hunger nor his disgust. Silently he slipped to the ground with the bole of the great tree between himself and the feaster.
There! The creature was struggling to its knees to grab another piece of flesh. It groaned loudly in pain, yet it kept on eating, eating, always eating. Tarzan could no longer bear it—neither his hunger nor his disgust. Quietly, he crouched down behind the trunk of the large tree, putting it between himself and the eater.
The man was still kneeling, bent almost double in agony, before the cooking pot. His back was toward the ape-man. Swiftly and noiselessly Tarzan approached him. There was no sound as steel fingers closed about the black throat. The struggle was short, for the man was old and already half stupefied from the effects of the gorging and the beer.
The man was still kneeling, nearly doubled over in pain, in front of the cooking pot. His back was turned to the ape-man. Quickly and quietly, Tarzan moved closer to him. There was no noise as steel fingers gripped the man's dark throat. The fight didn’t last long, as the man was old and already half out of it from overeating and the beer.
Tarzan dropped the inert mass and scooped several large pieces of meat from the cooking pot—enough to satisfy even his great hunger—then he raised the body of the feaster and shoved it into the vessel. When the other blacks awoke they would have something to think about! Tarzan grinned. As he turned toward the tree with his meat, he picked up a vessel containing beer and raised it to his lips, but at the first taste he spat the stuff from his mouth and tossed the primitive tankard aside. He was quite sure that even Dango would draw the line at such filthy tasting drink as that, and his contempt for man increased with the conviction.
Tarzan dropped the lifeless body and grabbed a few large chunks of meat from the cooking pot—enough to satisfy even his massive hunger—then he lifted the feaster's body and pushed it into the pot. When the other men woke up, they would have something to ponder! Tarzan smirked. As he turned toward the tree with his meat, he picked up a container of beer and brought it to his lips, but at the first sip, he spat the liquid out and threw the crude mug aside. He was certain that even Dango wouldn’t touch such a disgusting drink, and his disdain for humanity grew stronger with that thought.
Tarzan swung off into the jungle some half mile or so before he paused to partake of his stolen food. He noticed that it gave forth a strange and unpleasant odor, but assumed that this was due to the fact that it had stood in a vessel of water above a fire. Tarzan was, of course, unaccustomed to cooked food. He did not like it; but he was very hungry and had eaten a considerable portion of his haul before it was really borne in upon him that the stuff was nauseating. It required far less than he had imagined it would to satisfy his appetite.
Tarzan swung into the jungle for about half a mile before he stopped to eat the food he had stolen. He noticed it had a strange and unpleasant smell, but he figured it was because it had been sitting in a container of water above a fire. Since Tarzan was not used to cooked food, he didn’t like it; but he was really hungry and had eaten a good amount of his catch before he realized how disgusting it was. It took much less than he thought it would to fill him up.
Throwing the balance to the ground he curled up in a convenient crotch and sought slumber; but slumber seemed difficult to woo. Ordinarily Tarzan of the Apes was asleep as quickly as a dog after it curls itself upon a hearthrug before a roaring blaze; but tonight he squirmed and twisted, for at the pit of his stomach was a peculiar feeling that resembled nothing more closely than an attempt upon the part of the fragments of elephant meat reposing there to come out into the night and search for their elephant; but Tarzan was adamant. He gritted his teeth and held them back. He was not to be robbed of his meal after waiting so long to obtain it.
Throwing the balance to the ground, he curled up in a comfortable position and tried to sleep; but sleep was hard to come by. Usually, Tarzan of the Apes fell asleep as quickly as a dog does after it curls up on a warm rug by a blazing fire; but tonight he squirmed and twisted, feeling a strange sensation in his stomach that was like the pieces of elephant meat resting there trying to escape into the night to find their elephant; but Tarzan was resolute. He gritted his teeth and held them back. He wasn’t going to be robbed of his meal after waiting so long to get it.
He had succeeded in dozing when the roaring of a lion awoke him. He sat up to discover that it was broad daylight. Tarzan rubbed his eyes. Could it be that he had really slept? He did not feel particularly refreshed as he should have after a good sleep. A noise attracted his attention, and he looked down to see a lion standing at the foot of the tree gazing hungrily at him. Tarzan made a face at the king of beasts, whereat Numa, greatly to the ape-man’s surprise, started to climb up into the branches toward him. Now, never before had Tarzan seen a lion climb a tree, yet, for some unaccountable reason, he was not greatly surprised that this particular lion should do so.
He had managed to doze off when the roar of a lion woke him up. He sat up to find it was broad daylight. Tarzan rubbed his eyes. Had he really slept? He didn’t feel as refreshed as he should after a good sleep. A noise caught his attention, and he looked down to see a lion standing at the base of the tree, glaring at him hungrily. Tarzan made a face at the king of beasts, and to his surprise, Numa started to climb up into the branches toward him. Tarzan had never seen a lion climb a tree before, yet for some strange reason, he wasn’t all that shocked that this particular lion was doing it.
As the lion climbed slowly toward him, Tarzan sought higher branches; but to his chagrin, he discovered that it was with the utmost difficulty that he could climb at all. Again and again he slipped back, losing all that he had gained, while the lion kept steadily at his climbing, coming ever closer and closer to the ape-man. Tarzan could see the hungry light in the yellow-green eyes. He could see the slaver on the drooping jowls, and the great fangs agape to seize and destroy him. Clawing desperately, the ape-man at last succeeded in gaining a little upon his pursuer. He reached the more slender branches far aloft where he well knew no lion could follow; yet on and on came devil-faced Numa. It was incredible; but it was true. Yet what most amazed Tarzan was that though he realized the incredibility of it all, he at the same time accepted it as a matter of course, first that a lion should climb at all and second that he should enter the upper terraces where even Sheeta, the panther, dared not venture.
As the lion climbed slowly towards him, Tarzan looked for higher branches; but much to his frustration, he found it incredibly hard to climb at all. Time and again he slipped back, losing all the progress he had made, while the lion continued to climb steadily, getting closer and closer to the ape-man. Tarzan could see the hungry gleam in the lion's yellow-green eyes. He could see the slobber on the drooping jowls and the huge teeth ready to seize and kill him. Desperately clawing at the branches, the ape-man finally managed to gain a little distance from his pursuer. He reached the thinner branches high above, where he knew no lion could follow; yet Numa, with his devilish face, kept coming. It was unbelievable, but it was happening. What shocked Tarzan the most was that even though he understood how unbelievable it all was, he still accepted it as normal—that a lion could climb at all and that it could enter the high branches where even Sheeta, the panther, wouldn't dare go.
To the very top of a tall tree the ape-man clawed his awkward way and after him came Numa, the lion, moaning dismally. At last Tarzan stood balanced upon the very utmost pinnacle of a swaying branch, high above the forest. He could go no farther. Below him the lion came steadily upward, and Tarzan of the Apes realized that at last the end had come. He could not do battle upon a tiny branch with Numa, the lion, especially with such a Numa, to which swaying branches two hundred feet above the ground provided as substantial footing as the ground itself.
To the very top of a tall tree, the ape-man awkwardly climbed, and right behind him came Numa, the lion, growling sadly. Finally, Tarzan balanced on the very top of a swaying branch, high above the forest. He couldn't go any farther. Below him, the lion climbed steadily up, and Tarzan of the Apes realized that the end had finally arrived. He couldn’t fight on such a small branch against Numa, especially not with a Numa for whom swaying branches two hundred feet above the ground felt as solid as the ground itself.
Nearer and nearer came the lion. Another moment and he could reach up with one great paw and drag the ape-man downward to those awful jaws. A whirring noise above his head caused Tarzan to glance apprehensively upward. A great bird was circling close above him. He never had seen so large a bird in all his life, yet he recognized it immediately, for had he not seen it hundreds of times in one of the books in the little cabin by the land-locked bay—the moss-grown cabin that with its contents was the sole heritage left by his dead and unknown father to the young Lord Greystoke?
The lion was getting closer and closer. In just a moment, he could reach up with one massive paw and pull the ape-man down to those terrifying jaws. A whirring noise above him made Tarzan look up with apprehension. A huge bird was circling right above him. He had never seen such a large bird in his life, yet he recognized it immediately, because didn’t he see it hundreds of times in one of the books in the little cabin by the land-locked bay—the moss-covered cabin that, along with its contents, was the only inheritance left by his dead and unknown father to the young Lord Greystoke?
In the picture-book the great bird was shown flying far above the ground with a small child in its talons while, beneath, a distracted mother stood with uplifted hands. The lion was already reaching forth a taloned paw to seize him when the bird swooped and buried no less formidable talons in Tarzan’s back. The pain was numbing; but it was with a sense of relief that the ape-man felt himself snatched from the clutches of Numa.
In the picture book, the giant bird was depicted soaring high above the ground, grasping a small child in its talons, while a distracted mother stood below with her hands raised. The lion was already extending a clawed paw to grab the child when the bird swooped down and sank its equally fierce talons into Tarzan’s back. The pain was overwhelming, but the ape-man felt a sense of relief as he was pulled away from Numa’s grip.
With a great whirring of wings the bird rose rapidly until the forest lay far below. It made Tarzan sick and dizzy to look down upon it from so great a height, so he closed his eyes tight and held his breath. Higher and higher climbed the huge bird. Tarzan opened his eyes. The jungle was so far away that he could see only a dim, green blur below him, but just above and quite close was the sun. Tarzan reached out his hands and warmed them, for they were very cold. Then a sudden madness seized him. Where was the bird taking him? Was he to submit thus passively to a feathered creature however enormous? Was he, Tarzan of the Apes, mighty fighter, to die without striking a blow in his own defense? Never!
With a loud flapping of wings, the bird shot up quickly until the forest was far beneath. Looking down from such a height made Tarzan feel sick and dizzy, so he tightly shut his eyes and held his breath. The enormous bird climbed higher and higher. Tarzan opened his eyes. The jungle was so distant that he could only see a faint, green blur below him, but right above and very close was the sun. Tarzan stretched out his hands to warm them, as they were extremely cold. Then, a sudden rush of anger took over him. Where was the bird taking him? Was he really going to just let this massive creature take him wherever it wanted? Was he, Tarzan of the Apes, a powerful fighter, going to die without even fighting back? Never!
He snatched the hunting blade from his gee-string and thrusting upward drove it once, twice, thrice into the breast above him. The mighty wings fluttered a few more times, spasmodically, the talons relaxed their hold, and Tarzan of the Apes fell hurtling downward toward the distant jungle.
He grabbed the hunting knife from his waistband and thrust it upward, stabbing it once, twice, three times into the chest above him. The massive wings fluttered a few more times, uncontrollably, the talons loosened their grip, and Tarzan of the Apes plummeted downward toward the far-off jungle.
It seemed to the ape-man that he fell for many minutes before he crashed through the leafy verdure of the tree tops. The smaller branches broke his fall, so that he came to rest for an instant upon the very branch upon which he had sought slumber the previous night. For an instant he toppled there in a frantic attempt to regain his equilibrium; but at last he rolled off, yet, clutching wildly, he succeeded in grasping the branch and hanging on.
It felt like the ape-man was falling for several minutes before he broke through the leafy treetops. The smaller branches softened his fall, allowing him to rest for a moment on the very branch where he had tried to sleep the night before. For a brief moment, he struggled to regain his balance; but finally, he rolled off. In a wild attempt to catch himself, he managed to grab onto the branch and hang on tight.
Once more he opened his eyes, which he had closed during the fall. Again it was night. With all his old agility he clambered back to the crotch from which he had toppled. Below him a lion roared, and, looking downward, Tarzan could see the yellow-green eyes shining in the moonlight as they bored hungrily upward through the darkness of the jungle night toward him.
Once again, he opened his eyes, which he had shut during the fall. It was night again. With all his old agility, he climbed back to the branch from which he had fallen. Below him, a lion roared, and looking down, Tarzan could see the yellow-green eyes glowing in the moonlight as they stared hungrily upward through the darkness of the jungle night at him.
The ape-man gasped for breath. Cold sweat stood out from every pore, there was a great sickness at the pit of Tarzan’s stomach. Tarzan of the Apes had dreamed his first dream.
The ape-man gasped for breath. Cold sweat oozed from every pore, and a deep sickness twisted in Tarzan’s stomach. Tarzan of the Apes had experienced his first dream.
For a long time he sat watching for Numa to climb into the tree after him, and listening for the sound of the great wings from above, for to Tarzan of the Apes his dream was a reality.
For a long time he sat waiting for Numa to climb into the tree after him, listening for the sound of the huge wings from above, because for Tarzan of the Apes, his dream was real.
He could not believe what he had seen and yet, having seen even these incredible things, he could not disbelieve the evidence of his own perceptions. Never in all his life had Tarzan’s senses deceived him badly, and so, naturally, he had great faith in them. Each perception which ever had been transmitted to Tarzan’s brain had been, with varying accuracy, a true perception. He could not conceive of the possibility of apparently having passed through such a weird adventure in which there was no grain of truth. That a stomach, disordered by decayed elephant flesh, a lion roaring in the jungle, a picture-book, and sleep could have so truly portrayed all the clear-cut details of what he had seemingly experienced was quite beyond his knowledge; yet he knew that Numa could not climb a tree, he knew that there existed in the jungle no such bird as he had seen, and he knew, too, that he could not have fallen a tiny fraction of the distance he had hurtled downward, and lived.
He couldn't believe what he had seen, and yet, even after witnessing these incredible things, he couldn't doubt the evidence of his own senses. Throughout his life, Tarzan's senses had never deceived him badly, and so he naturally had a lot of faith in them. Every perception that had ever reached Tarzan's brain had been, with varying accuracy, a true perception. He couldn't imagine the possibility of having gone through such a bizarre experience without any truth in it. The fact that a stomach upset from rotting elephant meat, a lion roaring in the jungle, a picture book, and sleep could all vividly capture the clear details of what he seemed to have experienced was completely beyond his understanding; yet he knew that Numa couldn't climb a tree, he knew there was no bird in the jungle like the one he had seen, and he also knew that he couldn't have fallen even a tiny fraction of the distance he had plummeted and survived.
To say the least, he was a very puzzled Tarzan as he tried to compose himself once more for slumber—a very puzzled and a very nauseated Tarzan.
To say the least, he was a very confused Tarzan as he tried to calm himself down again for sleep—a very confused and a very queasy Tarzan.
As he thought deeply upon the strange occurrences of the night, he witnessed another remarkable happening. It was indeed quite preposterous, yet he saw it all with his own eyes—it was nothing less than Histah, the snake, wreathing his sinuous and slimy way up the bole of the tree below him—Histah, with the head of the old man Tarzan had shoved into the cooking pot—the head and the round, tight, black, distended stomach. As the old man’s frightful face, with upturned eyes, set and glassy, came close to Tarzan, the jaws opened to seize him. The ape-man struck furiously at the hideous face, and as he struck the apparition disappeared.
As he reflected on the strange events of the night, he witnessed another astonishing occurrence. It was truly absurd, yet he saw it all with his own eyes— it was none other than Histah, the snake, slithering its slimy way up the trunk of the tree beneath him—Histah, with the head of the old man Tarzan had thrown into the cooking pot—the head and the round, tight, black, swollen stomach. As the old man's terrifying face, with its upturned, blank, glassy eyes, came close to Tarzan, the jaws opened to grab him. The ape-man struck fiercely at the hideous face, and as he did, the apparition vanished.
Tarzan sat straight up upon his branch trembling in every limb, wide-eyed and panting. He looked all around him with his keen, jungle-trained eyes, but he saw naught of the old man with the body of Histah, the snake, but on his naked thigh the ape-man saw a caterpillar, dropped from a branch above him. With a grimace he flicked it off into the darkness beneath.
Tarzan sat up straight on his branch, shaking all over, wide-eyed and breathing heavily. He scanned his surroundings with his sharp, jungle-honed gaze, but he didn’t see the old man with the body of Histah, the snake. Instead, on his bare thigh, he noticed a caterpillar that had fallen from a branch above him. Making a face, he flicked it off into the darkness below.
And so the night wore on, dream following dream, nightmare following nightmare, until the distracted ape-man started like a frightened deer at the rustling of the wind in the trees about him, or leaped to his feet as the uncanny laugh of a hyena burst suddenly upon a momentary jungle silence. But at last the tardy morning broke and a sick and feverish Tarzan wound sluggishly through the dank and gloomy mazes of the forest in search of water. His whole body seemed on fire, a great sickness surged upward to his throat. He saw a tangle of almost impenetrable thicket, and, like the wild beast he was, he crawled into it to die alone and unseen, safe from the attacks of predatory carnivora.
And so the night went on, one dream after another, followed by nightmares, until the distracted ape-man jumped in surprise like a scared deer at the sound of the wind rustling through the trees around him, or sprang to his feet as the eerie laugh of a hyena suddenly broke the brief jungle silence. But eventually, the slow morning dawned and a sick and feverish Tarzan moved slowly through the damp and gloomy twists of the forest in search of water. His whole body felt like it was on fire, and a heavy sickness rose up to his throat. He spotted a tangle of nearly impenetrable thicket, and, like the wild animal he was, he crawled into it to die alone and unseen, safe from the attacks of predatory carnivores.
But he did not die. For a long time he wanted to; but presently nature and an outraged stomach relieved themselves in their own therapeutic manner, the ape-man broke into a violent perspiration and then fell into a normal and untroubled sleep which persisted well into the afternoon. When he awoke he found himself weak but no longer sick.
But he didn’t die. For a long time, he wanted to; but eventually, nature and an upset stomach took care of things in their own way. The ape-man broke out in a heavy sweat and then fell into a calm and deep sleep that lasted well into the afternoon. When he woke up, he felt weak but no longer sick.
Once more he sought water, and after drinking deeply, took his way slowly toward the cabin by the sea. In times of loneliness and trouble it had long been his custom to seek there the quiet and restfulness which he could find nowhere else.
Once again, he looked for water, and after drinking deeply, he slowly made his way toward the cabin by the sea. In moments of loneliness and trouble, it had become his habit to seek the peace and comfort there that he couldn’t find anywhere else.
As he approached the cabin and raised the crude latch which his father had fashioned so many years before, two small, blood-shot eyes watched him from the concealing foliage of the jungle close by. From beneath shaggy, beetling brows they glared maliciously upon him, maliciously and with a keen curiosity; then Tarzan entered the cabin and closed the door after him. Here, with all the world shut out from him, he could dream without fear of interruption. He could curl up and look at the pictures in the strange things which were books, he could puzzle out the printed word he had learned to read without knowledge of the spoken language it represented, he could live in a wonderful world of which he had no knowledge beyond the covers of his beloved books. Numa and Sabor might prowl about close to him, the elements might rage in all their fury; but here at least, Tarzan might be entirely off his guard in a delightful relaxation which gave him all his faculties for the uninterrupted pursuit of this greatest of all his pleasures.
As he got closer to the cabin and lifted the rough latch his father had made so many years ago, two small, bloodshot eyes watched him from the hiding place in the nearby jungle. From underneath bushy, protruding brows, they glared at him with a mix of malice and keen curiosity. Then Tarzan stepped inside the cabin and shut the door behind him. Here, completely cut off from the outside world, he could dream without worrying about being disturbed. He could curl up and look at the pictures in the strange things he called books, he could figure out the printed words he had learned to read even though he didn't know the spoken language they represented, and he could immerse himself in a fantastic world he knew only through the covers of his beloved books. Numa and Sabor might be lurking nearby, and the elements could rage outside in all their fury; but here, at least, Tarzan could completely let his guard down and enjoy a delightful relaxation that allowed him to fully engage in the pursuit of his greatest pleasure.
Today he turned to the picture of the huge bird which bore off the little Tarmangani in its talons. Tarzan puckered his brows as he examined the colored print. Yes, this was the very bird that had carried him off the day before, for to Tarzan the dream had been so great a reality that he still thought another day and a night had passed since he had lain down in the tree to sleep.
Today he looked at the picture of the giant bird that had carried off the little Tarmangani in its claws. Tarzan frowned as he studied the colored print. Yes, this was the exact bird that had taken him away the day before, because to Tarzan, the dream felt so real that he still believed another day and night had gone by since he had gone to sleep in the tree.
But the more he thought upon the matter the less positive he was as to the verity of the seeming adventure through which he had passed, yet where the real had ceased and the unreal commenced he was quite unable to determine. Had he really then been to the village of the blacks at all, had he killed the old Gomangani, had he eaten of the elephant meat, had he been sick? Tarzan scratched his tousled black head and wondered. It was all very strange, yet he knew that he never had seen Numa climb a tree, or Histah with the head and belly of an old black man whom Tarzan already had slain.
But the more he thought about it, the less sure he was about the reality of the adventure he had experienced. He couldn't tell where reality ended and imagination began. Had he really gone to the village of the blacks? Had he killed the old Gomangani? Had he eaten elephant meat? Had he been sick? Tarzan scratched his messy black hair and wondered. It was all very strange, yet he knew he had never seen Numa climb a tree, nor had he ever seen Histah with the head and belly of an old black man that Tarzan had already killed.
Finally, with a sigh he gave up trying to fathom the unfathomable, yet in his heart of hearts he knew that something had come into his life that he never before had experienced, another life which existed when he slept and the consciousness of which was carried over into his waking hours.
Finally, with a sigh, he stopped trying to understand the impossible. Yet deep inside, he knew that something had entered his life that he had never experienced before—a different life that existed while he slept and whose awareness followed him into his waking hours.
Then he commenced to wonder if some of these strange creatures which he met in his sleep might not slay him, for at such times Tarzan of the Apes seemed to be a different Tarzan, sluggish, helpless and timid—wishing to flee his enemies as fled Bara, the deer, most fearful of creatures.
Then he started to wonder if some of the strange creatures he encountered in his dreams might actually harm him, because during those times, Tarzan of the Apes felt like a different person—slow, defenseless, and scared—wanting to run away from his enemies like Bara, the deer, who was terrified of all creatures.
Thus, with a dream, came the first faint tinge of a knowledge of fear, a knowledge which Tarzan, awake, had never experienced, and perhaps he was experiencing what his early forbears passed through and transmitted to posterity in the form of superstition first and religion later; for they, as Tarzan, had seen things at night which they could not explain by the daylight standards of sense perception or of reason, and so had built for themselves a weird explanation which included grotesque shapes, possessed of strange and uncanny powers, to whom they finally came to attribute all those inexplicable phenomena of nature which with each recurrence filled them with awe, with wonder, or with terror.
So, with a dream, came the first hint of fear—something Tarzan, while awake, had never felt. Maybe he was experiencing what his ancestors went through and passed down through superstition at first, and later, religion. Like Tarzan, they had seen things at night that they couldn’t explain with the logic and senses of the day, so they created strange explanations filled with bizarre shapes that had weird and supernatural powers. They eventually attributed all those unexplainable natural phenomena, which repeatedly filled them with awe, wonder, or terror, to these entities.
And as Tarzan concentrated his mind on the little bugs upon the printed page before him, the active recollection of his strange adventures presently merged into the text of that which he was reading—a story of Bolgani, the gorilla, in captivity. There was a more or less lifelike illustration of Bolgani in colors and in a cage, with many remarkable looking Tarmangani standing against a rail and peering curiously at the snarling brute. Tarzan wondered not a little, as he always did, at the odd and seemingly useless array of colored plumage which covered the bodies of the Tarmangani. It always caused him to grin a trifle when he looked at these strange creatures. He wondered if they so covered their bodies from shame of their hairlessness or because they thought the odd things they wore added any to the beauty of their appearance. Particularly was Tarzan amused by the grotesque headdresses of the pictured people. He wondered how some of the shes succeeded in balancing theirs in an upright position, and he came as near to laughing aloud as he ever had, as he contemplated the funny little round things upon the heads of the hes.
And as Tarzan focused his mind on the little bugs on the printed page in front of him, the vivid memories of his strange adventures blended into the text he was reading—a story about Bolgani, the gorilla, in captivity. There was a somewhat lifelike illustration of Bolgani in color, inside a cage, with many oddly dressed Tarmangani standing against a rail and curiously peering at the snarling beast. Tarzan couldn’t help but wonder, as he always did, about the strange and seemingly pointless array of colorful feathers that covered the bodies of the Tarmangani. It always made him smile a little when he looked at these unusual beings. He wondered if they dressed this way out of shame for being hairless or if they thought the weird things they wore made them more attractive. Tarzan was particularly amused by the bizarre hats of the depicted people. He wondered how some of the women managed to keep theirs upright, and he nearly laughed aloud for the first time in a long while as he thought about the funny little round things on the heads of the men.
Slowly the ape-man picked out the meaning of the various combinations of letters on the printed page, and as he read, the little bugs, for as such he always thought of the letters, commenced to run about in a most confusing manner, blurring his vision and befuddling his thoughts. Twice he brushed the back of a hand smartly across his eyes; but only for a moment could he bring the bugs back to coherent and intelligible form. He had slept ill the night before and now he was exhausted from loss of sleep, from sickness, and from the slight fever he had had, so that it became more and more difficult to fix his attention, or to keep his eyes open.
Slowly, the ape-man began to understand the different combinations of letters on the printed page. As he read, the little bugs—because that's how he always viewed the letters—started to crawl around in a really confusing way, blurring his vision and muddling his thoughts. Twice, he rubbed the back of his hand against his eyes, but he could only keep the bugs in a clear and understandable form for a moment. He had slept poorly the night before, and now he was exhausted from a lack of sleep, from being sick, and from the slight fever he’d been running, making it harder and harder to focus or keep his eyes open.
Tarzan realized that he was falling asleep, and just as the realization was borne in upon him and he had decided to relinquish himself to an inclination which had assumed almost the proportions of a physical pain, he was aroused by the opening of the cabin door. Turning quickly toward the interruption Tarzan was amazed, for a moment, to see bulking large in the doorway the huge and hairy form of Bolgani, the gorilla.
Tarzan realized he was about to fall asleep, and just as he acknowledged it and decided to give in to an urge that felt almost like a physical ache, he was startled by the cabin door opening. Turning quickly to see what was happening, Tarzan was stunned for a moment to see the massive, hairy figure of Bolgani, the gorilla, filling the doorway.
Now there was scarcely a denizen of the great jungle with whom Tarzan would rather not have been cooped up inside the small cabin than Bolgani, the gorilla, yet he felt no fear, even though his quick eye noted that Bolgani was in the throes of that jungle madness which seizes upon so many of the fiercer males. Ordinarily the huge gorillas avoid conflict, hide themselves from the other jungle folk, and are generally the best of neighbors; but when they are attacked, or the madness seizes them, there is no jungle denizen so bold and fierce as to deliberately seek a quarrel with them.
Now, there was hardly a creature in the great jungle that Tarzan would have preferred to be stuck inside the small cabin with less than Bolgani, the gorilla, yet he felt no fear, even though his sharp eye noticed that Bolgani was experiencing that jungle madness that affects so many of the more aggressive males. Usually, the massive gorillas avoid fights, keep to themselves around the other jungle inhabitants, and are typically the best neighbors; but when they are provoked, or when the madness takes hold, there is no jungle creature brave enough or fierce enough to intentionally pick a fight with them.
But for Tarzan there was no escape. Bolgani was glowering at him from red-rimmed, wicked eyes. In a moment he would rush in and seize the ape-man. Tarzan reached for the hunting knife where he had lain it on the table beside him; but as his fingers did not immediately locate the weapon, he turned a quick glance in search of it. As he did so his eyes fell upon the book he had been looking at which still lay open at the picture of Bolgani. Tarzan found his knife, but he merely fingered it idly and grinned in the direction of the advancing gorilla.
But for Tarzan, there was no way out. Bolgani was glaring at him with wicked, red-rimmed eyes. Any moment now, he would charge in and grab the ape-man. Tarzan reached for the hunting knife he had left on the table beside him; but as he couldn't immediately find the weapon, he quickly glanced around for it. That’s when his eyes landed on the book he had been looking at, still open to the picture of Bolgani. Tarzan found his knife, but he just fiddled with it absentmindedly and grinned at the approaching gorilla.
Not again would he be fooled by empty things which came while he slept! In a moment, no doubt, Bolgani would turn into Pamba, the rat, with the head of Tantor, the elephant. Tarzan had seen enough of such strange happenings recently to have some idea as to what he might expect; but this time Bolgani did not alter his form as he came slowly toward the young ape-man.
Not again would he be tricked by meaningless things that appeared while he slept! Soon enough, Bolgani would probably transform into Pamba, the rat, with the head of Tantor, the elephant. Tarzan had witnessed enough of these bizarre events lately to have some idea of what to expect; but this time Bolgani didn’t change his shape as he approached the young ape-man slowly.
Tarzan was a bit puzzled, too, that he felt no desire to rush frantically to some place of safety, as had been the sensation most conspicuous in the other of his new and remarkable adventures. He was just himself now, ready to fight, if necessary; but still sure that no flesh and blood gorilla stood before him.
Tarzan was slightly puzzled that he didn’t feel the urge to frantically run to a safe place, like he had during his other incredible adventures. He was just being himself now, ready to fight if needed; but he was still confident that no real gorilla was standing in front of him.
The thing should be fading away into thin air by now, thought Tarzan, or changing into something else; yet it did not. Instead it loomed clear-cut and real as Bolgani himself, the magnificent dark coat glistening with life and health in a bar of sunlight which shot across the cabin through the high window behind the young Lord Greystoke. This was quite the most realistic of his sleep adventures, thought Tarzan, as he passively awaited the next amusing incident.
The thing should be disappearing by now, thought Tarzan, or transforming into something else; yet it didn’t. Instead, it stood out sharp and real, just like Bolgani himself, the stunning dark coat shining with life and health in a beam of sunlight that streamed across the cabin through the tall window behind the young Lord Greystoke. This was by far the most realistic of his dream adventures, thought Tarzan, as he calmly waited for the next entertaining moment.
And then the gorilla charged. Two mighty, calloused hands seized upon the ape-man, great fangs were bared close to his face, a hideous growl burst from the cavernous throat and hot breath fanned Tarzan’s cheek, and still he sat grinning at the apparition. Tarzan might be fooled once or twice, but not for so many times in succession! He knew that this Bolgani was no real Bolgani, for had he been he never could have gained entrance to the cabin, since only Tarzan knew how to operate the latch.
And then the gorilla charged. Two strong, rough hands grabbed the ape-man, huge teeth flashed near his face, a monstrous growl erupted from the deep throat, and hot breath brushed against Tarzan’s cheek, yet he just sat there smiling at the creature. Tarzan might be tricked once or twice, but not that many times in a row! He knew that this Bolgani wasn’t the real thing, because if it were, it would never have been able to get into the cabin since only Tarzan knew how to operate the latch.
The gorilla seemed puzzled by the strange passivity of the hairless ape. He paused an instant with his jaws snarling close to the other’s throat, then he seemed suddenly to come to some decision. Whirling the ape-man across a hairy shoulder, as easily as you or I might lift a babe in arms, Bolgani turned and dashed out into the open, racing toward the great trees.
The gorilla looked confused by the unusual calmness of the hairless ape. He hesitated for a moment with his teeth bared near the other’s neck, then suddenly seemed to make up his mind. Flipping the ape-man over his shoulder, as easily as you or I might pick up a baby, Bolgani turned and sprinted out into the open, heading toward the giant trees.
Now, indeed, was Tarzan sure that this was a sleep adventure, and so grinned largely as the giant gorilla bore him, unresisting, away. Presently, reasoned Tarzan, he would awaken and find himself back in the cabin where he had fallen asleep. He glanced back at the thought and saw the cabin door standing wide open. This would never do! Always had he been careful to close and latch it against wild intruders. Manu, the monkey, would make sad havoc there among Tarzan’s treasures should he have access to the interior for even a few minutes. The question which arose in Tarzan’s mind was a baffling one. Where did sleep adventures end and reality commence? How was he to be sure that the cabin door was not really open? Everything about him appeared quite normal—there were none of the grotesque exaggerations of his former sleep adventures. It would be better then to be upon the safe side and make sure that the cabin door was closed—it would do no harm even if all that seemed to be happening were not happening at all.
Now, Tarzan was certain this was a sleep adventure, and he grinned widely as the giant gorilla carried him away without resistance. Soon, he thought, he would wake up and find himself back in the cabin where he had fallen asleep. He looked back at the idea and saw the cabin door standing wide open. This wouldn’t do at all! He had always been careful to close and latch it against wild intruders. Manu, the monkey, would create chaos among Tarzan’s treasures if he had access to the cabin for even a few minutes. The question that arose in Tarzan’s mind was a confusing one. Where did sleep adventures end and reality begin? How could he be sure the cabin door wasn’t really open? Everything around him seemed perfectly normal—there were none of the strange exaggerations of his past sleep adventures. It would be better to play it safe and check that the cabin door was closed—it wouldn’t hurt, even if everything that seemed to be happening wasn’t actually happening at all.
Tarzan essayed to slip from Bolgani’s shoulder; but the great beast only growled ominously and gripped him tighter. With a mighty effort the ape-man wrenched himself loose, and as he slid to the ground, the dream gorilla turned ferociously upon him, seized him once more and buried great fangs in a sleek, brown shoulder.
Tarzan tried to slip off Bolgani's shoulder, but the huge beast just growled menacingly and held on tighter. With a huge effort, the ape-man freed himself, and as he landed on the ground, the angry gorilla turned on him, grabbed him again, and sank its large fangs into his smooth, brown shoulder.
The grin of derision faded from Tarzan’s lips as the pain and the hot blood aroused his fighting instincts. Asleep or awake, this thing was no longer a joke! Biting, tearing, and snarling, the two rolled over upon the ground. The gorilla now was frantic with insane rage. Again and again he loosed his hold upon the ape-man’s shoulder in an attempt to seize the jugular; but Tarzan of the Apes had fought before with creatures who struck first for the vital vein, and each time he wriggled out of harm’s way as he strove to get his fingers upon his adversary’s throat. At last he succeeded—his great muscles tensed and knotted beneath his smooth hide as he forced with every ounce of his mighty strength to push the hairy torso from him. And as he choked Bolgani and strained him away, his other hand crept slowly upward between them until the point of the hunting knife rested over the savage heart—there was a quick movement of the steel-thewed wrist and the blade plunged to its goal.
The mocking grin disappeared from Tarzan’s face as pain and warm blood triggered his fighting instincts. Whether asleep or awake, this was no longer a joke! Biting, clawing, and snarling, they rolled on the ground. The gorilla was now filled with frenzied rage. Again and again, he released his grip on the ape-man’s shoulder to try to grab his throat; but Tarzan of the Apes had faced creatures before who aimed for the vital vein, and each time he managed to escape danger while struggling to get his hands around his opponent’s neck. Finally, he succeeded—his powerful muscles tensed and knotted under his smooth skin as he pushed with all his strength to shove the hairy body away. As he choked Bolgani and pulled him back, his other hand slowly crept up between them until the tip of the hunting knife rested over the savage heart—then, with a quick movement of his steel-strong wrist, the blade drove straight to its target.
Bolgani, the gorilla, voiced a single frightful shriek, tore himself loose from the grasp of the ape-man, rose to his feet, staggered a few steps and then plunged to earth. There were a few spasmodic movements of the limbs and the brute was still.
Bolgani, the gorilla, let out a loud, terrifying scream, broke free from the ape-man's hold, stood up, staggered a few steps, and then collapsed to the ground. There were a few jerky movements of his limbs, and then the creature was motionless.
Tarzan of the Apes stood looking down upon his kill, and as he stood there he ran his fingers through his thick, black shock of hair. Presently he stooped and touched the dead body. Some of the red life-blood of the gorilla crimsoned his fingers. He raised them to his nose and sniffed. Then he shook his head and turned toward the cabin. The door was still open. He closed it and fastened the latch. Returning toward the body of his kill he again paused and scratched his head.
Tarzan of the Apes stood looking down at his kill, and as he did, he ran his fingers through his thick, black hair. After a moment, he bent down and touched the dead body. Some of the red blood of the gorilla stained his fingers. He raised them to his nose and sniffed. Then he shook his head and headed toward the cabin. The door was still open. He closed it and secured the latch. As he returned to the body of his kill, he paused again and scratched his head.
If this was a sleep adventure, what then was reality? How was he to know the one from the other? How much of all that had happened in his life had been real and how much unreal?
If this was a dream journey, then what was reality? How was he supposed to tell one from the other? How much of everything that had happened in his life was real and how much was not?
He placed a foot upon the prostrate form and raising his face to the heavens gave voice to the kill cry of the bull ape. Far in the distance a lion answered. It was very real and, yet, he did not know. Puzzled, he turned away into the jungle.
He stepped on the fallen figure and looked up to the sky, letting out the roar of a bull ape. A lion responded from far away. It felt very real, yet he was uncertain. Confused, he turned and walked back into the jungle.
No, he did not know what was real and what was not; but there was one thing that he did know—never again would he eat of the flesh of Tantor, the elephant.
No, he didn't know what was real and what wasn't; but there was one thing he was sure of—he would never eat the flesh of Tantor, the elephant, again.
CHAPTER X
The Battle for Teeka
The day was perfect. A cool breeze tempered the heat of the equatorial sun. Peace had reigned within the tribe for weeks and no alien enemy had trespassed upon its preserves from without. To the ape-mind all this was sufficient evidence that the future would be identical with the immediate past—that Utopia would persist.
The day was perfect. A cool breeze eased the heat of the equatorial sun. Peace had lasted within the tribe for weeks, and no outside enemy had invaded their territory. To the ape-mind, all this was solid proof that the future would be just like the recent past—that Utopia would continue.
The sentinels, now from habit become a fixed tribal custom, either relaxed their vigilance or entirely deserted their posts, as the whim seized them. The tribe was far scattered in search of food. Thus may peace and prosperity undermine the safety of the most primitive community even as it does that of the most cultured.
The sentinels, now accustomed to a rigid tribal custom, either let down their guard or completely abandoned their posts whenever they felt like it. The tribe was widely dispersed in search of food. In this way, peace and prosperity can threaten the safety of even the simplest communities, just as they do in more advanced societies.
Even the individuals became less watchful and alert, so that one might have thought Numa and Sabor and Sheeta entirely deleted from the scheme of things. The shes and the balus roamed unguarded through the sullen jungle, while the greedy males foraged far afield, and thus it was that Teeka and Gazan, her balu, hunted upon the extreme southern edge of the tribe with no great male near them.
Even the individuals became less watchful and alert, so one might have thought Numa, Sabor, and Sheeta were completely removed from the picture. The females and the young ones wandered freely through the gloomy jungle, while the greedy males searched far and wide. That's how Teeka and Gazan, her young one, ended up hunting on the far southern edge of the tribe without any strong males nearby.
Still farther south there moved through the forest a sinister figure—a huge bull ape, maddened by solitude and defeat. A week before he had contended for the kingship of a tribe far distant, and now battered, and still sore, he roamed the wilderness an outcast. Later he might return to his own tribe and submit to the will of the hairy brute he had attempted to dethrone; but for the time being he dared not do so, since he had sought not only the crown but the wives, as well, of his lord and master. It would require an entire moon at least to bring forgetfulness to him he had wronged, and so Toog wandered a strange jungle, grim, terrible, hate-filled.
Still farther south, a sinister figure moved through the forest—a huge bull ape, driven mad by loneliness and defeat. A week earlier, he had fought for the kingship of a distant tribe, and now, bruised and still hurting, he wandered the wilderness as an outcast. He might eventually go back to his tribe and accept the rule of the hairy brute he had tried to overthrow; but for now, he couldn't do that, because he had not only sought the crown but also the wives of his lord and master. It would take at least a full moon for him to forget what he had done wrong, and so Toog roamed a strange jungle, grim, terrifying, and filled with hate.
It was in this mental state that Toog came unexpectedly upon a young she feeding alone in the jungle—a stranger she, lithe and strong and beautiful beyond compare. Toog caught his breath and slunk quickly to one side of the trail where the dense foliage of the tropical underbrush concealed him from Teeka while permitting him to feast his eyes upon her loveliness.
It was in this mental state that Toog unexpectedly came across a young female alone in the jungle—a stunning stranger, lithe, strong, and beautiful beyond compare. Toog caught his breath and quickly slipped to the side of the trail where the thick foliage of the tropical underbrush hid him from Teeka while allowing him to admire her beauty.
But not alone were they concerned with Teeka—they roved the surrounding jungle in search of the bulls and cows and balus of her tribe, though principally for the bulls. When one covets a she of an alien tribe one must take into consideration the great, fierce, hairy guardians who seldom wander far from their wards and who will fight a stranger to the death in protection of the mate or offspring of a fellow, precisely as they would fight for their own.
But they weren’t just concerned about Teeka—they searched the surrounding jungle for the bulls, cows, and balus of her tribe, mainly looking for the bulls. When someone wants a female from another tribe, they have to keep in mind the big, fierce, hairy guardians who rarely stray far from their charges and will fight a stranger to the death to protect the mate or offspring of a fellow, just like they would for their own.
Toog could see no sign of any ape other than the strange she and a young balu playing near by. His wicked, blood-shot eyes half closed as they rested upon the charms of the former—as for the balu, one snap of those great jaws upon the back of its little neck would prevent it from raising any unnecessary alarm.
Toog couldn't see any ape except for the strange female and a young cub playing nearby. His wicked, bloodshot eyes were half-closed as he focused on the beauty of the former—meanwhile, a quick bite from those powerful jaws on the back of the little cub's neck would stop it from causing any unnecessary fuss.
Toog was a fine, big male, resembling in many ways Teeka’s mate, Taug. Each was in his prime, and each was wonderfully muscled, perfectly fanged and as horrifyingly ferocious as the most exacting and particular she could wish. Had Toog been of her own tribe, Teeka might as readily have yielded to him as to Taug when her mating time arrived; but now she was Taug’s and no other male could claim her without first defeating Taug in personal combat. And even then Teeka retained some rights in the matter. If she did not favor a corespondent, she could enter the lists with her rightful mate and do her part toward discouraging his advances, a part, too, which would prove no mean assistance to her lord and master, for Teeka, even though her fangs were smaller than a male’s, could use them to excellent effect.
Toog was a strong, big male who resembled Teeka's mate, Taug, in many ways. They were both in their prime, wonderfully muscular, perfectly fanged, and as terrifyingly fierce as Teeka could wish. If Toog had been from her own tribe, Teeka might have easily accepted him just like she did Taug when her mating season arrived; but now she belonged to Taug, and no other male could claim her without first beating Taug in a fight. Even then, Teeka still had some say in the situation. If she didn’t like a suitor, she could step in alongside her rightful mate and help fend off his advances, a role that would also be a big help to her lord and master, since Teeka, even though her fangs were smaller than male’s, could use them very effectively.
Just now Teeka was occupied in a fascinating search for beetles, to the exclusion of all else. She did not realize how far she and Gazan had become separated from the balance of the tribe, nor were her defensive senses upon the alert as they should have been. Months of immunity from danger under the protecting watchfulness of the sentries, which Tarzan had taught the tribe to post, had lulled them all into a sense of peaceful security based on that fallacy which has wrecked many enlightened communities in the past and will continue to wreck others in the future—that because they have not been attacked they never will be.
Just now, Teeka was completely absorbed in an exciting search for beetles, ignoring everything else. She didn’t realize how far she and Gazan had strayed from the rest of the tribe, nor were her instincts on high alert as they should have been. Months of being safe under the watchful eyes of the sentries, which Tarzan had taught the tribe to set up, had made everyone feel a false sense of security that has led many progressive communities to disaster in the past and will likely do so again in the future—that just because they haven’t been attacked yet, they never will be.
Toog, having satisfied himself that only the she and her balu were in the immediate vicinity, crept stealthily forward. Teeka’s back was toward him when he finally rushed upon her; but her senses were at last awakened to the presence of danger and she wheeled to face the strange bull just before he reached her. Toog halted a few paces from her. His anger had fled before the seductive feminine charms of the stranger. He made conciliatory noises—a species of clucking sound with his broad, flat lips—that were, too, not greatly dissimilar to that which might be produced in an osculatory solo.
Toog, ensuring that only she and her cub were nearby, quietly moved forward. Teeka had her back to him when he finally lunged at her; however, her instincts picked up on the danger just before he got to her, and she turned to confront the unfamiliar bull. Toog stopped a few steps away from her. His anger vanished in the face of the alluring charms of the stranger. He made soothing noises—a kind of clucking sound with his wide, flat lips—that were also similar to what might come from a kissing solo.
But Teeka only bared her fangs and growled. Little Gazan started to run toward his mother, but she warned him away with a quick “Kreeg-ah!” telling him to run high into a tall tree. Evidently Teeka was not favorably impressed by her new suitor. Toog realized this and altered his methods accordingly. He swelled his giant chest, beat upon it with his calloused knuckles and swaggered to and fro before her.
But Teeka just showed her teeth and growled. Little Gazan began to run towards his mother, but she quickly warned him away with a sharp “Kreeg-ah!” telling him to climb high into a tall tree. Clearly, Teeka was not impressed by her new suitor. Toog saw this and changed his approach. He puffed out his huge chest, banged on it with his rough knuckles, and strutted back and forth in front of her.
“I am Toog,” he boasted. “Look at my fighting fangs. Look at my great arms and my mighty legs. With one bite I can slay your biggest bull. Alone have I slain Sheeta. I am Toog. Toog wants you.” Then he waited for the effect, nor did he have long to wait. Teeka turned with a swiftness which belied her great weight and bolted in the opposite direction. Toog, with an angry growl, leaped in pursuit; but the smaller, lighter female was too fleet for him. He chased her for a few yards and then, foaming and barking, he halted and beat upon the ground with his hard fists.
“I am Toog,” he said proudly. “Check out my fighting fangs. Look at my strong arms and powerful legs. With one bite, I can take down your biggest bull. I’ve already defeated Sheeta on my own. I am Toog. Toog wants you.” Then he paused to see the reaction, and he didn’t have to wait long. Teeka spun around with surprising speed for her size and ran off in the opposite direction. Toog, letting out an angry growl, jumped after her, but the smaller, lighter female was too fast for him. He chased her for a few yards and then, panting and barking, he stopped and pounded the ground with his hard fists.
From the tree above him little Gazan looked down and witnessed the stranger bull’s discomfiture. Being young, and thinking himself safe above the reach of the heavy male, Gazan screamed an ill-timed insult at their tormentor. Toog looked up. Teeka had halted at a little distance—she would not go far from her balu; that Toog quickly realized and as quickly determined to take advantage of. He saw that the tree in which the young ape squatted was isolated and that Gazan could not reach another without coming to earth. He would obtain the mother through her love for her young.
From the tree above him, young Gazan looked down and saw the stranger bull struggling. Feeling safe high above the heavy male, Gazan shouted a poorly timed insult at their tormentor. Toog glanced up. Teeka had stopped a short distance away—she wouldn’t go far from her baby, and Toog quickly noticed and decided to use that to his advantage. He realized that the tree where the young ape sat was isolated and that Gazan couldn’t reach another one without coming down to the ground. He intended to get the mother through her love for her young.
He swung himself into the lower branches of the tree. Little Gazan ceased to insult him; his expression of deviltry changed to one of apprehension, which was quickly followed by fear as Toog commenced to ascend toward him. Teeka screamed to Gazan to climb higher, and the little fellow scampered upward among the tiny branches which would not support the weight of the great bull; but nevertheless Toog kept on climbing. Teeka was not fearful. She knew that he could not ascend far enough to reach Gazan, so she sat at a little distance from the tree and applied jungle opprobrium to him. Being a female, she was a past master of the art.
He swung himself into the lower branches of the tree. Little Gazan stopped insulting him; his playful expression turned to one of worry, which quickly shifted to fear as Toog started to climb toward him. Teeka yelled at Gazan to climb higher, and the little guy scrambled upward among the small branches that couldn't hold the weight of the big bull; but Toog kept climbing anyway. Teeka wasn't scared. She knew he couldn't climb high enough to reach Gazan, so she sat a little way from the tree and threw insults at him, which she was really good at since she was a girl.
But she did not know the malevolent cunning of Toog’s little brain. She took it for granted that the bull would climb as high as he could toward Gazan and then, finding that he could not reach him, resume his pursuit of her, which she knew would prove equally fruitless. So sure was she of the safety of her balu and her own ability to take care of herself that she did not voice the cry for help which would soon have brought the other members of the tribe flocking to her side.
But she didn’t realize the wicked cleverness of Toog’s little brain. She assumed that the bull would climb as high as he could toward Gazan and then, seeing that he couldn’t reach him, would go back to chasing her, which she knew would be just as pointless. She was so confident in the safety of her balu and her own ability to handle the situation that she didn’t call for help, which would have quickly brought the other members of the tribe rushing to her side.
Toog slowly reached the limit to which he dared risk his great weight to the slender branches. Gazan was still fifteen feet above him. The bull braced himself and seized the main branch in his powerful hands, then he commenced shaking it vigorously. Teeka was appalled. Instantly she realized what the bull purposed. Gazan clung far out upon a swaying limb. At the first shake he lost his balance, though he did not quite fall, clinging still with his four hands; but Toog redoubled his efforts; the shaking produced a violent snapping of the limb to which the young ape clung. Teeka saw all too plainly what the outcome must be and forgetting her own danger in the depth of her mother love, rushed forward to ascend the tree and give battle to the fearsome creature that menaced the life of her little one.
Toog cautiously reached the point where he felt he could risk his weight on the thin branches. Gazan was still fifteen feet above him. The bull steadied himself and grabbed the main branch with his powerful hands, then started shaking it vigorously. Teeka was horrified. She immediately understood what the bull intended. Gazan was hanging far out on a swaying limb. At the first shake, he lost his balance, though he managed to hold on with all four hands; but Toog intensified his efforts; the shaking caused the limb to snap violently where the young ape was clinging. Teeka could see clearly what would happen next and, forgetting her own peril in her deep motherly love, rushed forward to climb the tree and confront the terrifying creature threatening her little one's life.
But before ever she reached the bole, Toog had succeeded, by violent shaking of the branch, to loosen Gazan’s hold. With a cry the little fellow plunged down through the foliage, clutching futilely for a new hold, and alighted with a sickening thud at his mother’s feet, where he lay silent and motionless. Moaning, Teeka stooped to lift the still form in her arms; but at the same instant Toog was upon her.
But before she even got to the trunk, Toog had managed, by violently shaking the branch, to break Gazan’s grip. With a shout, the little guy fell through the leaves, desperately trying to grab onto something else, and landed with a sickening thud at his mother’s feet, where he lay quiet and still. Moaning, Teeka bent down to pick up the lifeless form in her arms; but at that moment, Toog was on her.
Struggling and biting she fought to free herself; but the giant muscles of the great bull were too much for her lesser strength. Toog struck and choked her repeatedly until finally, half unconscious, she lapsed into quasi submission. Then the bull lifted her to his shoulder and turned back to the trail toward the south from whence he had come.
Struggling and biting, she fought to get free; but the massive muscles of the great bull overpowered her weaker strength. Toog hit and choked her repeatedly until, finally half-conscious, she fell into a sort of submission. Then the bull lifted her onto his shoulder and turned back to the trail heading south from where he had come.
Upon the ground lay the quiet form of little Gazan. He did not moan. He did not move. The sun rose slowly toward meridian. A mangy thing, lifting its nose to scent the jungle breeze, crept through the underbrush. It was Dango, the hyena. Presently its ugly muzzle broke through some near-by foliage and its cruel eyes fastened upon Gazan.
Upon the ground lay the still body of little Gazan. He didn’t moan. He didn’t move. The sun rose slowly toward its peak. A scruffy creature, lifting its nose to catch the scent of the jungle breeze, crept through the underbrush. It was Dango, the hyena. Soon, its ugly muzzle broke through some nearby foliage and its cruel eyes locked onto Gazan.
Early that morning, Tarzan of the Apes had gone to the cabin by the sea, where he passed many an hour at such times as the tribe was ranging in the vicinity. On the floor lay the skeleton of a man—all that remained of the former Lord Greystoke—lay as it had fallen some twenty years before when Kerchak, the great ape, had thrown it, lifeless, there. Long since had the termites and the small rodents picked clean the sturdy English bones. For years Tarzan had seen it lying there, giving it no more attention than he gave the countless thousand bones that strewed his jungle haunts. On the bed another, smaller, skeleton reposed and the youth ignored it as he ignored the other. How could he know that the one had been his father, the other his mother? The little pile of bones in the rude cradle, fashioned with such loving care by the former Lord Greystoke, meant nothing to him—that one day that little skull was to help prove his right to a proud title was as far beyond his ken as the satellites of the suns of Orion. To Tarzan they were bones—just bones. He did not need them, for there was no meat left upon them, and they were not in his way, for he knew no necessity for a bed, and the skeleton upon the floor he easily could step over.
Early that morning, Tarzan of the Apes went to the cabin by the sea, where he spent many hours while the tribe was roaming nearby. On the floor lay the skeleton of a man—all that remained of the former Lord Greystoke—fallen there about twenty years ago when Kerchak, the giant ape, had thrown it down, lifeless. The termites and small rodents had long since picked the sturdy English bones clean. For years, Tarzan had seen it there, paying it no more mind than he did the countless other bones scattered throughout his jungle home. On the bed rested another, smaller skeleton, which he also ignored. How could he have known that one was his father and the other his mother? The little pile of bones in the makeshift cradle, crafted with such care by the former Lord Greystoke, meant nothing to him—that one day that little skull would help prove his claim to a noble title was as far beyond his understanding as the moons of the stars of Orion. To Tarzan, they were just bones—nothing more. He had no use for them since there was no flesh left on them, and they weren't in his way; he didn't need a bed, and he could easily step over the skeleton on the floor.
Today he was restless. He turned the pages first of one book and then of another. He glanced at pictures which he knew by heart, and tossed the books aside. He rummaged for the thousandth time in the cupboard. He took out a bag which contained several small, round pieces of metal. He had played with them many times in the years gone by; but always he replaced them carefully in the bag, and the bag in the cupboard, upon the very shelf where first he had discovered it. In strange ways did heredity manifest itself in the ape-man. Come of an orderly race, he himself was orderly without knowing why. The apes dropped things wherever their interest in them waned—in the tall grass or from the high-flung branches of the trees. What they dropped they sometimes found again, by accident; but not so the ways of Tarzan. For his few belongings he had a place and scrupulously he returned each thing to its proper place when he was done with it. The round pieces of metal in the little bag always interested him. Raised pictures were upon either side, the meaning of which he did not quite understand. The pieces were bright and shiny. It amused him to arrange them in various figures upon the table. Hundreds of times had he played thus. Today, while so engaged, he dropped a lovely yellow piece—an English sovereign—which rolled beneath the bed where lay all that was mortal of the once beautiful Lady Alice.
Today he was restless. He flipped through one book after another. He looked at pictures he knew by heart and tossed the books aside. He searched the cupboard for the thousandth time. He pulled out a bag that held several small, round pieces of metal. He had played with them many times over the years, but he always put them back carefully in the bag and the bag back in the cupboard, right on the shelf where he had first found it. In strange ways, heredity showed itself in the ape-man. Coming from an orderly background, he himself was orderly without really knowing why. The apes dropped things wherever they lost interest—in the tall grass or from the high branches of the trees. What they discarded they sometimes found again by accident; but not so with Tarzan. He had a specific place for his few belongings, and he meticulously returned each item to its spot when he was finished with it. The round pieces of metal in the small bag always fascinated him. There were raised pictures on both sides that he didn’t quite understand. The pieces were bright and shiny. He found it amusing to arrange them into different shapes on the table. He had played like this hundreds of times. Today, while doing so, he dropped a beautiful yellow piece—an English sovereign—which rolled under the bed where all that remained of the once beautiful Lady Alice lay.
True to form, Tarzan at once dropped to his hands and knees and searched beneath the bed for the lost gold piece. Strange as it might appear, he had never before looked beneath the bed. He found the gold piece, and something else he found, too—a small wooden box with a loose cover. Bringing them both out he returned the sovereign to its bag and the bag to its shelf within the cupboard; then he investigated the box. It contained a quantity of cylindrical bits of metal, cone-shaped at one end and flat at the other, with a projecting rim. They were all quite green and dull, coated with years of verdigris.
True to form, Tarzan immediately dropped to his hands and knees and looked under the bed for the lost gold coin. As strange as it might seem, he had never looked under the bed before. He found the gold coin, and he also discovered something else—a small wooden box with a loose lid. Pulling both out, he put the coin back in its bag and returned the bag to its shelf in the cupboard; then he examined the box. It had several cylindrical pieces of metal, cone-shaped on one end and flat on the other, with a raised rim. They were all green and dull, covered in years of tarnish.
Tarzan removed a handful of them from the box and examined them. He rubbed one upon another and discovered that the green came off, leaving a shiny surface for two-thirds of their length and a dull gray over the cone-shaped end. Finding a bit of wood he rubbed one of the cylinders rapidly and was rewarded by a lustrous sheen which pleased him.
Tarzan took a handful of them out of the box and looked them over. He rubbed one against another and noticed that the green coating came off, leaving a shiny surface on two-thirds of their length and a dull gray at the cone-shaped end. Finding a piece of wood, he quickly rubbed one of the cylinders and was pleased to see a glossy shine appeared.
At his side hung a pocket pouch taken from the body of one of the numerous black warriors he had slain. Into this pouch he put a handful of the new playthings, thinking to polish them at his leisure; then he replaced the box beneath the bed, and finding nothing more to amuse him, left the cabin and started back in the direction of the tribe.
At his side was a pocket pouch he had taken from one of the many black warriors he had killed. He filled this pouch with a handful of the new toys, planning to polish them later; then he put the box back under the bed, and finding nothing else to entertain him, he left the cabin and headed back toward the tribe.
Shortly before he reached them he heard a great commotion ahead of him—the loud screams of shes and balus, the savage, angry barking and growling of the great bulls. Instantly he increased his speed, for the “Kreeg-ahs” that came to his ears warned him that something was amiss with his fellows.
Shortly before he reached them, he heard a loud commotion ahead of him—the screams of women and children, the fierce barking and growling of the big bulls. Immediately, he picked up his pace, as the “Kreeg-ahs” he heard warned him that something was wrong with his companions.
While Tarzan had been occupied with his own devices in the cabin of his dead sire, Taug, Teeka’s mighty mate, had been hunting a mile to the north of the tribe. At last, his belly filled, he had turned lazily back toward the clearing where he had last seen the tribe and presently commenced passing its members scattered alone or in twos or threes. Nowhere did he see Teeka or Gazan, and soon he began inquiring of the other apes where they might be; but none had seen them recently.
While Tarzan was busy with his own activities in the cabin of his deceased father, Taug, Teeka’s strong partner, had been hunting a mile north of the tribe. Finally, after filling his belly, he turned back lazily toward the clearing where he had last seen the tribe and started to pass by its members who were scattered alone or in pairs or small groups. He couldn’t find Teeka or Gazan anywhere, so he began asking the other apes where they might be, but none of them had seen them recently.
Now the lower orders are not highly imaginative. They do not, as you and I, paint vivid mental pictures of things which might have occurred, and so Taug did not now apprehend that any misfortune had overtaken his mate and their offspring—he merely knew that he wished to find Teeka that he might lie down in the shade and have her scratch his back while his breakfast digested; but though he called to her and searched for her and asked each whom he met, he could find no trace of Teeka, nor of Gazan either.
Now, the lower classes aren't very imaginative. They don't, like you and I, create vivid mental images of things that could have happened. So, Taug didn't realize that something bad had happened to his mate and their child—he just knew he wanted to find Teeka so he could relax in the shade and have her scratch his back while his breakfast settled. But even though he called out for her, searched for her, and asked everyone he met, he couldn't find any trace of Teeka or Gazan either.
He was beginning to become peeved and had about made up his mind to chastise Teeka for wandering so far afield when he wanted her. He was moving south along a game trail, his calloused soles and knuckles giving forth no sound, when he came upon Dango at the opposite side of a small clearing. The eater of carrion did not see Taug, for all his eyes were for something which lay in the grass beneath a tree—something upon which he was sneaking with the cautious stealth of his breed.
He was starting to get annoyed and had almost decided to scold Teeka for straying too far when he needed her. He was heading south along a game trail, his tough soles and knuckles making no noise, when he spotted Dango on the other side of a small clearing. The scavenger didn’t notice Taug, as all his attention was focused on something lying in the grass under a tree—something he was sneaking up on with the careful stealth typical of his kind.
Taug, always cautious himself, as it behooves one to be who fares up and down the jungle and desires to survive, swung noiselessly into a tree, where he could have a better view of the clearing. He did not fear Dango; but he wanted to see what it was that Dango stalked. In a way, possibly, he was actuated as much by curiosity as by caution.
Taug, always careful as anyone should be who travels through the jungle and wants to survive, quietly climbed into a tree to get a better look at the clearing. He wasn't afraid of Dango; he just wanted to see what Dango was chasing. In some ways, he was driven as much by curiosity as by caution.
And when Taug reached a place in the branches from which he could have an unobstructed view of the clearing he saw Dango already sniffing at something directly beneath him—something which Taug instantly recognized as the lifeless form of his little Gazan.
And when Taug got to a spot in the branches where he could see the clearing clearly, he noticed Dango already sniffing at something right below him—something Taug immediately recognized as the lifeless body of his little Gazan.
With a cry so frightful, so bestial, that it momentarily paralyzed the startled Dango, the great ape launched his mighty bulk upon the surprised hyena. With a cry and a snarl, Dango, crushed to earth, turned to tear at his assailant; but as effectively might a sparrow turn upon a hawk. Taug’s great, gnarled fingers closed upon the hyena’s throat and back, his jaws snapped once on the mangy neck, crushing the vertebrae, and then he hurled the dead body contemptuously aside.
With a terrifying, primal scream that momentarily stunned the surprised Dango, the great ape charged at the caught-off-guard hyena. With a roar and a snarl, Dango, pinned to the ground, tried to fight back, but it was as useless as a sparrow challenging a hawk. Taug’s huge, gnarled hands gripped the hyena’s throat and back, his jaws bit down hard on the scruffy neck, shattering the vertebrae, and then he tossed the lifeless body aside with disdain.
Again he raised his voice in the call of the bull ape to its mate, but there was no reply; then he leaned down to sniff at the body of Gazan. In the breast of this savage, hideous beast there beat a heart which was moved, however slightly, by the same emotions of paternal love which affect us. Even had we no actual evidence of this, we must know it still, since only thus might be explained the survival of the human race in which the jealousy and selfishness of the bulls would, in the earliest stages of the race, have wiped out the young as rapidly as they were brought into the world had not God implanted in the savage bosom that paternal love which evidences itself most strongly in the protective instinct of the male.
Again, he raised his voice to call out like a bull ape to its mate, but there was no response; then he leaned down to sniff at Gazan's body. Within the chest of this savage, monstrous creature beat a heart that was, even if just a little, touched by the same feelings of paternal love that impact us. Even without clear evidence of this, we can still understand it, as only this could explain the survival of the human race, where the jealousy and selfishness of males would, in the early stages, have eliminated the young as quickly as they were born if God hadn't instilled in these savage hearts a paternal love that shows itself most clearly through the protective instinct of males.
In Taug the protective instinct was not alone highly developed; but affection for his offspring as well, for Taug was an unusually intelligent specimen of these great, manlike apes which the natives of the Gobi speak of in whispers; but which no white man ever had seen, or, if seeing, lived to tell of until Tarzan of the Apes came among them.
In Taug, the protective instinct was not only highly developed; he also had a strong affection for his offspring. Taug was an exceptionally intelligent example of these large, human-like apes that the locals of the Gobi talk about in hushed tones. No white person had ever seen them, or if they did, they didn’t live to tell the tale until Tarzan of the Apes arrived among them.
And so Taug felt sorrow as any other father might feel sorrow at the loss of a little child. To you little Gazan might have seemed a hideous and repulsive creature, but to Taug and Teeka he was as beautiful and as cute as is your little Mary or Johnnie or Elizabeth Ann to you, and he was their first-born, their only balu, and a he—three things which might make a young ape the apple of any fond father’s eye.
And so Taug felt sadness like any other father would feel at the loss of a young child. To you, little Gazan might have seemed ugly and disgusting, but to Taug and Teeka, he was as beautiful and adorable as your little Mary, Johnnie, or Elizabeth Ann is to you, and he was their firstborn, their only balu, and a boy—three things that could make any proud father completely devoted to his child.
For a moment Taug sniffed at the quiet little form. With his muzzle and his tongue he smoothed and caressed the rumpled coat. From his savage lips broke a low moan; but quickly upon the heels of sorrow came the overmastering desire for revenge.
For a moment, Taug sniffed the quiet little figure. With his snout and tongue, he smoothed and stroked the messy fur. A low moan escaped his fierce lips; but right after the sadness, the overwhelming urge for revenge took over.
Leaping to his feet he screamed out a volley of “Kreeg-ahs,” punctuated from time to time by the blood-freezing cry of an angry, challenging bull—a rage-mad bull with the blood lust strong upon him.
Leaping to his feet, he yelled a series of "Kreeg-ahs," occasionally interrupted by the chilling roar of an angry, challenging bull—a bull consumed by rage and filled with bloodlust.
Answering his cries came the cries of the tribe as they swung through the trees toward him. It was these that Tarzan heard on his return from his cabin, and in reply to them he raised his own voice and hurried forward with increased speed until he fairly flew through the middle terraces of the forest.
Answering his calls were the shouts of the tribe as they moved through the trees toward him. It was these sounds that Tarzan heard when he returned from his cabin, and in response, he called out and rushed forward with greater speed, swiftly moving through the middle levels of the forest.
When at last he came upon the tribe he saw their members gathered about Taug and something which lay quietly upon the ground. Dropping among them, Tarzan approached the center of the group. Taug was still roaring out his challenges; but when he saw Tarzan he ceased and stooping picked up Gazan in his arms and held him out for Tarzan to see. Of all the bulls of the tribe, Taug held affection for Tarzan only. Tarzan he trusted and looked up to as one wiser and more cunning. To Tarzan he came now—to the playmate of his balu days, the companion of innumerable battles of his maturity.
When he finally found the tribe, he saw the members gathered around Taug and something lying quietly on the ground. As he dropped down among them, Tarzan moved toward the center of the group. Taug was still roaring his challenges, but when he saw Tarzan, he stopped, bent down, picked up Gazan in his arms, and held him out for Tarzan to see. Of all the bulls in the tribe, Taug had affection only for Tarzan. He trusted Tarzan and viewed him as wiser and more clever. Now, he came to Tarzan—the playmate of his younger days, the companion through countless battles of his adulthood.
When Tarzan saw the still form in Taug’s arms, a low growl broke from his lips, for he too loved Teeka’s little balu.
When Tarzan saw the lifeless body in Taug’s arms, a low growl escaped his lips, because he also loved Teeka’s little cub.
“Who did it?” he asked. “Where is Teeka?”
“Who did it?” he asked. “Where's Teeka?”
“I do not know,” replied Taug. “I found him lying here with Dango about to feed upon him; but it was not Dango that did it—there are no fang marks upon him.”
“I don't know,” Taug replied. “I found him lying here with Dango about to eat him; but it wasn't Dango who did it—there are no bite marks on him.”
Tarzan came closer and placed an ear against Gazan’s breast. “He is not dead,” he said. “Maybe he will not die.” He pressed through the crowd of apes and circled once about them, examining the ground step by step. Suddenly he stopped and placing his nose close to the earth sniffed. Then he sprang to his feet, giving a peculiar cry. Taug and the others pressed forward, for the sound told them that the hunter had found the spoor of his quarry.
Tarzan stepped closer and put his ear against Gazan’s chest. “He’s not dead,” he said. “Maybe he won’t die.” He pushed through the crowd of apes and circled around them, checking the ground step by step. Suddenly, he stopped and, lowering his nose to the earth, sniffed. Then he jumped to his feet, letting out a strange cry. Taug and the others moved closer, as the sound signaled that the hunter had found the trail of his prey.
“A stranger bull has been here,” said Tarzan. “It was he that hurt Gazan. He has carried off Teeka.”
“A strange bull has been here,” Tarzan said. “He’s the one who hurt Gazan. He took Teeka.”
Taug and the other bulls commenced to roar and threaten; but they did nothing. Had the stranger bull been within sight they would have torn him to pieces; but it did not occur to them to follow him.
Taug and the other bulls started to bellow and act tough; but they didn't actually do anything. If the stranger bull had been in sight, they would have ripped him apart; but it didn't cross their minds to chase after him.
“If the three bulls had been watching around the tribe this would not have happened,” said Tarzan. “Such things will happen as long as you do not keep the three bulls watching for an enemy. The jungle is full of enemies, and yet you let your shes and your balus feed where they will, alone and unprotected. Tarzan goes now—he goes to find Teeka and bring her back to the tribe.”
“If the three bulls had been keeping watch over the tribe, this wouldn’t have happened,” said Tarzan. “These things will continue to occur as long as you don’t have the three bulls on guard for enemies. The jungle is full of threats, and yet you let your shes and your balus graze wherever they want, alone and unprotected. Tarzan is leaving now—he is going to find Teeka and bring her back to the tribe.”
The idea appealed to the other bulls. “We will all go,” they cried.
The idea sounded good to the other bulls. “We’re all in,” they shouted.
“No,” said Tarzan, “you will not all go. We cannot take shes and balus when we go out to hunt and fight. You must remain to guard them or you will lose them all.”
“No,” said Tarzan, “you can’t all go. We can’t bring the women and children when we head out to hunt and fight. You need to stay and protect them, or you'll lose everything.”
They scratched their heads. The wisdom of his advice was dawning upon them, but at first they had been carried away by the new idea—the idea of following up an enemy offender to wrest his prize from him and punish him. The community instinct was ingrained in their characters through ages of custom. They did not know why they had not thought to pursue and punish the offender—they could not know that it was because they had as yet not reached a mental plane which would permit them to work as individuals. In times of stress, the community instinct sent them huddling into a compact herd where the great bulls, by the weight of their combined strength and ferocity, could best protect them from an enemy. The idea of separating to do battle with a foe had not yet occurred to them—it was too foreign to custom, too inimical to community interests; but to Tarzan it was the first and most natural thought. His senses told him that there was but a single bull connected with the attack upon Teeka and Gazan. A single enemy did not require the entire tribe for his punishment. Two swift bulls could quickly overhaul him and rescue Teeka.
They scratched their heads. They were starting to understand the wisdom of his advice, but at first, they had been swept up by the new idea—following an enemy to take back what's theirs and punish him. The instinct to stick together was deep-rooted in their nature from years of tradition. They didn't realize why they hadn't thought to chase down and penalize the offender—they couldn't know that they hadn't yet reached a mental level that would allow them to act as individuals. In times of crisis, their community instinct pushed them into a tight group where the strongest could best protect them from threats. The thought of splitting up to fight an enemy hadn’t occurred to them—it was too strange to their customs and against community interests; but for Tarzan, it was the first and most natural thought. His instincts told him that there was only one bull involved in the attack on Teeka and Gazan. A single enemy didn’t need the whole tribe to be punished. Two quick bulls could easily catch him and save Teeka.
In the past no one ever had thought to go forth in search of the shes that were occasionally stolen from the tribe. If Numa, Sabor, Sheeta or a wandering bull ape from another tribe chanced to carry off a maid or a matron while no one was looking, that was the end of it—she was gone, that was all. The bereaved husband, if the victim chanced to have been mated, growled around for a day or two and then, if he were strong enough, took another mate within the tribe, and if not, wandered far into the jungle on the chance of stealing one from another community.
In the past, no one ever thought to go searching for the women that were sometimes taken from the tribe. If Numa, Sabor, Sheeta, or a roaming bull ape from another tribe happened to carry off a girl or a woman while no one was watching, that was it—she was gone, and that was that. The grieving husband, if the victim happened to be married, would sulk for a day or two and then, if he was strong enough, would take a new mate from the tribe. If not, he would wander deep into the jungle hoping to steal one from another community.
In the past Tarzan of the Apes had condoned this practice for the reason that he had had no interest in those who had been stolen; but Teeka had been his first love and Teeka’s balu held a place in his heart such as a balu of his own would have held. Just once before had Tarzan wished to follow and revenge. That had been years before when Kulonga, the son of Mbonga, the chief, had slain Kala. Then, single-handed, Tarzan had pursued and avenged. Now, though to a lesser degree, he was moved by the same passion.
In the past, Tarzan of the Apes had accepted this practice because he didn't care about those who had been taken. But Teeka had been his first love, and Teeka’s balu held a spot in his heart like a balu of his own would have. There was only one other time Tarzan had wanted to seek revenge, and that had been years ago when Kulonga, the son of Mbonga, the chief, killed Kala. Back then, Tarzan had chased him down and avenged her. Now, though it was to a lesser extent, he felt that same urge for revenge.
He turned toward Taug. “Leave Gazan with Mumga,” he said. “She is old and her fangs are broken and she is no good; but she can take care of Gazan until we return with Teeka, and if Gazan is dead when we come back,” he turned to address Mumga, “I will kill you, too.”
He turned to Taug. “Leave Gazan with Mumga,” he said. “She’s old, her fangs are broken, and she’s not much use; but she can look after Gazan until we get back with Teeka. And if Gazan is dead when we return,” he directed his gaze at Mumga, “I’ll take you out, too.”
“Where are we going?” asked Taug.
“Where are we heading?” asked Taug.
“We are going to get Teeka,” replied the ape-man, “and kill the bull who has stolen her. Come!”
“We're going to get Teeka,” replied the ape-man, “and take down the bull who stole her. Let's go!”
He turned again to the spoor of the stranger bull, which showed plainly to his trained senses, nor did he glance back to note if Taug followed. The latter laid Gazan in Mumga’s arms with a parting: “If he dies Tarzan will kill you,” and he followed after the brown-skinned figure that already was moving at a slow trot along the jungle trail.
He turned back to the tracks of the stranger bull, which were clear to his trained senses, and he didn't look back to see if Taug was following. Taug placed Gazan in Mumga’s arms with a warning: “If he dies, Tarzan will kill you,” and then he followed the brown-skinned figure that was already moving at a slow trot along the jungle path.
No other bull of the tribe of Kerchak was so good a trailer as Tarzan, for his trained senses were aided by a high order of intelligence. His judgment told him the natural trail for a quarry to follow, so that he need but note the most apparent marks upon the way, and today the trail of Toog was as plain to him as type upon a printed page to you or me.
No other bull from the Kerchak tribe was as skilled at tracking as Tarzan because his trained senses were enhanced by a high level of intelligence. His judgment allowed him to identify the natural path a target would take, so he only needed to pay attention to the most obvious signs along the way, and today, the trail of Toog was as clear to him as printed text is to you or me.
Following close behind the lithe figure of the ape-man came the huge and shaggy bull ape. No words passed between them. They moved as silently as two shadows among the myriad shadows of the forest. Alert as his eyes and ears, was Tarzan’s patrician nose. The spoor was fresh, and now that they had passed from the range of the strong ape odor of the tribe he had little difficulty in following Toog and Teeka by scent alone. Teeka’s familiar scent spoor told both Tarzan and Taug that they were upon her trail, and soon the scent of Toog became as familiar as the other.
Following closely behind the nimble figure of the ape-man was the enormous, shaggy bull ape. No words were exchanged between them. They moved as silently as two shadows among the countless shadows of the forest. Tarzan’s keen nose was as alert as his eyes and ears. The tracks were fresh, and now that they had moved away from the strong ape smell of the tribe, he had little trouble following Toog and Teeka by scent alone. Teeka’s familiar scent indicated to both Tarzan and Taug that they were on her trail, and soon the scent of Toog became just as recognizable as the other.
They were progressing rapidly when suddenly dense clouds overcast the sun. Tarzan accelerated his pace. Now he fairly flew along the jungle trail, or, where Toog had taken to the trees, followed nimbly as a squirrel along the bending, undulating pathway of the foliaged branches, swinging from tree to tree as Toog had swung before them; but more rapidly because they were not handicapped by a burden such as Toog’s.
They were moving quickly when suddenly thick clouds covered the sun. Tarzan picked up the pace. Now he zoomed down the jungle path, or, where Toog had climbed into the trees, he followed skillfully like a squirrel along the bending, twisting route of the leafy branches, swinging from tree to tree just as Toog had done before them; but much faster because they weren’t weighed down by a load like Toog’s.
Tarzan felt that they must be almost upon the quarry, for the scent spoor was becoming stronger and stronger, when the jungle was suddenly shot by livid lightning, and a deafening roar of thunder reverberated through the heavens and the forest until the earth trembled and shook. Then came the rain—not as it comes to us of the temperate zones, but as a mighty avalanche of water—a deluge which spills tons instead of drops upon the bending forest giants and the terrified creatures which haunt their shade.
Tarzan sensed they were getting close to their target, as the scent trail was getting stronger. Suddenly, the jungle lit up with bright lightning, and a thunderous roar echoed through the sky and the forest, making the ground shake. Then the rain came—not like it does in temperate regions, but as a massive avalanche of water—a deluge that poured tons instead of drops onto the bending trees and the frightened animals hiding beneath them.
And the rain did what Tarzan knew that it would do—it wiped the spoor of the quarry from the face of the earth. For a half hour the torrents fell—then the sun burst forth, jeweling the forest with a million scintillant gems; but today the ape-man, usually alert to the changing wonders of the jungle, saw them not. Only the fact that the spoor of Teeka and her abductor was obliterated found lodgment in his thoughts.
And the rain did what Tarzan expected it would do—it erased the tracks of the quarry from the ground. For half an hour, the downpour continued—then the sun broke through, decorating the forest with a million sparkling gems; but today, the ape-man, usually aware of the jungle's changing wonders, noticed none of it. Only the fact that the tracks of Teeka and her kidnapper were gone occupied his mind.
Even among the branches of the trees there are well-worn trails, just as there are trails upon the surface of the ground; but in the trees they branch and cross more often, since the way is more open than among the dense undergrowth at the surface. Along one of these well-marked trails Tarzan and Taug continued after the rain had ceased, because the ape-man knew that this was the most logical path for the thief to follow; but when they came to a fork, they were at a loss. Here they halted, while Tarzan examined every branch and leaf which might have been touched by the fleeing ape.
Even among the branches of the trees, there are well-worn paths, just like on the ground below; however, in the trees, they branch out and cross more often since the space is more open than the thick underbrush on the ground. Along one of these clear trails, Tarzan and Taug continued after the rain had stopped because the ape-man knew this was the most logical route for the thief to take. But when they reached a fork in the path, they were confused. They paused while Tarzan examined every branch and leaf that might have been disturbed by the escaping ape.
He sniffed the bole of the tree, and with his keen eyes he sought to find upon the bark some sign of the way the quarry had taken. It was slow work and all the time, Tarzan knew, the bull of the alien tribe was forging steadily away from them—gaining precious minutes that might carry him to safety before they could catch up with him.
He sniffed the trunk of the tree, and with his sharp eyes, he looked for any signs on the bark of which way the prey had gone. It was slow work, and all the while, Tarzan knew that the bull from the foreign tribe was making his escape—gaining valuable time that might lead him to safety before they could catch up.
First along one fork he went, and then another, applying every test that his wonderful junglecraft was cognizant of; but again and again he was baffled, for the scent had been washed away by the heavy downpour, in every exposed place. For a half hour Tarzan and Taug searched, until at last, upon the bottom of a broad leaf, Tarzan’s keen nose caught the faint trace of the scent spoor of Toog, where the leaf had brushed a hairy shoulder as the great ape passed through the foliage.
First, he took one path, then another, using all the skills he had learned in the jungle; but time after time he was stumped, because the heavy rain had washed away the scent in every open area. For half an hour, Tarzan and Taug searched until finally, on the underside of a wide leaf, Tarzan’s sharp nose picked up the faint trace of Toog's scent, where the leaf had touched a hairy shoulder as the great ape moved through the leaves.
Once again the two took up the trail, but it was slow work now and there were many discouraging delays when the spoor seemed lost beyond recovery. To you or me there would have been no spoor, even before the coming of the rain, except, possibly, where Toog had come to earth and followed a game trail. In such places the imprint of a huge handlike foot and the knuckles of one great hand were sometimes plain enough for an ordinary mortal to read. Tarzan knew from these and other indications that the ape was yet carrying Teeka. The depth of the imprint of his feet indicated a much greater weight than that of any of the larger bulls, for they were made under the combined weight of Toog and Teeka, while the fact that the knuckles of but one hand touched the ground at any time showed that the other hand was occupied in some other business—the business of holding the prisoner to a hairy shoulder. Tarzan could follow, in sheltered places, the changing of the burden from one shoulder to another, as indicated by the deepening of the foot imprint upon the side of the load, and the changing of the knuckle imprints from one side of the trail to the other.
Once again, the two resumed their trek, but it was slow going now and there were many frustrating delays when the trail seemed completely lost. For you or me, there wouldn’t have even been a trail before the rain, except maybe where Toog had settled down and followed a game path. In those spots, the print of a huge, hand-like foot and the knuckles of one massive hand were sometimes clear enough for an ordinary person to see. Tarzan understood from these signs and others that the ape was still carrying Teeka. The depth of the foot impressions showed a much heavier weight than any of the larger bulls, as they were made under the combined weight of Toog and Teeka. The fact that only one hand's knuckles touched the ground at any time indicated that the other hand was busy—carrying the captive on a hairy shoulder. In sheltered areas, Tarzan could track the shifting of the load from one shoulder to the other, as seen by the deepening of the foot imprint on that side of the burden and the movement of the knuckle prints from one side of the path to the other.
There were stretches along the surface paths where the ape had gone for considerable distances entirely erect upon his hind feet—walking as a man walks; but the same might have been true of any of the great anthropoids of the same species, for, unlike the chimpanzee and the gorilla, they walk without the aid of their hands quite as readily as with. It was such things, however, which helped to identify to Tarzan and to Taug the appearance of the abductor, and with his individual scent characteristic already indelibly impressed upon their memories, they were in a far better position to know him when they came upon him, even should he have disposed of Teeka before, than is a modern sleuth with his photographs and Bertillon measurements, equipped to recognize a fugitive from civilized justice.
There were stretches along the paths where the ape had traveled for long distances standing completely upright on his hind legs—walking like a human; but the same could be said for any of the large anthropoids of the same kind, since, unlike chimpanzees and gorillas, they walk just as easily without using their hands. However, it was such details that helped Tarzan and Taug identify the appearance of the kidnapper, and with his unique scent already firmly embedded in their memories, they were in a much better position to recognize him when they encountered him, even if he had dealt with Teeka beforehand, than a modern detective with his photographs and Bertillon measurements, ready to identify a fugitive from civilized justice.
But with all their high-strung and delicately attuned perceptive faculties the two bulls of the tribe of Kerchak were often sore pressed to follow the trail at all, and at best were so delayed that in the afternoon of the second day, they still had not overhauled the fugitive. The scent was now strong, for it had been made since the rain, and Tarzan knew that it would not be long before they came upon the thief and his loot. Above them, as they crept stealthily forward, chattered Manu, the monkey, and his thousand fellows; squawked and screamed the brazen-throated birds of plumage; buzzed and hummed the countless insects amid the rustling of the forest leaves, and, as they passed, a little gray-beard, squeaking and scolding upon a swaying branch, looked down and saw them. Instantly the scolding and the squeaking ceased, and off tore the long-tailed mite as though Sheeta, the panther, had been endowed with wings and was in close pursuit of him. To all appearances he was only a very much frightened little monkey, fleeing for his life—there seemed nothing sinister about him.
But despite their finely tuned senses, the two bulls of the Kerchak tribe often struggled to follow the trail at all, and at best were so delayed that by the afternoon of the second day, they still hadn’t caught up to the fugitive. The scent was now strong since it had been left after the rain, and Tarzan knew it wouldn’t be long before they came across the thief and his loot. Above them, as they moved quietly forward, Manu the monkey and his thousands of companions chattered; the brightly colored birds squawked and screamed; countless insects buzzed and hummed among the rustling forest leaves. As they passed, a little gray-beard monkey, squeaking and scolding from a swaying branch, looked down and saw them. Instantly, the scolding and squeaking stopped, and the little creature darted away as if Sheeta, the panther, had sprouted wings and was chasing him. To anyone watching, he seemed to be just a scared little monkey, running for his life—there was nothing particularly threatening about him.
And what of Teeka during all this time? Was she at last resigned to her fate and accompanying her new mate in the proper humility of a loving and tractable spouse? A single glance at the pair would have answered these questions to the utter satisfaction of the most captious. She was torn and bleeding from many wounds, inflicted by the sullen Toog in his vain efforts to subdue her to his will, and Toog too was disfigured and mutilated; but with stubborn ferocity, he still clung to his now useless prize.
And what about Teeka during all this time? Had she finally accepted her fate and was following her new mate with the proper humility of a loving and obedient partner? A single look at the couple would satisfy even the most critical observer. She was injured and bleeding from numerous wounds, inflicted by the sullen Toog in his futile attempts to dominate her, and Toog himself was scarred and damaged; yet with stubborn ferocity, he still held onto his now useless prize.
On through the jungle he forced his way in the direction of the stamping ground of his tribe. He hoped that his king would have forgotten his treason; but if not he was still resigned to his fate—any fate would be better than suffering longer the sole companionship of this frightful she, and then, too, he wished to exhibit his captive to his fellows. Maybe he could wish her on the king—it is possible that such a thought urged him on.
Onward through the jungle he pushed toward his tribe's territory. He hoped that his king would have forgiven his betrayal; but if not, he was still ready to accept whatever came—any outcome would be better than enduring the terrible company of this woman any longer. Plus, he wanted to show off his captive to his friends. Maybe he even considered handing her over to the king—it’s possible that thought motivated him further.
At last they came upon two bulls feeding in a parklike grove—a beautiful grove dotted with huge boulders half embedded in the rich loam—mute monuments, possibly, to a forgotten age when mighty glaciers rolled their slow course where now a torrid sun beats down upon a tropic jungle.
At last, they came across two bulls grazing in a park-like grove—a lovely grove filled with large boulders partially buried in the fertile soil—silent reminders, perhaps, of a lost time when massive glaciers slowly moved through the area where a scorching sun now shines down on a tropical jungle.
The two bulls looked up, baring long fighting fangs, as Toog appeared in the distance. The latter recognized the two as friends. “It is Toog,” he growled. “Toog has come back with a new she.”
The two bulls looked up, showing their long fighting fangs, as Toog appeared in the distance. Toog recognized them as friends. “It’s Toog,” he growled. “Toog has come back with a new mate.”
The apes waited his nearer approach. Teeka turned a snarling, fanged face toward them. She was not pretty to look upon, yet through the blood and hatred upon her countenance they realized that she was beautiful, and they envied Toog—alas! they did not know Teeka.
The apes waited for him to come closer. Teeka turned her snarling, fanged face toward them. She wasn't easy to look at, but beneath the blood and hatred on her face, they realized she was beautiful, and they envied Toog—oh, if only they knew Teeka.
As they squatted looking at one another there raced through the trees toward them a long-tailed little monkey with gray whiskers. He was a very excited little monkey when he came to a halt upon the limb of a tree directly overhead.
As they crouched, glancing at each other, a little monkey with gray whiskers raced through the trees toward them. He was a very excited little monkey when he stopped on a branch of a tree right above them.
“Two strange bulls come,” he cried. “One is a Mangani, the other a hideous ape without hair upon his body. They follow the spoor of Toog. I saw them.”
“Two strange bulls are coming,” he shouted. “One is a Mangani, and the other is a creepy hairless ape. They’re following the tracks of Toog. I saw them.”
The four apes turned their eyes backward along the trail Toog had just come; then they looked at one another for a minute. “Come,” said the larger of Toog’s two friends, “we will wait for the strangers in the thick bushes beyond the clearing.”
The four apes turned their eyes back along the trail Toog had just traveled; then they glanced at each other for a minute. “Come,” said the larger of Toog’s two friends, “let's wait for the strangers in the dense bushes beyond the clearing.”
He turned and waddled away across the open place, the others following him. The little monkey danced about, all excitement. His chief diversion in life was to bring about bloody encounters between the larger denizens of the forest, that he might sit in the safety of the trees and witness the spectacles. He was a glutton for gore, was this little, whiskered, gray monkey, so long as it was the gore of others—a typical fight fan was the graybeard.
He turned and waddled away across the open area, the others following him. The little monkey hopped around, filled with excitement. His main source of amusement was instigating violent encounters between the larger animals of the forest, so he could sit safely in the trees and watch the show. He was a total bloodthirsty fan, this little, whiskered, gray monkey, as long as it was someone else's blood—just like a typical fight enthusiast.
The apes hid themselves in the shrubbery beside the trail along which the two stranger bulls would pass. Teeka trembled with excitement. She had heard the words of Manu, and she knew that the hairless ape must be Tarzan, while the other was, doubtless, Taug. Never, in her wildest hopes, had she expected succor of this sort. Her one thought had been to escape and find her way back to the tribe of Kerchak; but even this had appeared to her practically impossible, so closely did Toog watch her.
The apes hid in the bushes next to the path where the two unfamiliar bulls would walk by. Teeka shook with excitement. She had listened to Manu's words, and she realized that the hairless ape had to be Tarzan, while the other was probably Taug. Never, in her wildest dreams, had she anticipated help like this. Her only thought had been to escape and make her way back to Kerchak's tribe; but even that seemed nearly impossible, given how closely Toog was watching her.
As Taug and Tarzan reached the grove where Toog had come upon his friends, the ape scent became so strong that both knew the quarry was but a short distance ahead. And so they went even more cautiously, for they wished to come upon the thief from behind if they could and charge him before he was aware of their presence. That a little gray-whiskered monkey had forestalled them they did not know, nor that three pairs of savage eyes were already watching their every move and waiting for them to come within reach of itching paws and slavering jowls.
As Taug and Tarzan reached the grove where Toog had found his friends, the smell of the apes became so strong that both realized the target was just ahead. So, they moved even more carefully, hoping to surprise the thief from behind and charge him before he noticed them. They had no idea that a little gray-whiskered monkey was ahead of them, nor that three pairs of fierce eyes were already watching their every move, waiting for them to come within reach of eager paws and drooling jaws.
On they came across the grove, and as they entered the path leading into the dense jungle beyond, a sudden “Kreeg-ah!” shrilled out close before them—a “Kreeg-ah” in the familiar voice of Teeka. The small brains of Toog and his companions had not been able to foresee that Teeka might betray them, and now that she had, they went wild with rage. Toog struck the she a mighty blow that felled her, and then the three rushed forth to do battle with Tarzan and Taug. The little monkey danced upon his perch and screamed with delight.
On they came through the grove, and as they entered the path leading into the thick jungle beyond, a sudden “Kreeg-ah!” shrieked out right in front of them—a “Kreeg-ah” in the recognizable voice of Teeka. The small minds of Toog and his friends had not considered that Teeka might betray them, and now that she had, they went wild with anger. Toog struck her a powerful blow that knocked her down, and then the three charged forward to fight Tarzan and Taug. The little monkey bounced on his perch and squealed with joy.
And indeed he might well be delighted, for it was a lovely fight. There were no preliminaries, no formalities, no introductions—the five bulls merely charged and clinched. They rolled in the narrow trail and into the thick verdure beside it. They bit and clawed and scratched and struck, and all the while they kept up the most frightful chorus of growlings and barkings and roarings. In five minutes they were torn and bleeding, and the little graybeard leaped high, shrilling his primitive bravos; but always his attitude was “thumbs down.” He wanted to see something killed. He did not care whether it were friend or foe. It was blood he wanted—blood and death.
And he could definitely feel pleased, because it was an amazing fight. There were no warm-ups, no formalities, no introductions—the five bulls just charged and locked in. They tumbled down the narrow path and into the thick greenery beside it. They bit, clawed, scratched, and struck, while creating a terrifying mix of growls, barks, and roars. In just five minutes, they were torn and bleeding, and the little graybeard jumped up, cheering loudly; but his vibe was always “thumbs down.” He wanted to see something die. He didn't care if it was a friend or an enemy. He wanted blood—blood and death.
Taug had been set upon by Toog and another of the apes, while Tarzan had the third—a huge brute with the strength of a buffalo. Never before had Tarzan’s assailant beheld so strange a creature as this slippery, hairless bull with which he battled. Sweat and blood covered Tarzan’s sleek, brown hide. Again and again he slipped from the clutches of the great bull, and all the while he struggled to free his hunting knife from the scabbard in which it had stuck.
Taug was attacked by Toog and another ape, while Tarzan faced the third one—a massive brute with the power of a buffalo. Never before had Tarzan’s opponent seen such an unusual creature as this smooth, hairless beast he was fighting. Sweat and blood covered Tarzan’s shiny, brown skin. Time and time again, he slipped out of the grasp of the giant bull, all the while trying to pull his hunting knife out of the scabbard where it was stuck.
At length he succeeded—a brown hand shot out and clutched a hairy throat, another flew upward clutching the sharp blade. Three swift, powerful strokes and the bull relaxed with a groan, falling limp beneath his antagonist. Instantly Tarzan broke from the clutches of the dying bull and sprang to Taug’s assistance. Toog saw him coming and wheeled to meet him. In the impact of the charge, Tarzan’s knife was wrenched from his hand and then Toog closed with him. Now was the battle even—two against two—while on the verge, Teeka, now recovered from the blow that had felled her, slunk waiting for an opportunity to aid. She saw Tarzan’s knife and picked it up. She never had used it, but knew how Tarzan used it. Always had she been afraid of the thing which dealt death to the mightiest of the jungle people with the ease that Tantor’s great tusks deal death to Tantor’s enemies.
At last, he succeeded—a brown hand shot out and grabbed a hairy throat, while another hand flew up, clutching the sharp blade. Three quick, powerful strikes later, the bull groaned and fell limp beneath his opponent. Immediately, Tarzan broke free from the dying bull's grip and jumped to help Taug. Toog noticed him coming and turned to face him. During the collision of their charge, Tarzan’s knife slipped from his hand, and then Toog engaged him. Now the battle was even—two against two—while on the sidelines, Teeka, now recovered from the blow that had knocked her down, lay low, waiting for a chance to help. She spotted Tarzan’s knife and picked it up. She had never used it before but knew how Tarzan wielded it. She had always been afraid of the weapon that brought death to the mightiest jungle creatures as easily as Tantor's massive tusks dealt death to his enemies.
She saw Tarzan’s pocket pouch torn from his side, and with the curiosity of an ape, that even danger and excitement cannot entirely dispel, she picked this up, too.
She saw Tarzan’s pocket pouch ripped from his side, and with the curiosity of an ape, something that even danger and excitement can't completely eliminate, she picked it up, too.
Now the bulls were standing—the clinches had been broken. Blood streamed down their sides—their faces were crimsoned with it. Little graybeard was so fascinated that at last he had even forgotten to scream and dance; but sat rigid with delight in the enjoyment of the spectacle.
Now the bulls were standing—the holds had been broken. Blood streamed down their sides—their faces were stained with it. Little graybeard was so mesmerized that he eventually forgot to scream and dance; instead, he sat still with joy, fully engaged in the spectacle.
Back across the grove Tarzan and Taug forced their adversaries. Teeka followed slowly. She scarce knew what to do. She was lame and sore and exhausted from the frightful ordeal through which she had passed, and she had the confidence of her sex in the prowess of her mate and the other bull of her tribe—they would not need the help of a she in their battle with these two strangers.
Back across the grove, Tarzan and Taug pushed their opponents back. Teeka followed slowly. She hardly knew what to do. She was hurt, tired, and worn out from the terrifying experience she had just gone through, and she had faith in her mate's strength and the other male of her tribe—they wouldn't need a female's help in their fight against these two strangers.
The roars and screams of the fighters reverberated through the jungle, awakening the echoes in the distant hills. From the throat of Tarzan’s antagonist had come a score of “Kreeg-ahs!” and now from behind came the reply he had awaited. Into the grove, barking and growling, came a score of huge bull apes—the fighting men of Toog’s tribe.
The roars and screams of the fighters echoed through the jungle, waking the sounds in the distant hills. From the throat of Tarzan's enemy came a series of "Kreeg-ahs!" and now, from behind, came the response he had been waiting for. Into the grove, barking and growling, came a pack of massive male apes—the warriors of Toog's tribe.
Teeka saw them first and screamed a warning to Tarzan and Taug. Then she fled past the fighters toward the opposite side of the clearing, fear for a moment claiming her. Nor can one censure her after the frightful ordeal from which she was still suffering.
Teeka spotted them first and shouted a warning to Tarzan and Taug. Then she ran past the fighters to the other side of the clearing, fear momentarily taking hold of her. It's hard to blame her after the terrifying experience she had just gone through.
Down upon them came the great apes. In a moment Tarzan and Taug would be torn to shreds that would later form the pièce de résistance of the savage orgy of a Dum-Dum. Teeka turned to glance back. She saw the impending fate of her defenders and there sprang to life in her savage bosom the spark of martyrdom, that some common forbear had transmitted alike to Teeka, the wild ape, and the glorious women of a higher order who have invited death for their men. With a shrill scream she ran toward the battlers who were rolling in a great mass at the foot of one of the huge boulders which dotted the grove; but what could she do? The knife she held she could not use to advantage because of her lesser strength. She had seen Tarzan throw missiles, and she had learned this with many other things from her childhood playmate. She sought for something to throw and at last her fingers touched upon the hard objects in the pouch that had been torn from the ape-man. Tearing the receptacle open, she gathered a handful of shiny cylinders—heavy for their size, they seemed to her, and good missiles. With all her strength she hurled them at the apes battling in front of the granite boulder.
Down upon them came the great apes. In a flash, Tarzan and Taug would be torn to pieces that would later become the highlight of a savage Dum-Dum feast. Teeka turned to look back. She saw the grim fate awaiting her defenders, and in her wild heart ignited the spirit of martyrdom that some common ancestor had passed down to both Teeka, the wild ape, and the noble women of a higher order who have faced death for their men. With a sharp scream, she ran toward the fighters who were tangled in a massive heap at the base of one of the giant boulders scattered throughout the grove; but what could she do? The knife she held would be useless due to her lack of strength. She had seen Tarzan throw objects, and she had learned this and many other things from her childhood playmate. She searched for something to throw and finally her fingers found the hard objects in the pouch that had been ripped from the ape-man. Ripping the pouch open, she scooped up a handful of shiny cylinders—heavy for their size, they seemed to her, and good projectiles. With all her might, she hurled them at the apes fighting in front of the granite boulder.
The result surprised Teeka quite as much as it did the apes. There was a loud explosion, which deafened the fighters, and a puff of acrid smoke. Never before had one there heard such a frightful noise. Screaming with terror, the stranger bulls leaped to their feet and fled back toward the stamping ground of their tribe, while Taug and Tarzan slowly gathered themselves together and arose, lame and bleeding, to their feet. They, too, would have fled had they not seen Teeka standing there before them, the knife and the pocket pouch in her hands.
The outcome shocked Teeka just as much as it did the apes. There was a loud explosion that deafened the fighters, along with a puff of acrid smoke. No one had ever heard such a terrifying noise before. Screaming in fear, the stranger bulls jumped to their feet and ran back toward their tribe's territory, while Taug and Tarzan slowly pulled themselves together and stood up, sore and bleeding. They would have fled too if they hadn’t seen Teeka standing there in front of them, holding the knife and the pocket pouch.
“What was it?” asked Tarzan.
“What was that?” asked Tarzan.
Teeka shook her head. “I hurled these at the stranger bulls,” and she held forth another handful of the shiny metal cylinders with the dull gray, cone-shaped ends.
Teeka shook her head. “I threw these at the strange bulls,” and she held out another handful of the shiny metal cylinders with the dull gray, cone-shaped ends.
Tarzan looked at them and scratched his head.
Tarzan looked at them and scratched his head.
“What are they?” asked Taug.
“What are they?” Taug asked.
“I do not know,” said Tarzan. “I found them.”
“I don't know,” said Tarzan. “I found them.”
The little monkey with the gray beard halted among the trees a mile away and huddled, terrified, against a branch. He did not know that the dead father of Tarzan of the Apes, reaching back out of the past across a span of twenty years, had saved his son’s life.
The little monkey with the gray beard stopped among the trees a mile away and pressed himself, scared, against a branch. He had no idea that the dead father of Tarzan of the Apes, reaching back from the past after twenty years, had saved his son's life.
Nor did Tarzan, Lord Greystoke, know it either.
Nor did Tarzan, Lord Greystoke, know it either.
CHAPTER XI
A Jungle Joke
Time seldom hung heavily upon Tarzan’s hands. Even where there is sameness there cannot be monotony if most of the sameness consists in dodging death first in one form and then in another; or in inflicting death upon others. There is a spice to such an existence; but even this Tarzan of the Apes varied in activities of his own invention.
Time rarely dragged for Tarzan. Even when things felt repetitive, it wasn’t boring, especially when most of that repetition involved escaping death in one way or another, or dealing it out to others. There’s an excitement to that kind of life; but even this Tarzan of the Apes mixed it up with activities he created himself.
He was full grown now, with the grace of a Greek god and the thews of a bull, and, by all the tenets of apedom, should have been sullen, morose, and brooding; but he was not. His spirits seemed not to age at all—he was still a playful child, much to the discomfiture of his fellow-apes. They could not understand him or his ways, for with maturity they quickly forgot their youth and its pastimes.
He was fully grown now, with the poise of a Greek god and the strength of a bull, and, by all the rules of being an ape, he should have been gloomy, moody, and withdrawn; but he wasn’t. His energy seemed to never fade—he was still a playful child, much to the annoyance of his fellow apes. They couldn’t grasp him or his behavior, as with maturity they quickly forgot their youth and its fun activities.
Nor could Tarzan quite understand them. It seemed strange to him that a few moons since, he had roped Taug about an ankle and dragged him screaming through the tall jungle grasses, and then rolled and tumbled in good-natured mimic battle when the young ape had freed himself, and that today when he had come up behind the same Taug and pulled him over backward upon the turf, instead of the playful young ape, a great, snarling beast had whirled and leaped for his throat.
Nor could Tarzan quite understand them. It seemed strange to him that a few moons ago, he had tied a rope around Taug’s ankle and dragged him screaming through the tall jungle grasses, and then rolled around in good-natured mock battles when the young ape had freed himself. Yet today, when he had approached the same Taug from behind and pulled him over backwards onto the ground, instead of the playful young ape, a huge, snarling beast had spun around and lunged for his throat.
Easily Tarzan eluded the charge and quickly Taug’s anger vanished, though it was not replaced with playfulness; yet the ape-man realized that Taug was not amused nor was he amusing. The big bull ape seemed to have lost whatever sense of humor he once may have possessed. With a grunt of disappointment, young Lord Greystoke turned to other fields of endeavor. A strand of black hair fell across one eye. He brushed it aside with the palm of a hand and a toss of his head. It suggested something to do, so he sought his quiver which lay cached in the hollow bole of a lightning-riven tree. Removing the arrows he turned the quiver upside down, emptying upon the ground the contents of its bottom—his few treasures. Among them was a flat bit of stone and a shell which he had picked up from the beach near his father’s cabin.
Easily, Tarzan dodged the attack, and quickly Taug's anger faded away, though it didn't turn into playfulness; still, the ape-man realized that Taug was neither amused nor amusing. The big bull ape seemed to have lost any sense of humor he might have had. With a grunt of disappointment, young Lord Greystoke moved on to other activities. A strand of black hair fell across one eye, and he brushed it aside with his hand and a toss of his head. It suggested he needed to do something, so he looked for his quiver that was hidden in the hollow of a lightning-struck tree. He took out the arrows and turned the quiver upside down, emptying the contents onto the ground—his few treasures. Among them was a flat piece of stone and a shell he had picked up from the beach near his father’s cabin.
With great care he rubbed the edge of the shell back and forth upon the flat stone until the soft edge was quite fine and sharp. He worked much as a barber does who hones a razor, and with every evidence of similar practice; but his proficiency was the result of years of painstaking effort. Unaided he had worked out a method of his own for putting an edge upon the shell—he even tested it with the ball of his thumb—and when it met with his approval he grasped a wisp of the hair which fell across his eyes, grasped it between the thumb and first finger of his left hand and sawed upon it with the sharpened shell until it was severed. All around his head he went until his black shock was rudely bobbed with a ragged bang in front. For the appearance of it he cared nothing; but in the matter of safety and comfort it meant everything. A lock of hair falling in one’s eyes at the wrong moment might mean all the difference between life and death, while straggly strands, hanging down one’s back were most uncomfortable, especially when wet with dew or rain or perspiration.
With great care, he rubbed the edge of the shell back and forth on the flat stone until the soft edge was sharp and finely honed. He worked much like a barber sharpening a razor, showing all the signs of similar practice; however, his skill came from years of dedicated effort. On his own, he developed a method for putting an edge on the shell—he even tested it with the ball of his thumb—and once it met his approval, he took a wisp of the hair that hung in front of his eyes, held it between the thumb and first finger of his left hand, and sawed through it with the sharpened shell until it was cut off. He went around his head until his thick, black hair was unevenly cut into a rough bob with a choppy bang in front. He didn’t care at all about how it looked; but when it came to safety and comfort, it was crucial. A lock of hair falling into one’s eyes at the wrong moment could mean the difference between life and death, while messy strands hanging down one’s back were really uncomfortable, especially when they were wet with dew, rain, or sweat.
As Tarzan labored at his tonsorial task, his active mind was busy with many things. He recalled his recent battle with Bolgani, the gorilla, the wounds of which were but just healed. He pondered the strange sleep adventures of his first dreams, and he smiled at the painful outcome of his last practical joke upon the tribe, when, dressed in the hide of Numa, the lion, he had come roaring upon them, only to be leaped upon and almost killed by the great bulls whom he had taught how to defend themselves from an attack of their ancient enemy.
As Tarzan worked on his hair, his mind was racing with various thoughts. He thought back to his recent fight with Bolgani, the gorilla, whose wounds were just healing. He reflected on the bizarre adventures from his first dreams and chuckled at the unfortunate result of his last prank on the tribe, when he had dressed in the skin of Numa, the lion, and charged at them with a roar, only to be tackled and nearly killed by the big bulls he had trained to defend themselves against their ancient enemy.
His hair lopped off to his entire satisfaction, and seeing no possibility of pleasure in the company of the tribe, Tarzan swung leisurely into the trees and set off in the direction of his cabin; but when part way there his attention was attracted by a strong scent spoor coming from the north. It was the scent of the Gomangani.
His hair cut to his complete satisfaction, and realizing there was no joy in hanging out with the tribe, Tarzan casually swung into the trees and headed towards his cabin; however, partway there, he caught a strong scent coming from the north. It was the smell of the Gomangani.
Curiosity, that best-developed, common heritage of man and ape, always prompted Tarzan to investigate where the Gomangani were concerned. There was that about them which aroused his imagination. Possibly it was because of the diversity of their activities and interests. The apes lived to eat and sleep and propagate. The same was true of all the other denizens of the jungle, save the Gomangani.
Curiosity, the greatest trait shared by both humans and apes, always drove Tarzan to explore when it came to the Gomangani. There was something about them that sparked his imagination. Maybe it was due to the variety of their activities and interests. The apes lived just to eat, sleep, and reproduce. The same was true for all the other inhabitants of the jungle, except for the Gomangani.
These black fellows danced and sang, scratched around in the earth from which they had cleared the trees and underbrush; they watched things grow, and when they had ripened, they cut them down and put them in straw-thatched huts. They made bows and spears and arrows, poison, cooking pots, things of metal to wear around their arms and legs. If it hadn’t been for their black faces, their hideously disfigured features, and the fact that one of them had slain Kala, Tarzan might have wished to be one of them. At least he sometimes thought so, but always at the thought there rose within him a strange revulsion of feeling, which he could not interpret or understand—he simply knew that he hated the Gomangani, and that he would rather be Histah, the snake, than one of these.
These black men danced and sang, dug around in the soil where they had cleared away the trees and brush; they observed things growing, and when they were ripe, they harvested them and stored them in straw-roofed huts. They fashioned bows, spears, arrows, poison, cooking pots, and metal ornaments to wear on their arms and legs. If it hadn’t been for their dark skin, their terrifyingly distorted features, and the fact that one of them had killed Kala, Tarzan might have wished to be one of them. At least he sometimes thought so, but with that thought came a strange feeling of disgust that he couldn’t understand—he just knew that he hated the Gomangani, and he would prefer to be Histah, the snake, than one of them.
But their ways were interesting, and Tarzan never tired of spying upon them, and from them he learned much more than he realized, though always his principal thought was of some new way in which he could render their lives miserable. The baiting of the blacks was Tarzan’s chief divertisement.
But their behavior was fascinating, and Tarzan never got bored watching them, and he learned a lot more from them than he understood, even though his main thought was always about finding new ways to make their lives miserable. Teasing the black people was Tarzan's favorite pastime.
Tarzan realized now that the blacks were very near and that there were many of them, so he went silently and with great caution. Noiselessly he moved through the lush grasses of the open spaces, and where the forest was dense, swung from one swaying branch to another, or leaped lightly over tangled masses of fallen trees where there was no way through the lower terraces, and the ground was choked and impassable.
Tarzan now understood that the black people were very close by and that there were many of them, so he moved quietly and carefully. He silently navigated through the thick grass in the open areas, and where the forest was dense, he swung from one swaying branch to another or jumped easily over the tangled piles of fallen trees where there was no path through the lower levels, and the ground was blocked and impossible to cross.
And so presently he came within sight of the black warriors of Mbonga, the chief. They were engaged in a pursuit with which Tarzan was more or less familiar, having watched them at it upon other occasions. They were placing and baiting a trap for Numa, the lion. In a cage upon wheels they were tying a kid, so fastening it that when Numa seized the unfortunate creature, the door of the cage would drop behind him, making him a prisoner.
And so he soon saw the black warriors of Mbonga, the chief. They were involved in a hunt that Tarzan recognized, having observed it before. They were setting up and baiting a trap for Numa, the lion. In a cage on wheels, they were tying a kid, securing it in such a way that when Numa grabbed the unlucky animal, the door of the cage would drop behind him, trapping him.
These things the blacks had learned in their old home, before they escaped through the untracked jungle to their new village. Formerly they had dwelt in the Belgian Congo until the cruelties of their heartless oppressors had driven them to seek the safety of unexplored solitudes beyond the boundaries of Leopold’s domain.
These are the things the Black people had learned in their old home, before they escaped through the uncharted jungle to their new village. They had previously lived in the Belgian Congo until the brutality of their ruthless oppressors forced them to seek safety in the unexplored solitude beyond Leopold’s territory.
In their old life they often had trapped animals for the agents of European dealers, and had learned from them certain tricks, such as this one, which permitted them to capture even Numa without injuring him, and to transport him in safety and with comparative ease to their village.
In their previous life, they often trapped animals for European dealers and learned some tricks from them, like this one, which allowed them to catch even Numa without hurting him and transport him safely and relatively easily to their village.
No longer was there a white market for their savage wares; but there was still a sufficient incentive for the taking of Numa—alive. First was the necessity for ridding the jungle of man-eaters, and it was only after depredations by these grim and terrible scourges that a lion hunt was organized. Secondarily was the excuse for an orgy of celebration was the hunt successful, and the fact that such fetes were rendered doubly pleasurable by the presence of a live creature that might be put to death by torture.
No longer was there a legitimate market for their brutal goods, but there was still enough motivation to capture Numa—alive. First, there was the need to eliminate man-eaters from the jungle, and a lion hunt was only arranged after these fearsome predators caused significant harm. The second reason for the hunt was that it provided an excuse for a huge celebration if it was successful, and such parties were made even more enjoyable by the presence of a live animal that could be tortured to death.
Tarzan had witnessed these cruel rites in the past. Being himself more savage than the savage warriors of the Gomangani, he was not so shocked by the cruelty of them as he should have been, yet they did shock him. He could not understand the strange feeling of revulsion which possessed him at such times. He had no love for Numa, the lion, yet he bristled with rage when the blacks inflicted upon his enemy such indignities and cruelties as only the mind of the one creature molded in the image of God can conceive.
Tarzan had seen these brutal rituals before. Being more wild than the savage warriors of the Gomangani, he wasn’t as shocked by their cruelty as he probably should have been, but it still disturbed him. He couldn’t grasp the strange feeling of disgust that overwhelmed him during those moments. He had no fondness for Numa, the lion, yet he felt a surge of anger when the blacks subjected his enemy to the kind of humiliation and cruelty that only a being made in the image of God could think of.
Upon two occasions he had freed Numa from the trap before the blacks had returned to discover the success or failure of their venture. He would do the same today—that he decided immediately he realized the nature of their intentions.
Upon two occasions, he had freed Numa from the trap before the hunters returned to see if their plan had worked or not. He would do the same today—that was his decision as soon as he understood what they intended.
Leaving the trap in the center of a broad elephant trail near the drinking hole, the warriors turned back toward their village. On the morrow they would come again. Tarzan looked after them, upon his lips an unconscious sneer—the heritage of unguessed caste. He saw them file along the broad trail, beneath the overhanging verdure of leafy branch and looped and festooned creepers, brushing ebon shoulders against gorgeous blooms which inscrutable Nature has seen fit to lavish most profusely farthest from the eye of man.
Leaving the trap in the middle of a wide elephant trail near the watering hole, the warriors headed back to their village. The next day, they would return. Tarzan watched them go, an unintentional sneer on his lips—a sign of an unrecognized background. He saw them walk along the wide path, under the thick greenery of leafy branches and tangled vines, brushing their dark shoulders against the vibrant flowers that nature has chosen to generously display far from human sight.
As Tarzan watched, through narrowed lids, the last of the warriors disappear beyond a turn in the trail, his expression altered to the urge of a newborn thought. A slow, grim smile touched his lips. He looked down upon the frightened, bleating kid, advertising, in its fear and its innocence, its presence and its helplessness.
As Tarzan observed with narrowed eyes the last of the warriors vanish around a bend in the path, his expression shifted to the spark of a new idea. A slow, grim smile formed on his lips. He looked down at the frightened, bleating kid, showcasing, through its fear and innocence, its presence and vulnerability.
Dropping to the ground, Tarzan approached the trap and entered. Without disturbing the fiber cord, which was adjusted to drop the door at the proper time, he loosened the living bait, tucked it under an arm and stepped out of the cage.
Dropping to the ground, Tarzan approached the trap and entered. Without disturbing the fiber cord, which was set to drop the door at the right moment, he loosened the living bait, tucked it under his arm, and stepped out of the cage.
With his hunting knife he quieted the frightened animal, severing its jugular; then he dragged it, bleeding, along the trail down to the drinking hole, the half smile persisting upon his ordinarily grave face. At the water’s edge the ape-man stooped and with hunting knife and quick strong fingers deftly removed the dead kid’s viscera. Scraping a hole in the mud, he buried these parts which he did not eat, and swinging the body to his shoulder took to the trees.
With his hunting knife, he silenced the scared animal, cutting its jugular; then he dragged it, bleeding, along the path to the watering hole, a half-smile still on his usually serious face. At the water's edge, the ape-man bent down and with his knife and quick, strong fingers expertly removed the dead kid's insides. Digging a hole in the mud, he buried the parts he didn’t eat, and swinging the body onto his shoulder, he climbed into the trees.
For a short distance he pursued his way in the wake of the black warriors, coming down presently to bury the meat of his kill where it would be safe from the depredations of Dango, the hyena, or the other meat-eating beasts and birds of the jungle. He was hungry. Had he been all beast he would have eaten; but his man-mind could entertain urges even more potent than those of the belly, and now he was concerned with an idea which kept a smile upon his lips and his eyes sparkling in anticipation. An idea, it was, which permitted him to forget that he was hungry.
For a short distance, he followed the black warriors, soon arriving to bury the meat from his kill where it would be safe from Dango, the hyena, and other meat-eating animals and birds of the jungle. He was hungry. If he were purely an animal, he would have eaten; but his human mind could entertain desires even stronger than hunger, and now he was focused on a thought that kept a smile on his lips and his eyes sparkling with excitement. It was a thought that allowed him to forget all about his hunger.
The meat safely cached, Tarzan trotted along the elephant trail after the Gomangani. Two or three miles from the cage he overtook them and then he swung into the trees and followed above and behind them—waiting his chance.
The meat securely stored, Tarzan jogged along the elephant path after the Gomangani. A couple of miles from the cage, he caught up to them and then he leaped into the trees and followed above and behind them—waiting for his moment.
Among the blacks was Rabba Kega, the witch-doctor. Tarzan hated them all; but Rabba Kega he especially hated. As the blacks filed along the winding path, Rabba Kega, being lazy, dropped behind. This Tarzan noted, and it filled him with satisfaction—his being radiated a grim and terrible content. Like an angel of death he hovered above the unsuspecting black.
Among the blacks was Rabba Kega, the witch doctor. Tarzan hated them all, but he especially hated Rabba Kega. As the blacks walked along the winding path, Rabba Kega, being lazy, fell behind. Tarzan noticed this, and it filled him with satisfaction—he radiated a grim and terrible content. Like an angel of death, he hovered above the unsuspecting black.
Rabba Kega, knowing that the village was but a short distance ahead, sat down to rest. Rest well, O Rabba Kega! It is thy last opportunity.
Rabba Kega, aware that the village was just up ahead, sat down to take a break. Rest well, O Rabba Kega! This is your final chance.
Tarzan crept stealthily among the branches of the tree above the well-fed, self-satisfied witch-doctor. He made no noise that the dull ears of man could hear above the soughing of the gentle jungle breeze among the undulating foliage of the upper terraces, and when he came close above the black man he halted, well concealed by leafy branch and heavy creeper.
Tarzan quietly moved through the branches of the tree above the well-fed, self-satisfied witch doctor. He didn't make a sound that the dull ears of a human could hear over the soft rustling of the gentle jungle breeze among the swaying leaves of the upper branches, and when he got close to the black man, he stopped, well hidden by the leafy branches and thick vines.
Rabba Kega sat with his back against the bole of a tree, facing Tarzan. The position was not such as the waiting beast of prey desired, and so, with the infinite patience of the wild hunter, the ape-man crouched motionless and silent as a graven image until the fruit should be ripe for the plucking. A poisonous insect buzzed angrily out of space. It loitered, circling, close to Tarzan’s face. The ape-man saw and recognized it. The virus of its sting spelled death for lesser things than he—for him it would mean days of anguish. He did not move. His glittering eyes remained fixed upon Rabba Kega after acknowledging the presence of the winged torture by a single glance. He heard and followed the movements of the insect with his keen ears, and then he felt it alight upon his forehead. No muscle twitched, for the muscles of such as he are the servants of the brain. Down across his face crept the horrid thing—over nose and lips and chin. Upon his throat it paused, and turning, retraced its steps. Tarzan watched Rabba Kega. Now not even his eyes moved. So motionless he crouched that only death might counterpart his movelessness. The insect crawled upward over the nut-brown cheek and stopped with its antennae brushing the lashes of his lower lid. You or I would have started back, closing our eyes and striking at the thing; but you and I are the slaves, not the masters of our nerves. Had the thing crawled upon the eyeball of the ape-man, it is believable that he could yet have remained wide-eyed and rigid; but it did not. For a moment it loitered there close to the lower lid, then it rose and buzzed away.
Rabba Kega sat with his back against the trunk of a tree, facing Tarzan. This position wasn’t ideal for a waiting predator, so, with the endless patience of a wild hunter, the ape-man crouched still and silent like a statue until the moment was right. A dangerous insect buzzed angrily nearby. It lingered, circling close to Tarzan’s face. The ape-man noticed it and recognized it. The sting of this insect could mean death for creatures weaker than him— for him, it would bring days of suffering. He didn't move. His bright eyes stayed locked on Rabba Kega after acknowledging the presence of the winged menace with just one glance. He listened closely to the movements of the insect with his sharp hearing, and then felt it land on his forehead. Not a muscle twitched, because the muscles of someone like him follow the commands of the mind. The horrible thing crawled down across his face—over his nose, lips, and chin. It paused on his throat, then turned around and retraced its path. Tarzan kept his gaze fixed on Rabba Kega. Not even his eyes shifted. He crouched so still that only death could match his immobility. The insect crawled up his dark brown cheek and stopped with its antennae brushing against the lashes of his lower eyelid. You or I would have flinched, closed our eyes, and swatted at it; but you and I are the captives, not the masters of our nerves. If the insect had crawled onto the apple of his eye, it’s believable that he could have remained wide-eyed and unmoving; but it didn’t. For a moment, it lingered there close to the lower eyelid, then it lifted off and buzzed away.
Down toward Rabba Kega it buzzed and the black man heard it, saw it, struck at it, and was stung upon the cheek before he killed it. Then he rose with a howl of pain and anger, and as he turned up the trail toward the village of Mbonga, the chief, his broad, black back was exposed to the silent thing waiting above him.
Down toward Rabba Kega, it buzzed and the man heard it, saw it, struck at it, and got stung on the cheek before he killed it. Then he rose with a howl of pain and anger, and as he turned up the trail toward the village of Mbonga, the chief, his broad back was exposed to the silent thing waiting above him.
And as Rabba Kega turned, a lithe figure shot outward and downward from the tree above upon his broad shoulders. The impact of the springing creature carried Rabba Kega to the ground. He felt strong jaws close upon his neck, and when he tried to scream, steel fingers throttled his throat. The powerful black warrior struggled to free himself; but he was as a child in the grip of his adversary.
And as Rabba Kega turned, a nimble figure leaped down from the tree above and landed on his broad shoulders. The force of the creature's jump knocked Rabba Kega to the ground. He felt strong jaws clamp down on his neck, and when he tried to scream, a tight grip closed around his throat. The powerful black warrior struggled to break free, but he was like a child in the hold of his opponent.
Presently Tarzan released his grip upon the other’s throat; but each time that Rabba Kega essayed a scream, the cruel fingers choked him painfully. At last the warrior desisted. Then Tarzan half rose and kneeled upon his victim’s back, and when Rabba Kega struggled to arise, the ape-man pushed his face down into the dirt of the trail. With a bit of the rope that had secured the kid, Tarzan made Rabba Kega’s wrists secure behind his back, then he rose and jerked his prisoner to his feet, faced him back along the trail and pushed him on ahead.
Currently, Tarzan let go of the other man's throat; but every time Rabba Kega tried to scream, the tight grip hurt him painfully. Finally, the warrior stopped struggling. Then Tarzan partly stood up and knelt on his victim's back, and when Rabba Kega tried to get up, the ape-man pushed his face down into the dirt of the path. Using a piece of the rope that had tied up the kid, Tarzan secured Rabba Kega's wrists behind his back, then he stood up and yanked his prisoner to his feet, turned him to face the trail, and pushed him forward.
Not until he came to his feet did Rabba Kega obtain a square look at his assailant. When he saw that it was the white devil-god his heart sank within him and his knees trembled; but as he walked along the trail ahead of his captor and was neither injured nor molested his spirits slowly rose, so that he took heart again. Possibly the devil-god did not intend to kill him after all. Had he not had little Tibo in his power for days without harming him, and had he not spared Momaya, Tibo’s mother, when he easily might have slain her?
Not until he got to his feet did Rabba Kega get a clear look at his attacker. When he realized it was the white devil-god, his heart dropped, and his knees shook; but as he walked along the path in front of his captor and wasn’t hurt or bothered, his spirits gradually lifted, and he regained his courage. Maybe the devil-god didn’t actually want to kill him after all. He had kept little Tibo in his control for days without doing him any harm, and he had spared Momaya, Tibo’s mother, when he could have easily killed her.
And then they came upon the cage which Rabba Kega, with the other black warriors of the village of Mbonga, the chief, had placed and baited for Numa. Rabba Kega saw that the bait was gone, though there was no lion within the cage, nor was the door dropped. He saw and he was filled with wonder not unmixed with apprehension. It entered his dull brain that in some way this combination of circumstances had a connection with his presence there as the prisoner of the white devil-god.
And then they found the cage that Rabba Kega and the other black warriors from the village of Mbonga, the chief, had set up and baited for Numa. Rabba Kega noticed that the bait was gone, but there was no lion inside the cage, and the door wasn’t closed. He realized this and felt a mix of amazement and unease. It occurred to him that somehow this strange situation was linked to his being there as the prisoner of the white devil-god.
Nor was he wrong. Tarzan pushed him roughly into the cage, and in another moment Rabba Kega understood. Cold sweat broke from every pore of his body—he trembled as with ague—for the ape-man was binding him securely in the very spot the kid had previously occupied. The witch-doctor pleaded, first for his life, and then for a death less cruel; but he might as well have saved his pleas for Numa, since already they were directed toward a wild beast who understood no word of what he said.
Nor was he wrong. Tarzan shoved him forcefully into the cage, and in a moment, Rabba Kega realized what was happening. Cold sweat broke out from every pore of his body—he shook as if he had a fever—because the ape-man was tying him up securely in the exact spot the kid had just occupied. The witch-doctor begged, first for his life, and then for a less brutal death; but he might as well have saved his pleas for Numa, since they were already directed toward a wild beast who understood none of what he was saying.
But his constant jabbering not only annoyed Tarzan, who worked in silence, but suggested that later the black might raise his voice in cries for succor, so he stepped out of the cage, gathered a handful of grass and a small stick and returning, jammed the grass into Rabba Kega’s mouth, laid the stick crosswise between his teeth and fastened it there with the thong from Rabba Kega’s loin cloth. Now could the witch-doctor but roll his eyes and sweat. Thus Tarzan left him.
But his nonstop chatter not only irritated Tarzan, who preferred to work quietly, but also hinted that later the man might yell for help. So, Tarzan stepped out of the cage, grabbed a handful of grass and a small stick, and then returned. He stuffed the grass into Rabba Kega's mouth, placed the stick crosswise between his teeth, and secured it there with a strap from Rabba Kega's loincloth. Now the witch-doctor could only roll his eyes and sweat. That’s how Tarzan left him.
The ape-man went first to the spot where he had cached the body of the kid. Digging it up, he ascended into a tree and proceeded to satisfy his hunger. What remained he again buried; then he swung away through the trees to the water hole, and going to the spot where fresh, cold water bubbled from between two rocks, he drank deeply. The other beasts might wade in and drink stagnant water; but not Tarzan of the Apes. In such matters he was fastidious. From his hands he washed every trace of the repugnant scent of the Gomangani, and from his face the blood of the kid. Rising, he stretched himself not unlike some huge, lazy cat, climbed into a near-by tree and fell asleep.
The ape-man first went to the place where he had hidden the kid's body. Digging it up, he climbed into a tree and began to satisfy his hunger. After eating what he wanted, he buried the leftovers again; then he swung through the trees to the water hole. When he reached the spot where fresh, cold water bubbled between two rocks, he drank deeply. Other animals might wade in and drink stagnant water, but not Tarzan of the Apes. He was picky about that. He washed every trace of the unpleasant smell of the Gomangani from his hands and the blood of the kid from his face. Rising, he stretched out like a huge, lazy cat, climbed into a nearby tree, and fell asleep.
When he awoke it was dark, though a faint luminosity still tinged the western heavens. A lion moaned and coughed as it strode through the jungle toward water. It was approaching the drinking hole. Tarzan grinned sleepily, changed his position and fell asleep again.
When he woke up, it was dark, but a faint light still glowed in the western sky. A lion groaned and coughed as it walked through the jungle toward water. It was getting close to the drinking hole. Tarzan smiled sleepily, changed his position, and went back to sleep.
When the blacks of Mbonga, the chief, reached their village they discovered that Rabba Kega was not among them. When several hours had elapsed they decided that something had happened to him, and it was the hope of the majority of the tribe that whatever had happened to him might prove fatal. They did not love the witch-doctor. Love and fear seldom are playmates; but a warrior is a warrior, and so Mbonga organized a searching party. That his own grief was not unassuagable might have been gathered from the fact that he remained at home and went to sleep. The young warriors whom he sent out remained steadfast to their purpose for fully half an hour, when, unfortunately for Rabba Kega—upon so slight a thing may the fate of a man rest—a honey bird attracted the attention of the searchers and led them off for the delicious store it previously had marked down for betrayal, and Rabba Kega’s doom was sealed.
When the people of Mbonga, the chief, got back to their village, they realized that Rabba Kega was missing. After a few hours, they concluded that something must have happened to him, and most of the tribe secretly hoped that whatever it was would be deadly. They didn't have any affection for the witch-doctor. Love and fear rarely coexist; however, a warrior is a warrior, so Mbonga put together a search party. One could infer that his own sorrow was not unbearable since he stayed home and fell asleep. The young warriors he sent out remained committed to their mission for about half an hour, when, unfortunately for Rabba Kega—on such a small event can a man's fate hinge—a honey bird caught the searchers' attention and led them off to the sweet stash it had previously discovered, sealing Rabba Kega’s fate.
When the searchers returned empty handed, Mbonga was wroth; but when he saw the great store of honey they brought with them his rage subsided. Already Tubuto, young, agile and evil-minded, with face hideously painted, was practicing the black art upon a sick infant in the fond hope of succeeding to the office and perquisites of Rabba Kega. Tonight the women of the old witch-doctor would moan and howl. Tomorrow he would be forgotten. Such is life, such is fame, such is power—in the center of the world’s highest civilization, or in the depths of the black, primeval jungle. Always, everywhere, man is man, nor has he altered greatly beneath his veneer since he scurried into a hole between two rocks to escape the tyrannosaurus six million years ago.
When the searchers came back empty-handed, Mbonga was furious; but when he saw the huge amount of honey they brought with them, his anger faded. Already, Tubuto—young, agile, and malicious—with a face grotesquely painted, was practicing sorcery on a sick baby, hoping to take over the position and benefits of Rabba Kega. Tonight, the old witch-doctor's women would wail and lament. Tomorrow, he would be forgotten. Such is life, such is fame, such is power—whether in the heart of the world’s greatest civilization or deep in the dark, primeval jungle. Always, everywhere, man is man, and he hasn’t changed much beneath his surface since he scurried into a hole between two rocks to escape the tyrannosaurus six million years ago.
The morning following the disappearance of Rabba Kega, the warriors set out with Mbonga, the chief, to examine the trap they had set for Numa. Long before they reached the cage, they heard the roaring of a great lion and guessed that they had made a successful bag, so it was with shouts of joy that they approached the spot where they should find their captive.
The morning after Rabba Kega disappeared, the warriors set out with Mbonga, the chief, to check the trap they had set for Numa. Long before they got to the cage, they heard a lion roaring and figured they had caught something, so they approached the spot where they expected to find their captive, shouting with joy.
Yes! there he was, a great, magnificent specimen—a huge, black-maned lion. The warriors were frantic with delight. They leaped into the air and uttered savage cries—hoarse victory cries, and then they came closer, and the cries died upon their lips, and their eyes went wide so that the whites showed all around their irises, and their pendulous lower lips drooped with their drooping jaws. They drew back in terror at the sight within the cage—the mauled and mutilated corpse of what had, yesterday, been Rabba Kega, the witch-doctor.
Yes! There he was, a stunning, magnificent sight—a massive lion with a black mane. The warriors were ecstatic with joy. They jumped into the air and let out fierce shouts—rough victory cries. Then they got closer, and the shouts faded from their lips, their eyes widened so much that the whites showed all around their irises, and their hanging lower lips drooped with their sagging jaws. They recoiled in fear at the sight inside the cage—the battered and maimed body of what had, just yesterday, been Rabba Kega, the witch-doctor.
The captured lion had been too angry and frightened to feed upon the body of his kill; but he had vented upon it much of his rage, until it was a frightful thing to behold.
The captured lion had been too angry and scared to eat the body of his kill; but he had unleashed much of his rage on it, until it was a terrifying sight.
From his perch in a near-by tree Tarzan of the Apes, Lord Greystoke, looked down upon the black warriors and grinned. Once again his self-pride in his ability as a practical joker asserted itself. It had lain dormant for some time following the painful mauling he had received that time he leaped among the apes of Kerchak clothed in the skin of Numa; but this joke was a decided success.
From his spot in a nearby tree, Tarzan of the Apes, Lord Greystoke, looked down at the black warriors and grinned. Once again, his pride in his skills as a practical joker came to life. It had been quiet for a while after the painful beating he got when he jumped in among Kerchak's apes dressed in Numa's skin; but this joke was definitely a hit.
After a few moments of terror, the blacks came closer to the cage, rage taking the place of fear—rage and curiosity. How had Rabba Kega happened to be in the cage? Where was the kid? There was no sign nor remnant of the original bait. They looked closely and they saw, to their horror, that the corpse of their erstwhile fellow was bound with the very cord with which they had secured the kid. Who could have done this thing? They looked at one another.
After a few moments of terror, the people moved closer to the cage, their fear replaced by rage and curiosity. How did Rabba Kega end up in the cage? Where was the kid? There was no trace or hint of the original bait. They examined the scene closely and, to their horror, realized that the corpse of their former companion was tied up with the very cord they had used to secure the kid. Who could have done this? They glanced at each other.
Tubuto was the first to speak. He had come hopefully out with the expedition that morning. Somewhere he might find evidence of the death of Rabba Kega. Now he had found it, and he was the first to find an explanation.
Tubuto was the first to speak. He had set out hopefully with the expedition that morning. Somewhere he might find proof of Rabba Kega's death. Now he had found it, and he was the first to come up with an explanation.
“The white devil-god,” he whispered. “It is the work of the white devil-god!”
“The white devil-god,” he whispered. “It’s the work of the white devil-god!”
No one contradicted Tubuto, for, indeed, who else could it have been but the great, hairless ape they all so feared? And so their hatred of Tarzan increased again with an increased fear of him. And Tarzan sat in his tree and hugged himself.
No one challenged Tubuto because, honestly, who else could it be but the huge, hairless ape they all dreaded? So their hatred for Tarzan grew even more along with their fear of him. And Tarzan sat in his tree, feeling pleased with himself.
No one there felt sorrow because of the death of Rabba Kega; but each of the blacks experienced a personal fear of the ingenious mind which might discover for any of them a death equally horrible to that which the witch-doctor had suffered. It was a subdued and thoughtful company which dragged the captive lion along the broad elephant path back to the village of Mbonga, the chief.
No one there was sad about the death of Rabba Kega; however, each of the locals felt a personal fear of the clever mind that could find a brutal end for any of them, just like the witch-doctor had faced. It was a quiet and contemplative group that dragged the captive lion along the wide elephant trail back to the village of Mbonga, the chief.
And it was with a sigh of relief that they finally rolled it into the village and closed the gates behind them. Each had experienced the sensation of being spied upon from the moment they left the spot where the trap had been set, though none had seen or heard aught to give tangible food to his fears.
And they let out a sigh of relief when they finally rolled into the village and closed the gates behind them. Each of them had felt like they were being watched from the moment they left the place where the trap had been set, even though none had seen or heard anything that could confirm their fears.
At the sight of the body within the cage with the lion, the women and children of the village set up a most frightful lamentation, working themselves into a joyous hysteria which far transcended the happy misery derived by their more civilized prototypes who make a business of dividing their time between the movies and the neighborhood funerals of friends and strangers—especially strangers.
At the sight of the body in the cage with the lion, the women and children of the village let out a terrible wail, getting caught up in a joyful hysteria that went way beyond the bittersweet feelings experienced by their more civilized counterparts, who divide their time between movies and attending the funerals of friends and strangers—especially strangers.
From a tree overhanging the palisade, Tarzan watched all that passed within the village. He saw the frenzied women tantalizing the great lion with sticks and stones. The cruelty of the blacks toward a captive always induced in Tarzan a feeling of angry contempt for the Gomangani. Had he attempted to analyze this feeling he would have found it difficult, for during all his life he had been accustomed to sights of suffering and cruelty. He, himself, was cruel. All the beasts of the jungle were cruel; but the cruelty of the blacks was of a different order. It was the cruelty of wanton torture of the helpless, while the cruelty of Tarzan and the other beasts was the cruelty of necessity or of passion.
From a tree hanging over the palisade, Tarzan watched everything happening in the village. He saw the frantic women taunting the great lion with sticks and stones. The cruelty of the villagers towards a captive always sparked in Tarzan a feeling of angry contempt for the Gomangani. If he tried to analyze this feeling, he would have found it difficult, because throughout his life, he had been exposed to scenes of suffering and cruelty. He himself was cruel. All the animals in the jungle were cruel; but the cruelty of the villagers was different. It was the cruelty of wanton torture of the helpless, while the cruelty of Tarzan and the other animals was the cruelty of necessity or passion.
Perhaps, had he known it, he might have credited this feeling of repugnance at the sight of unnecessary suffering to heredity—to the germ of British love of fair play which had been bequeathed to him by his father and his mother; but, of course, he did not know, since he still believed that his mother had been Kala, the great ape.
Perhaps, if he had been aware, he might have thought this feeling of disgust at the sight of unnecessary suffering was due to his upbringing—the instinct for British fair play passed down from his parents. But, of course, he didn’t know this, as he still believed that his mother had been Kala, the great ape.
And just in proportion as his anger rose against the Gomangani his savage sympathy went out to Numa, the lion, for, though Numa was his lifetime enemy, there was neither bitterness nor contempt in Tarzan’s sentiments toward him. In the ape-man’s mind, therefore, the determination formed to thwart the blacks and liberate the lion; but he must accomplish this in some way which would cause the Gomangani the greatest chagrin and discomfiture.
And as his anger grew toward the Gomangani, his wild sympathy went out to Numa, the lion. Even though Numa was his lifelong enemy, Tarzan felt no bitterness or contempt for him. In Tarzan’s mind, he decided to stop the black men and free the lion, but he needed to do it in a way that would cause the Gomangani the most embarrassment and discomfort.
As he squatted there watching the proceeding beneath him, he saw the warriors seize upon the cage once more and drag it between two huts. Tarzan knew that it would remain there now until evening, and that the blacks were planning a feast and orgy in celebration of their capture. When he saw that two warriors were placed beside the cage, and that these drove off the women and children and young men who would have eventually tortured Numa to death, he knew that the lion would be safe until he was needed for the evening’s entertainment, when he would be more cruelly and scientifically tortured for the edification of the entire tribe.
As he crouched there watching what was happening below him, he saw the warriors grab the cage again and pull it between two huts. Tarzan knew it would stay there until evening and that the locals were planning a feast and party to celebrate their capture. When he noticed that two warriors were stationed next to the cage, driving away the women, children, and young men who would have eventually tortured Numa to death, he realized that the lion would be safe until he was needed for the night’s entertainment, when he would be subjected to even more cruel and systematic torture for the city's entertainment.
Now Tarzan preferred to bait the blacks in as theatric a manner as his fertile imagination could evolve. He had some half-formed conception of their superstitious fears and of their especial dread of night, and so he decided to wait until darkness fell and the blacks partially worked to hysteria by their dancing and religious rites before he took any steps toward the freeing of Numa. In the meantime, he hoped, an idea adequate to the possibilities of the various factors at hand would occur to him. Nor was it long before one did.
Now Tarzan liked to provoke the locals in as dramatic a way as his vivid imagination could come up with. He had a vague understanding of their superstitious fears and their particular fear of the night, so he decided to wait until darkness fell and the locals were somewhat worked up into a frenzy by their dancing and religious ceremonies before he took any action to free Numa. In the meantime, he hoped that a plan that fit the various factors at play would come to him. It didn't take long for one to do so.
He had swung off through the jungle to search for food when the plan came to him. At first it made him smile a little and then look dubious, for he still retained a vivid memory of the dire results that had followed the carrying out of a very wonderful idea along almost identical lines, yet he did not abandon his intention, and a moment later, food temporarily forgotten, he was swinging through the middle terraces in rapid flight toward the stamping ground of the tribe of Kerchak, the great ape.
He had swung off through the jungle to look for food when the idea hit him. At first, it made him smile a little, then he felt unsure because he still remembered the terrible consequences that had followed a similar brilliant idea. However, he didn’t give up on his plan, and a moment later, food temporarily forgotten, he was swinging through the middle terraces in a hurry toward the territory of the tribe of Kerchak, the great ape.
As was his wont, he alighted in the midst of the little band without announcing his approach save by a hideous scream just as he sprang from a branch above them. Fortunate are the apes of Kerchak that their kind is not subject to heart failure, for the methods of Tarzan subjected them to one severe shock after another, nor could they ever accustom themselves to the ape-man’s peculiar style of humor.
As he usually did, he dropped down into the middle of the small group without warning, letting out a terrifying scream right as he jumped from a branch above them. The apes of Kerchak are lucky that their species isn’t prone to heart problems because Tarzan’s antics put them through one shocking moment after another, and they could never get used to the ape-man's unusual sense of humor.
Now, when they saw who it was they merely snarled and grumbled angrily for a moment and then resumed their feeding or their napping which he had interrupted, and he, having had his little joke, made his way to the hollow tree where he kept his treasures hid from the inquisitive eyes and fingers of his fellows and the mischievous little manus. Here he withdrew a closely rolled hide—the hide of Numa with the head on; a clever bit of primitive curing and mounting, which had once been the property of the witch-doctor, Rabba Kega, until Tarzan had stolen it from the village.
Now, when they saw who it was, they just snarled and grumbled angrily for a moment before going back to eating or napping, which he had interrupted. Having had his little joke, he headed to the hollow tree where he kept his treasures hidden from the curious eyes and fingers of his fellow creatures and the mischievous little hands. Here, he took out a tightly rolled hide—the hide of Numa with the head still attached; a clever piece of primitive tanning and mounting that had once belonged to the witch-doctor, Rabba Kega, until Tarzan had stolen it from the village.
With this he made his way back through the jungle toward the village of the blacks, stopping to hunt and feed upon the way, and, in the afternoon, even napping for an hour, so that it was already dusk when he entered the great tree which overhung the palisade and gave him a view of the entire village. He saw that Numa was still alive and that the guards were even dozing beside the cage. A lion is no great novelty to a black man in the lion country, and the first keen edge of their desire to worry the brute having worn off, the villagers paid little or no attention to the great cat, preferring now to await the grand event of the night.
With this, he made his way back through the jungle toward the black villagers, stopping to hunt and eat along the way. In the afternoon, he even took a nap for an hour, so it was already getting dark when he entered the large tree that overlooked the palisade and gave him a view of the entire village. He saw that Numa was still alive and that the guards were even dozing next to the cage. A lion isn't much of a novelty to a black man in lion country, and since the initial thrill of teasing the beast had worn off, the villagers paid little or no attention to the big cat, choosing instead to wait for the big event of the night.
Nor was it long after dark before the festivities commenced. To the beating of tom-toms, a lone warrior, crouched half doubled, leaped into the firelight in the center of a great circle of other warriors, behind whom stood or squatted the women and the children. The dancer was painted and armed for the hunt and his movements and gestures suggested the search for the spoor of game. Bending low, sometimes resting for a moment on one knee, he searched the ground for signs of the quarry; again he poised, statuesque, listening. The warrior was young and lithe and graceful; he was full-muscled and arrow-straight. The firelight glistened upon his ebon body and brought out into bold relief the grotesque designs painted upon his face, breasts, and abdomen.
Nor was it long after dark before the festivities began. To the rhythm of tom-toms, a lone warrior, crouched partially doubled, jumped into the firelight in the center of a large circle of other warriors, behind whom stood or sat the women and children. The dancer was painted and equipped for the hunt, and his movements and gestures suggested the search for the trail of game. Bending low, sometimes pausing for a moment on one knee, he scanned the ground for signs of the prey; again he stood still, listening intently. The warrior was young, flexible, and graceful; he was muscular and perfectly straight. The firelight shimmered on his dark body and highlighted the striking designs painted on his face, chest, and abdomen.
Presently he bent low to the earth, then leaped high in air. Every line of face and body showed that he had struck the scent. Immediately he leaped toward the circle of warriors about him, telling them of his find and summoning them to the hunt. It was all in pantomime; but so truly done that even Tarzan could follow it all to the least detail.
Presently, he crouched down to the ground and then jumped high into the air. Every feature on his face and body revealed that he had picked up the scent. He immediately jumped toward the group of warriors around him, informing them of his discovery and urging them to join the hunt. It was all done through gestures, but so accurately performed that even Tarzan could understand every detail.
He saw the other warriors grasp their hunting spears and leap to their feet to join in the graceful, stealthy “stalking dance.” It was very interesting; but Tarzan realized that if he was to carry his design to a successful conclusion he must act quickly. He had seen these dances before and knew that after the stalk would come the game at bay and then the kill, during which Numa would be surrounded by warriors, and unapproachable.
He saw the other warriors grab their hunting spears and jump to their feet to join in the smooth, stealthy "stalking dance." It was fascinating; but Tarzan understood that if he wanted to successfully finish his plan, he needed to act fast. He had watched these dances before and knew that after the stalking came the game at bay and then the kill, during which Numa would be surrounded by warriors and unreachable.
With the lion’s skin under one arm the ape-man dropped to the ground in the dense shadows beneath the tree and then circled behind the huts until he came out directly in the rear of the cage, in which Numa paced nervously to and fro. The cage was now unguarded, the two warriors having left it to take their places among the other dancers.
With the lion's skin under one arm, the ape-man dropped to the ground in the thick shadows beneath the tree and then moved around behind the huts until he appeared directly in the back of the cage, where Numa paced anxiously back and forth. The cage was now unguarded, as the two warriors had left it to join the other dancers.
Behind the cage Tarzan adjusted the lion’s skin about him, just as he had upon that memorable occasion when the apes of Kerchak, failing to pierce his disguise, had all but slain him. Then, on hands and knees, he crept forward, emerged from between the two huts and stood a few paces back of the dusky audience, whose whole attention was centered upon the dancers before them.
Behind the cage, Tarzan adjusted the lion’s skin around him, just like he did that unforgettable time when the apes of Kerchak, unable to see through his disguise, nearly killed him. Then, on his hands and knees, he crawled forward, came out from between the two huts, and stood a few steps behind the dark-skinned audience, whose complete attention was focused on the dancers in front of them.
Tarzan saw that the blacks had now worked themselves to a proper pitch of nervous excitement to be ripe for the lion. In a moment the ring of spectators would break at a point nearest the caged lion and the victim would be rolled into the center of the circle. It was for this moment that Tarzan waited.
Tarzan noticed that the crowd had worked themselves into a significant state of nervous excitement, making them ready for the lion. Soon the circle of spectators would part at the spot closest to the caged lion, and the victim would be pushed into the center of the ring. This was the moment Tarzan had been waiting for.
At last it came. A signal was given by Mbonga, the chief, at which the women and children immediately in front of Tarzan rose and moved to one side, leaving a broad path opening toward the caged lion. At the same instant Tarzan gave voice to the low, coughing roar of an angry lion and slunk slowly forward through the open lane toward the frenzied dancers.
At last it happened. A signal was given by Mbonga, the chief, and the women and children right in front of Tarzan quickly stood up and moved aside, creating a wide path leading to the caged lion. At the same moment, Tarzan let out a low, gruff roar like an angry lion and quietly slinked forward through the open lane toward the wild dancers.
A woman saw him first and screamed. Instantly there was a panic in the immediate vicinity of the ape-man. The strong light from the fire fell full upon the lion head and the blacks leaped to the conclusion, as Tarzan had known they would, that their captive had escaped his cage.
A woman saw him first and screamed. Instantly, panic erupted around the ape-man. The bright light from the fire illuminated the lion head, and the locals jumped to the conclusion, as Tarzan had anticipated they would, that their captive had broken free from his cage.
With another roar, Tarzan moved forward. The dancing warriors paused but an instant. They had been hunting a lion securely housed within a strong cage, and now that he was at liberty among them, an entirely different aspect was placed upon the matter. Their nerves were not attuned to this emergency. The women and children already had fled to the questionable safety of the nearest huts, and the warriors were not long in following their example, so that presently Tarzan was left in sole possession of the village street.
With another roar, Tarzan moved forward. The dancing warriors paused for just a moment. They had been hunting a lion securely locked away in a strong cage, and now that it was free among them, the situation looked completely different. They weren't prepared for this emergency. The women and children had already run off to the questionable safety of the nearest huts, and the warriors quickly followed suit, leaving Tarzan alone in the village street.
But not for long. Nor did he wish to be left thus long alone. It would not comport with his scheme. Presently a head peered forth from a near-by hut, and then another and another until a score or more of warriors were looking out upon him, waiting for his next move—waiting for the lion to charge or to attempt to escape from the village.
But not for long. He also didn't want to be left alone like that for too long. It wouldn't fit his plan. Soon, a head popped out from a nearby hut, followed by another and another, until a score or more of warriors were looking out at him, waiting for his next move—waiting for the lion to charge or try to escape from the village.
Their spears were ready in their hands against either a charge or a bolt for freedom, and then the lion rose erect upon its hind legs, the tawny skin dropped from it and there stood revealed before them in the firelight the straight young figure of the white devil-god.
Their spears were ready in their hands for either a charge or a fight for freedom, and then the lion stood up on its hind legs, its tawny skin falling away, revealing in the firelight the straight young figure of the white devil-god.
For an instant the blacks were too astonished to act. They feared this apparition fully as much as they did Numa, yet they would gladly have slain the thing could they quickly enough have gathered together their wits; but fear and superstition and a natural mental density held them paralyzed while the ape-man stooped and gathered up the lion skin. They saw him turn then and walk back into the shadows at the far end of the village. Not until then did they gain courage to pursue him, and when they had come in force, with brandished spears and loud war cries, the quarry was gone.
For a moment, the villagers were too shocked to move. They were as scared of this figure as they were of Numa, but they would have happily attacked it if they could have gathered their thoughts quickly enough; however, fear, superstition, and a natural slowness of mind kept them frozen while the ape-man bent down and picked up the lion skin. They watched him turn and walk back into the shadows at the far end of the village. Only then did they find the courage to chase him, but by the time they gathered in numbers, waving their spears and shouting war cries, the figure was gone.
Not an instant did Tarzan pause in the tree. Throwing the skin over a branch he leaped again into the village upon the opposite side of the great bole, and diving into the shadow of a hut, ran quickly to where lay the caged lion. Springing to the top of the cage he pulled upon the cord which raised the door, and a moment later a great lion in the prime of his strength and vigor leaped out into the village.
Not for a second did Tarzan stop in the tree. Throwing the skin over a branch, he leaped into the village on the other side of the massive trunk and dove into the shadow of a hut, quickly running to where the caged lion was. Jumping on top of the cage, he pulled the cord that raised the door, and a moment later, a powerful lion in its prime leaped out into the village.
The warriors, returning from a futile search for Tarzan, saw him step into the firelight. Ah! there was the devil-god again, up to his old trick. Did he think he could twice fool the men of Mbonga, the chief, the same way in so short a time? They would show him! For long they had waited for such an opportunity to rid themselves forever of this fearsome jungle demon. As one they rushed forward with raised spears.
The warriors, coming back from a pointless hunt for Tarzan, saw him step into the firelight. Ah! there was that devil-god again, up to his old tricks. Did he think he could fool the men of Mbonga, the chief, the same way twice in such a short time? They would show him! They had long been waiting for a chance to get rid of this terrifying jungle demon for good. As one, they charged forward with raised spears.
The women and the children came from the huts to witness the slaying of the devil-god. The lion turned blazing eyes upon them and then swung about toward the advancing warriors.
The women and children left the huts to watch the killing of the devil-god. The lion fixed its fiery gaze on them and then turned towards the approaching warriors.
With shouts of savage joy and triumph they came toward him, menacing him with their spears. The devil-god was theirs!
With shouts of wild joy and triumph, they approached him, threatening him with their spears. The devil-god was theirs!
And then, with a frightful roar, Numa, the lion, charged.
And then, with a terrifying roar, Numa the lion charged.
The men of Mbonga, the chief, met Numa with ready spears and screams of raillery. In a solid mass of muscled ebony they waited the coming of the devil-god; yet beneath their brave exteriors lurked a haunting fear that all might not be quite well with them—that this strange creature could yet prove invulnerable to their weapons and inflict upon them full punishment for their effrontery. The charging lion was all too lifelike—they saw that in the brief instant of the charge; but beneath the tawny hide they knew was hid the soft flesh of a white man, and how could that withstand the assault of many war spears?
The men of Mbonga, the chief, faced Numa with ready spears and shouts of mockery. In a solid group of strong, dark-skinned warriors, they waited for the arrival of the devil-god; yet beneath their brave fronts was a lurking fear that things might not be as they seemed—that this strange creature could still turn out to be invulnerable to their weapons and deal severe consequences for their boldness. The charging lion looked all too real—they realized that in the split second of the charge; but beneath the tawny fur, they knew there was the soft flesh of a white man, and how could that stand up to the attack of many war spears?
In their forefront stood a huge young warrior in the full arrogance of his might and his youth. Afraid? Not he! He laughed as Numa bore down upon him; he laughed and couched his spear, setting the point for the broad breast. And then the lion was upon him. A great paw swept away the heavy war spear, splintering it as the hand of man might splinter a dry twig.
In front of them was a huge young warrior, completely confident in his strength and youth. Afraid? Not at all! He laughed as Numa charged at him; he laughed and positioned his spear, aiming it at the lion's broad chest. And then the lion was right on him. A massive paw knocked the heavy war spear aside, breaking it like a dry twig in a person's hand.
Down went the black, his skull crushed by another blow. And then the lion was in the midst of the warriors, clawing and tearing to right and left. Not for long did they stand their ground; but a dozen men were mauled before the others made good their escape from those frightful talons and gleaming fangs.
Down went the black, his skull crushed by another hit. Then the lion was in the middle of the warriors, clawing and tearing to the right and left. They didn't hold their ground for long; a dozen men were injured before the others managed to escape from those terrifying claws and shining fangs.
In terror the villagers fled hither and thither. No hut seemed a sufficiently secure asylum with Numa ranging within the palisade. From one to another fled the frightened blacks, while in the center of the village Numa stood glaring and growling above his kills.
In terror, the villagers ran here and there. No hut seemed safe enough with Numa roaming inside the palisade. The scared villagers darted from one spot to another, while in the center of the village, Numa stood glaring and growling over his kills.
At last a tribesman flung wide the gates of the village and sought safety amid the branches of the forest trees beyond. Like sheep his fellows followed him, until the lion and his dead remained alone in the village.
At last, a tribesman swung open the village gates and rushed for safety among the branches of the trees in the forest beyond. Like sheep, his companions followed him, leaving only the lion and his dead behind in the village.
From the nearer trees the men of Mbonga saw the lion lower his great head and seize one of his victims by the shoulder and then with slow and stately tread move down the village street past the open gates and on into the jungle. They saw and shuddered, and from another tree Tarzan of the Apes saw and smiled.
From the nearby trees, the men of Mbonga watched as the lion dropped his massive head and grabbed one of his victims by the shoulder. Then, with a slow and dignified walk, he made his way down the village street, past the open gates, and into the jungle. They watched in horror, while from another tree, Tarzan of the Apes observed and smiled.
A full hour elapsed after the lion had disappeared with his feast before the blacks ventured down from the trees and returned to their village. Wide eyes rolled from side to side, and naked flesh contracted more to the chill of fear than to the chill of the jungle night.
A full hour passed after the lion took off with its meal before the villagers dared to come down from the trees and head back to their village. Their wide eyes darted around nervously, and their exposed skin shivered more from fear than from the coolness of the jungle night.
“It was he all the time,” murmured one. “It was the devil-god.”
“It was him all along,” whispered one. “It was the devil-god.”
“He changed himself from a lion to a man, and back again into a lion,” whispered another.
“He transformed himself from a lion to a man, and then back into a lion again,” whispered another.
“And he dragged Mweeza into the forest and is eating him,” said a third, shuddering.
“And he pulled Mweeza into the woods and is eating him,” said a third, shuddering.
“We are no longer safe here,” wailed a fourth. “Let us take our belongings and search for another village site far from the haunts of the wicked devil-god.”
“We're not safe here anymore,” cried a fourth. “Let’s grab our things and look for another village location far away from the lair of the evil devil-god.”
But with morning came renewed courage, so that the experiences of the preceding evening had little other effect than to increase their fear of Tarzan and strengthen their belief in his supernatural origin.
But with morning came renewed courage, so the experiences of the previous evening had little effect other than to increase their fear of Tarzan and strengthen their belief in his supernatural origins.
And thus waxed the fame and the power of the ape-man in the mysterious haunts of the savage jungle where he ranged, mightiest of beasts because of the man-mind which directed his giant muscles and his flawless courage.
And so the fame and power of the ape-man grew in the mysterious depths of the savage jungle where he roamed, the mightiest of beasts because of the human mind that guided his massive muscles and unwavering courage.
CHAPTER XII
Tarzan Rescues the Moon
The moon shone down out of a cloudless sky—a huge, swollen moon that seemed so close to earth that one might wonder that she did not brush the crooning tree tops. It was night, and Tarzan was abroad in the jungle—Tarzan, the ape-man; mighty fighter, mighty hunter. Why he swung through the dark shadows of the somber forest he could not have told you. It was not that he was hungry—he had fed well this day, and in a safe cache were the remains of his kill, ready against the coming of a new appetite. Perhaps it was the very joy of living that urged him from his arboreal couch to pit his muscles and his senses against the jungle night, and then, too, Tarzan always was goaded by an intense desire to know.
The moon lit up the clear sky—a huge, glowing moon that felt so close to earth you might think it could brush the treetops. It was night, and Tarzan was out in the jungle—Tarzan, the ape-man; a fierce fighter, fierce hunter. Why he moved through the dark shadows of the gloomy forest, he couldn’t say. It wasn’t out of hunger—he had eaten well that day, and he had the leftovers of his kill stored away, ready for when he got hungry again. Maybe it was just the joy of living that drove him from his treetop bed to test his muscles and senses against the night of the jungle. Plus, Tarzan was always motivated by a strong desire to learn.
The jungle which is presided over by Kudu, the sun, is a very different jungle from that of Goro, the moon. The diurnal jungle has its own aspect—its own lights and shades, its own birds, its own blooms, its own beasts; its noises are the noises of the day. The lights and shades of the nocturnal jungle are as different as one might imagine the lights and shades of another world to differ from those of our world; its beasts, its blooms, and its birds are not those of the jungle of Kudu, the sun.
The jungle ruled by Kudu, the sun, is completely different from Goro's jungle, the moon. The daytime jungle has its own vibe—its own light and shadow, its own birds, its own flowers, its own animals; its sounds are the sounds of the day. The light and shadow of the nighttime jungle are as unlike our world as you could imagine; its animals, flowers, and birds are not the same as those in Kudu's jungle, the sun.
Because of these differences Tarzan loved to investigate the jungle by night. Not only was the life another life; but it was richer in numbers and in romance; it was richer in dangers, too, and to Tarzan of the Apes danger was the spice of life. And the noises of the jungle night—the roar of the lion, the scream of the leopard, the hideous laughter of Dango, the hyena, were music to the ears of the ape-man.
Because of these differences, Tarzan loved to explore the jungle at night. Not only was life different, but it was also more abundant and full of adventure; it also had more dangers, and to Tarzan of the Apes, danger was the thrill of life. The sounds of the jungle at night—the roar of the lion, the scream of the leopard, the terrifying laughter of Dango the hyena—were music to the ape-man's ears.
The soft padding of unseen feet, the rustling of leaves and grasses to the passage of fierce beasts, the sheen of opalesque eyes flaming through the dark, the million sounds which proclaimed the teeming life that one might hear and scent, though seldom see, constituted the appeal of the nocturnal jungle to Tarzan.
The quiet steps of hidden creatures, the sound of leaves and grass moving as powerful animals passed by, the glow of iridescent eyes flickering in the shadows, the countless sounds that announced the vibrant life that one could hear and smell, though rarely see, made the nighttime jungle so appealing to Tarzan.
Tonight he had swung a wide circle—toward the east first and then toward the south, and now he was rounding back again into the north. His eyes, his ears and his keen nostrils were ever on the alert. Mingled with the sounds he knew, there were strange sounds—weird sounds which he never heard until after Kudu had sought his lair below the far edge of the big water—sounds which belonged to Goro, the moon—and to the mysterious period of Goro’s supremacy. These sounds often caused Tarzan profound speculation. They baffled him because he thought that he knew his jungle so well that there could be nothing within it unfamiliar to him. Sometimes he thought that as colors and forms appeared to differ by night from their familiar daylight aspects, so sounds altered with the passage of Kudu and the coming of Goro, and these thoughts roused within his brain a vague conjecture that perhaps Goro and Kudu influenced these changes. And what more natural that eventually he came to attribute to the sun and the moon personalities as real as his own? The sun was a living creature and ruled the day. The moon, endowed with brains and miraculous powers, ruled the night.
Tonight he had made a wide loop—first heading east, then south, and now he was turning back north. His eyes, ears, and sharp sense of smell were always on the lookout. Alongside the familiar sounds, there were strange noises—odd sounds he hadn’t heard until after Kudu had gone to his refuge beyond the far edge of the large body of water—sounds that belonged to Goro, the moon—and to the strange time when Goro was in charge. These sounds often led Tarzan into deep thought. They puzzled him because he believed he knew his jungle so well that nothing in it could be unfamiliar to him. Sometimes he wondered if, just like colors and shapes seemed different at night compared to their usual daylight versions, sounds also changed with the passage of Kudu and the arrival of Goro, and these thoughts stirred a vague idea in his mind that maybe Goro and Kudu had an effect on these changes. It made sense that eventually he came to see the sun and the moon as having personalities just as real as his own. The sun was a living being that ruled the day. The moon, gifted with intelligence and amazing powers, ruled the night.
Thus functioned the untrained man-mind groping through the dark night of ignorance for an explanation of the things he could not touch or smell or hear and of the great, unknown powers of nature which he could not see.
Thus operated the untrained human mind, searching through the dark night of ignorance for an explanation of the things it could neither touch, smell, nor hear, and of the vast, unknown forces of nature that it could not see.
As Tarzan swung north again upon his wide circle the scent of the Gomangani came to his nostrils, mixed with the acrid odor of wood smoke. The ape-man moved quickly in the direction from which the scent was borne down to him upon the gentle night wind. Presently the ruddy sheen of a great fire filtered through the foliage to him ahead, and when Tarzan came to a halt in the trees near it, he saw a party of half a dozen black warriors huddled close to the blaze. It was evidently a hunting party from the village of Mbonga, the chief, caught out in the jungle after dark. In a rude circle about them they had constructed a thorn boma which, with the aid of the fire, they apparently hoped would discourage the advances of the larger carnivora.
As Tarzan swung north again on his wide path, the scent of the Gomangani reached his nose, mixed with the sharp smell of wood smoke. The ape-man quickly moved toward the source of the scent carried by the gentle night breeze. Soon, the warm glow of a big fire appeared through the trees ahead, and when Tarzan stopped in the branches nearby, he spotted a group of six black warriors gathered close to the flames. It was clearly a hunting party from the village of Mbonga, the chief, caught out in the jungle after dark. They had built a thorn boma in a rough circle around them, which, along with the fire, they hoped would keep larger predators at bay.
That hope was not conviction was evidenced by the very palpable terror in which they crouched, wide-eyed and trembling, for already Numa and Sabor were moaning through the jungle toward them. There were other creatures, too, in the shadows beyond the firelight. Tarzan could see their yellow eyes flaming there. The blacks saw them and shivered. Then one arose and grasping a burning branch from the fire hurled it at the eyes, which immediately disappeared. The black sat down again. Tarzan watched and saw that it was several minutes before the eyes began to reappear in twos and fours.
That hope wasn't really belief, as shown by the obvious fear they felt, crouched down, wide-eyed and trembling, because Numa and Sabor were already moaning through the jungle towards them. There were other creatures in the shadows beyond the firelight. Tarzan could see their yellow eyes glowing there. The blacks noticed them and shivered. Then one of them got up, grabbed a burning branch from the fire, and threw it at the eyes, which quickly vanished. The man sat back down again. Tarzan watched as it took several minutes for the eyes to start reappearing in pairs and groups.
Then came Numa, the lion, and Sabor, his mate. The other eyes scattered to right and left before the menacing growls of the great cats, and then the huge orbs of the man-eaters flamed alone out of the darkness. Some of the blacks threw themselves upon their faces and moaned; but he who before had hurled the burning branch now hurled another straight at the faces of the hungry lions, and they, too, disappeared as had the lesser lights before them. Tarzan was much interested. He saw a new reason for the nightly fires maintained by the blacks—a reason in addition to those connected with warmth and light and cooking. The beasts of the jungle feared fire, and so fire was, in a measure, a protection from them. Tarzan himself knew a certain awe of fire. Once he had, in investigating an abandoned fire in the village of the blacks, picked up a live coal. Since then he had maintained a respectful distance from such fires as he had seen. One experience had sufficed.
Then came Numa, the lion, and Sabor, his mate. The other eyes scattered to the right and left before the threatening growls of the big cats, and then the huge eyes of the man-eaters glowed alone out of the darkness. Some of the blacks fell to the ground and moaned; but the one who had previously thrown the burning branch now tossed another directly at the faces of the hungry lions, and they, too, vanished like the lesser lights before them. Tarzan was very interested. He saw a new reason for the nightly fires kept by the blacks—an additional reason besides warmth, light, and cooking. The jungle beasts feared fire, so it provided some protection against them. Tarzan himself had a certain respect for fire. Once, while examining an abandoned fire in the black village, he picked up a live coal. Since then, he had kept a respectful distance from any fires he had seen. One experience had been enough.
For a few minutes after the black hurled the firebrand no eyes appeared, though Tarzan could hear the soft padding of feet all about him. Then flashed once more the twin fire spots that marked the return of the lord of the jungle and a moment later, upon a slightly lower level, there appeared those of Sabor, his mate.
For a few minutes after the black threw the firebrand, no eyes were visible, even though Tarzan could hear the soft padding of feet all around him. Then, once again, the twin spots of fire marked the return of the lord of the jungle, and a moment later, on a slightly lower level, appeared those of Sabor, his mate.
For some time they remained fixed and unwavering—a constellation of fierce stars in the jungle night—then the male lion advanced slowly toward the boma, where all but a single black still crouched in trembling terror. When this lone guardian saw that Numa was again approaching, he threw another firebrand, and, as before, Numa retreated and with him Sabor, the lioness; but not so far, this time, nor for so long. Almost instantly they turned and began circling the boma, their eyes turning constantly toward the firelight, while low, throaty growls evidenced their increasing displeasure. Beyond the lions glowed the flaming eyes of the lesser satellites, until the black jungle was shot all around the black men’s camp with little spots of fire.
For a while, they stayed still and unyielding—a group of fierce stars in the jungle night—then the male lion slowly moved toward the enclosure, where all but one black man were crouched in trembling fear. When this lone guard saw Numa approaching again, he threw another firebrand, and, just like before, Numa retreated along with Sabor, the lioness; but this time, not as far, and not for as long. Almost immediately, they turned and started circling the enclosure, their eyes constantly fixated on the firelight, while low, growling sounds showed their growing annoyance. Beyond the lions, the glowing eyes of the lesser predators lit up the surroundings, making the dark jungle sparkle around the black men’s camp with little spots of fire.
Again and again the black warrior hurled his puny brands at the two big cats; but Tarzan noticed that Numa paid little or no attention to them after the first few retreats. The ape-man knew by Numa’s voice that the lion was hungry and surmised that he had made up his mind to feed upon a Gomangani; but would he dare a closer approach to the dreaded flames?
Again and again, the black warrior threw his small torches at the two large cats; but Tarzan noticed that Numa paid little or no attention to them after the first few retreats. The ape-man knew from Numa’s roar that the lion was hungry and guessed that he had decided to make a meal of a Gomangani; but would he risk getting closer to the feared flames?
Even as the thought was passing in Tarzan’s mind, Numa stopped his restless pacing and faced the boma. For a moment he stood motionless, except for the quick, nervous upcurving of his tail, then he walked deliberately forward, while Sabor moved restlessly to and fro where he had left her. The black man called to his comrades that the lion was coming, but they were too far gone in fear to do more than huddle closer together and moan more loudly than before.
Even as that thought crossed Tarzan's mind, Numa paused his restless pacing and faced the enclosure. For a moment, he stood still, except for the quick, nervous flick of his tail, then he walked forward deliberately, while Sabor moved anxiously back and forth where he had left her. The black man called out to his companions that the lion was approaching, but they were too paralyzed by fear to do anything more than huddle closer together and moan louder than before.
Seizing a blazing branch the man cast it straight into the face of the lion. There was an angry roar, followed by a swift charge. With a single bound the savage beast cleared the boma wall as, with almost equal agility, the warrior cleared it upon the opposite side and, chancing the dangers lurking in the darkness, bolted for the nearest tree.
Grabbing a flaming branch, the man threw it right into the lion's face. An angry roar erupted, followed by a quick charge. With a single leap, the fierce beast jumped over the boma wall just as the warrior skillfully jumped over it from the other side and, risking the dangers hidden in the darkness, sprinted towards the nearest tree.
Numa was out of the boma almost as soon as he was inside it; but as he went back over the low thorn wall, he took a screaming negro with him. Dragging his victim along the ground he walked back toward Sabor, the lioness, who joined him, and the two continued into the blackness, their savage growls mingling with the piercing shrieks of the doomed and terrified man.
Numa was out of the enclosure almost as soon as he entered it; but as he went back over the low thorn wall, he took a screaming man with him. Dragging his victim along the ground, he walked back toward Sabor, the lioness, who joined him, and the two continued into the darkness, their fierce growls mixing with the terrified screams of the doomed man.
At a little distance from the blaze the lions halted, there ensued a short succession of unusually vicious growls and roars, during which the cries and moans of the black man ceased—forever.
At a short distance from the fire, the lions stopped. There was a brief series of unusually aggressive growls and roars, during which the cries and moans of the black man stopped—forever.
Presently Numa reappeared in the firelight. He made a second trip into the boma and the former grisly tragedy was reenacted with another howling victim.
Presently, Numa reappeared in the firelight. He made a second trip into the enclosure, and the earlier gruesome tragedy played out again with another howling victim.
Tarzan rose and stretched lazily. The entertainment was beginning to bore him. He yawned and turned upon his way toward the clearing where the tribe would be sleeping in the encircling trees.
Tarzan got up and stretched leisurely. The entertainment was starting to bore him. He yawned and made his way toward the clearing where the tribe would be sleeping in the surrounding trees.
Yet even when he had found his familiar crotch and curled himself for slumber, he felt no desire to sleep. For a long time he lay awake thinking and dreaming. He looked up into the heavens and watched the moon and the stars. He wondered what they were and what power kept them from falling. His was an inquisitive mind. Always he had been full of questions concerning all that passed around him; but there never had been one to answer his questions. In childhood he had wanted to KNOW, and, denied almost all knowledge, he still, in manhood, was filled with the great, unsatisfied curiosity of a child.
Yet even after he found his usual spot and curled up to sleep, he had no desire to doze off. For a long time, he lay awake, thinking and dreaming. He gazed up at the sky and watched the moon and stars. He wondered what they were and what force kept them from falling. He had an inquisitive mind. He had always been full of questions about everything happening around him, but no one had ever answered his questions. As a child, he wanted to KNOW, and, lacking almost all knowledge, he still, as an adult, was filled with the deep, unfulfilled curiosity of a child.
He was never quite content merely to perceive that things happened—he desired to know WHY they happened. He wanted to know what made things go. The secret of life interested him immensely. The miracle of death he could not quite fathom. Upon innumerable occasions he had investigated the internal mechanism of his kills, and once or twice he had opened the chest cavity of victims in time to see the heart still pumping.
He was never really satisfied just to notice that things happened—he wanted to understand WHY they happened. He wanted to figure out what made things tick. The mystery of life fascinated him deeply. The enigma of death was something he couldn’t fully grasp. He had explored the inner workings of his kills countless times, and once or twice, he had opened the chest of his victims just in time to see their heart still beating.
He had learned from experience that a knife thrust through this organ brought immediate death nine times out of ten, while he might stab an antagonist innumerable times in other places without even disabling him. And so he had come to think of the heart, or, as he called it, “the red thing that breathes,” as the seat and origin of life.
He had learned from experience that a knife thrust into this organ caused instant death nine times out of ten, while he could stab an opponent countless times in other areas without even putting them out of action. And so he had come to see the heart, or as he referred to it, “the red thing that breathes,” as the source and center of life.
The brain and its functionings he did not comprehend at all. That his sense perceptions were transmitted to his brain and there translated, classified, and labeled was something quite beyond him. He thought that his fingers knew when they touched something, that his eyes knew when they saw, his ears when they heard, his nose when it scented.
The brain and how it works were completely beyond his understanding. He had no idea that his senses sent signals to his brain, where they were processed, organized, and identified. He believed that his fingers recognized what they felt, that his eyes understood what they saw, his ears knew when they heard, and his nose identified scents.
He considered his throat, epidermis, and the hairs of his head as the three principal seats of emotion. When Kala had been slain a peculiar choking sensation had possessed his throat; contact with Histah, the snake, imparted an unpleasant sensation to the skin of his whole body; while the approach of an enemy made the hairs on his scalp stand erect.
He thought of his throat, skin, and the hair on his head as the three main places where he felt emotions. When Kala was killed, he felt a strange choking sensation in his throat; touching Histah, the snake, gave him an uncomfortable feeling all over his skin; and when an enemy approached, the hair on his scalp stood on end.
Imagine, if you can, a child filled with the wonders of nature, bursting with queries and surrounded only by beasts of the jungle to whom his questionings were as strange as Sanskrit would have been. If he asked Gunto what made it rain, the big old ape would but gaze at him in dumb astonishment for an instant and then return to his interesting and edifying search for fleas; and when he questioned Mumga, who was very old and should have been very wise, but wasn’t, as to the reason for the closing of certain flowers after Kudu had deserted the sky, and the opening of others during the night, he was surprised to discover that Mumga had never noticed these interesting facts, though she could tell to an inch just where the fattest grubworm should be hiding.
Imagine, if you can, a child filled with the wonders of nature, bursting with questions and surrounded only by the jungle animals, who found his questions as puzzling as if he were speaking Sanskrit. If he asked Gunto what caused the rain, the big old ape would just look at him in dumb surprise for a moment and then go back to his fascinating and educational search for fleas. And when he asked Mumga, who was very old and should have been very wise, but wasn’t, why certain flowers closed up after Kudu left the sky and why others opened up at night, he was surprised to find out that Mumga had never noticed these interesting details, even though she could pinpoint exactly where the fattest grubworm was hiding.
To Tarzan these things were wonders. They appealed to his intellect and to his imagination. He saw the flowers close and open; he saw certain blooms which turned their faces always toward the sun; he saw leaves which moved when there was no breeze; he saw vines crawl like living things up the boles and over the branches of great trees; and to Tarzan of the Apes the flowers and the vines and the trees were living creatures. He often talked to them, as he talked to Goro, the moon, and Kudu, the sun, and always was he disappointed that they did not reply. He asked them questions; but they could not answer, though he knew that the whispering of the leaves was the language of the leaves—they talked with one another.
To Tarzan, these things were amazing. They sparked his intellect and imagination. He watched flowers open and close; he noticed certain blooms always turning their faces toward the sun; he observed leaves moving even when there was no wind; he saw vines crawling like living things up the trunks and over the branches of large trees; and to Tarzan of the Apes, the flowers, vines, and trees were like living beings. He often spoke to them, just as he talked to Goro, the moon, and Kudu, the sun, and he was always disappointed that they didn’t respond. He asked them questions, but they couldn’t answer, even though he knew that the rustling of the leaves was the leaves' way of communicating—they conversed with each other.
The wind he attributed to the trees and grasses. He thought that they swayed themselves to and fro, creating the wind. In no other way could he account for this phenomenon. The rain he finally attributed to the stars, the moon, and the sun; but his hypothesis was entirely unlovely and unpoetical.
The wind he thought came from the trees and grasses. He believed they moved back and forth, making the wind. He couldn't explain this phenomenon any other way. He eventually thought the rain was due to the stars, the moon, and the sun; but his theory was just plain and unpoetic.
Tonight as Tarzan lay thinking, there sprang to his fertile imagination an explanation of the stars and the moon. He became quite excited about it. Taug was sleeping in a near-by crotch. Tarzan swung over beside him.
Tonight, as Tarzan lay deep in thought, he came up with an explanation for the stars and the moon. He got really excited about it. Taug was sleeping in a nearby branch. Tarzan swung over next to him.
“Taug!” he cried. Instantly the great bull was awake and bristling, sensing danger from the nocturnal summons. “Look, Taug!” exclaimed Tarzan, pointing toward the stars. “See the eyes of Numa and Sabor, of Sheeta and Dango. They wait around Goro to leap in upon him for their kill. See the eyes and the nose and the mouth of Goro. And the light that shines upon his face is the light of the great fire he has built to frighten away Numa and Sabor and Dango and Sheeta.
“Taug!” he shouted. Immediately, the big bull was alert and on edge, sensing danger from the nighttime call. “Look, Taug!” Tarzan pointed at the stars. “See the eyes of Numa and Sabor, of Sheeta and Dango. They are lurking around Goro, ready to pounce on him for their kill. Look at the eyes, the nose, and the mouth of Goro. And the light on his face is from the big fire he's made to keep Numa, Sabor, Dango, and Sheeta away.”
“All about him are the eyes, Taug, you can see them! But they do not come very close to the fire—there are few eyes close to Goro. They fear the fire! It is the fire that saves Goro from Numa. Do you see them, Taug? Some night Numa will be very hungry and very angry—then he will leap over the thorn bushes which encircle Goro and we will have no more light after Kudu seeks his lair—the night will be black with the blackness that comes when Goro is lazy and sleeps late into the night, or when he wanders through the skies by day, forgetting the jungle and its people.”
“All around him are the eyes, Taug, you can see them! But they don’t come too close to the fire—there are few eyes near Goro. They fear the fire! It’s the fire that keeps Goro safe from Numa. Do you see them, Taug? One night Numa will be really hungry and really angry—then he will jump over the thorn bushes that surround Goro and we’ll have no more light after Kudu finds his hideout—the night will be dark with the darkness that comes when Goro is lazy and sleeps late into the night, or when he roams through the skies by day, forgetting the jungle and its people.”
Taug looked stupidly at the heavens and then at Tarzan. A meteor fell, blazing a flaming way through the sky.
Taug stared blankly at the sky and then at Tarzan. A meteor shot down, streaking a fiery path through the sky.
“Look!” cried Tarzan. “Goro has thrown a burning branch at Numa.”
“Look!” shouted Tarzan. “Goro just threw a flaming branch at Numa.”
Taug grumbled. “Numa is down below,” he said. “Numa does not hunt above the trees.” But he looked curiously and a little fearfully at the bright stars above him, as though he saw them for the first time, and doubtless it was the first time that Taug ever had seen the stars, though they had been in the sky above him every night of his life. To Taug they were as the gorgeous jungle blooms—he could not eat them and so he ignored them.
Taug complained, “Numa is down below,” he said. “Numa doesn’t hunt above the trees.” But he looked up at the bright stars above him with curiosity and a bit of fear, as if he was seeing them for the first time, and it probably was the first time Taug had ever seen the stars, even though they had been in the sky every night of his life. To Taug, they were like the beautiful jungle flowers—he couldn’t eat them, so he ignored them.
Taug fidgeted and was nervous. For a long time he lay sleepless, watching the stars—the flaming eyes of the beasts of prey surrounding Goro, the moon—Goro, by whose light the apes danced to the beating of their earthen drums. If Goro should be eaten by Numa there could be no more Dum-Dums. Taug was overwhelmed by the thought. He glanced at Tarzan half fearfully. Why was his friend so different from the others of the tribe? No one else whom Taug ever had known had had such queer thoughts as Tarzan. The ape scratched his head and wondered, dimly, if Tarzan was a safe companion, and then he recalled slowly, and by a laborious mental process, that Tarzan had served him better than any other of the apes, even the strong and wise bulls of the tribe.
Taug fidgeted and felt anxious. He lay awake for a long time, watching the stars—the glowing eyes of the predatory beasts surrounding Goro, the moon—Goro, under whose light the apes danced to the rhythm of their earthen drums. If Numa were to eat Goro, there would be no more Dum-Dums. Taug was overwhelmed by that thought. He glanced at Tarzan with a bit of fear. Why was his friend so different from the others in the tribe? No one else Taug had ever known had such strange thoughts as Tarzan. The ape scratched his head and wondered, vaguely, if Tarzan was a safe friend, and then he slowly recalled, through a challenging thought process, that Tarzan had been more helpful to him than any of the other apes, even the strong and wise bulls of the tribe.
Tarzan it was who had freed him from the blacks at the very time that Taug had thought Tarzan wanted Teeka. It was Tarzan who had saved Taug’s little balu from death. It was Tarzan who had conceived and carried out the plan to pursue Teeka’s abductor and rescue the stolen one. Tarzan had fought and bled in Taug’s service so many times that Taug, although only a brutal ape, had had impressed upon his mind a fierce loyalty which nothing now could swerve—his friendship for Tarzan had become a habit, a tradition almost, which would endure while Taug endured. He never showed any outward demonstration of affection—he growled at Tarzan as he growled at the other bulls who came too close while he was feeding—but he would have died for Tarzan. He knew it and Tarzan knew it; but of such things apes do not speak—their vocabulary, for the finer instincts, consisting more of actions than words. But now Taug was worried, and he fell asleep again still thinking of the strange words of his fellow.
Tarzan was the one who had rescued him from the blacks at the moment when Taug believed Tarzan wanted Teeka. It was Tarzan who had saved Taug’s little balu from dying. It was Tarzan who had planned and executed the pursuit of Teeka’s kidnapper to rescue her. Tarzan had fought and bled for Taug countless times, so much so that Taug, despite being just a brutal ape, had developed a fierce loyalty that nothing could change—his friendship for Tarzan had become a routine, almost a tradition, that would last as long as Taug lived. He never expressed his affection outwardly—he growled at Tarzan the same way he growled at the other bulls who got too close while he was eating—but he would have died for Tarzan. Both of them knew it; but apes don't talk about such things—their vocabulary for deeper feelings relies more on actions than words. But now Taug was anxious, and he fell asleep again still thinking about the strange words of his companion.
The following day he thought of them again, and without any intention of disloyalty he mentioned to Gunto what Tarzan had suggested about the eyes surrounding Goro, and the possibility that sooner or later Numa would charge the moon and devour him. To the apes all large things in nature are male, and so Goro, being the largest creature in the heavens by night, was, to them, a bull.
The next day, he thought about them again, and without meaning to be disloyal, he told Gunto what Tarzan had suggested about the eyes around Goro and the chance that sooner or later Numa would attack the moon and eat him. To the apes, everything big in nature is male, so Goro, being the largest creature in the night sky, was seen as a bull by them.
Gunto bit a sliver from a horny finger and recalled the fact that Tarzan had once said that the trees talked to one another, and Gozan recounted having seen the ape-man dancing alone in the moonlight with Sheeta, the panther. They did not know that Tarzan had roped the savage beast and tied him to a tree before he came to earth and leaped about before the rearing cat, to tantalize him.
Gunto bit a piece from a rough finger and remembered that Tarzan had once said that the trees talked to each other. Gozan mentioned that he had seen the ape-man dancing alone in the moonlight with Sheeta, the panther. They didn't realize that Tarzan had captured the wild beast and tied it to a tree before he came down and jumped around in front of the agitated cat, just to tease it.
Others told of seeing Tarzan ride upon the back of Tantor, the elephant; of his bringing the black boy, Tibo, to the tribe, and of mysterious things with which he communed in the strange lair by the sea. They had never understood his books, and after he had shown them to one or two of the tribe and discovered that even the pictures carried no impression to their brains, he had desisted.
Others talked about seeing Tarzan ride on the back of Tantor, the elephant; of him bringing the black boy, Tibo, to the tribe, and of the mysterious things he connected with in the strange lair by the sea. They had never understood his books, and after he had shown them to a few members of the tribe and found that even the pictures made no impression on their minds, he had stopped.
“Tarzan is not an ape,” said Gunto. “He will bring Numa to eat us, as he is bringing him to eat Goro. We should kill him.”
“Tarzan isn't an ape,” Gunto said. “He'll bring Numa to eat us, just like he’s bringing him to eat Goro. We need to kill him.”
Immediately Taug bristled. Kill Tarzan! “First you will kill Taug,” he said, and lumbered away to search for food.
Immediately Taug tensed up. Kill Tarzan! “First, you will kill Taug,” he said, and walked away to look for food.
But others joined the plotters. They thought of many things which Tarzan had done—things which apes did not do and could not understand. Again Gunto voiced the opinion that the Tarmangani, the white ape, should be slain, and the others, filled with terror about the stories they had heard, and thinking Tarzan was planning to slay Goro, greeted the proposal with growls of accord.
But others joined the conspirators. They recalled many things Tarzan had done—things that apes didn't do and couldn't comprehend. Once more, Gunto expressed the view that the Tarmangani, the white ape, should be killed, and the others, gripped by fear from the stories they had heard and believing Tarzan was planning to kill Goro, responded to the suggestion with growls of agreement.
Among them was Teeka, listening with all her ears; but her voice was not raised in furtherance of the plan. Instead she bristled, showing her fangs, and afterward she went away in search of Tarzan; but she could not find him, as he was roaming far afield in search of meat. She found Taug, though, and told him what the others were planning, and the great bull stamped upon the ground and roared. His blood-shot eyes blazed with wrath, his upper lip curled up to expose his fighting fangs, and the hair upon his spine stood erect, and then a rodent scurried across the open and Taug sprang to seize it. In an instant he seemed to have forgotten his rage against the enemies of his friend; but such is the mind of an ape.
Among them was Teeka, listening intently; but she didn't speak up to support the plan. Instead, she showed her teeth and then went off to look for Tarzan, but she couldn't find him since he was out searching for food. She did find Taug, though, and informed him about what the others were plotting. The big bull stomped his feet and roared. His bloodshot eyes blazed with anger, his upper lip curled back to reveal his sharp teeth, and the fur on his back stood up. Then a small rodent raced across the ground, and Taug lunged to catch it. In an instant, it seemed he had forgotten his anger towards those threatening his friend; but that's how an ape's mind works.
Several miles away Tarzan of the Apes lolled upon the broad head of Tantor, the elephant. He scratched beneath the great ears with the point of a sharp stick, and he talked to the huge pachyderm of everything which filled his black-thatched head. Little, or nothing, of what he said did Tantor understand; but Tantor is a good listener. Swaying from side to side he stood there enjoying the companionship of his friend, the friend he loved, and absorbing the delicious sensations of the scratching.
Several miles away, Tarzan of the Apes lounged on the broad back of Tantor, the elephant. He scratched under the big ears with the tip of a sharp stick and talked to the massive creature about everything in his mind. Little, if anything, of what he said registered with Tantor, but Tantor was a good listener. Swaying from side to side, he stood there enjoying the company of his friend, the friend he loved, and soaking up the delightful feelings from the scratching.
Numa, the lion, caught the scent of man, and warily stalked it until he came within sight of his prey upon the head of the mighty tusker; then he turned, growling and muttering, away in search of more propitious hunting grounds.
Numa, the lion, picked up the scent of a human and cautiously followed it until he saw his target on the head of the huge tusker; then he turned, growling and grumbling, and went off in search of better hunting grounds.
The elephant caught the scent of the lion, borne to him by an eddying breeze, and lifting his trunk trumpeted loudly. Tarzan stretched back luxuriously, lying supine at full length along the rough hide. Flies swarmed about his face; but with a leafy branch torn from a tree he lazily brushed them away.
The elephant picked up the smell of the lion, carried to him by a swirling breeze, and raised his trunk to trumpet loudly. Tarzan relaxed comfortably, lying flat along the coarse hide. Flies buzzed around his face, but he lazily swatted them away with a leafy branch he ripped from a tree.
“Tantor,” he said, “it is good to be alive. It is good to lie in the cool shadows. It is good to look upon the green trees and the bright colors of the flowers—upon everything which Bulamutumumo has put here for us. He is very good to us, Tantor; He has given you tender leaves and bark, and rich grasses to eat; to me He has given Bara and Horta and Pisah, the fruits and the nuts and the roots. He provides for each the food that each likes best. All that He asks is that we be strong enough or cunning enough to go forth and take it. Yes, Tantor, it is good to live. I should hate to die.”
“Tantor,” he said, “it’s great to be alive. It’s nice to relax in the cool shadows. It’s wonderful to see the green trees and the bright colors of the flowers—everything that Bulamutumumo has placed here for us. He is very generous to us, Tantor; He has given you tender leaves and bark, along with rich grasses to eat; to me, He has provided Bara, Horta, and Pisah, the fruits, nuts, and roots. He takes care of us by giving each what we enjoy the most. All He asks is that we are strong enough or clever enough to go out and get it. Yes, Tantor, it’s good to live. I would hate to die.”
Tantor made a little sound in his throat and curled his trunk upward that he might caress the ape-man’s cheek with the finger at its tip.
Tantor made a small sound in his throat and lifted his trunk so he could gently touch the ape-man’s cheek with the finger at its tip.
“Tantor,” said Tarzan presently, “turn and feed in the direction of the tribe of Kerchak, the great ape, that Tarzan may ride home upon your head without walking.”
“Tantor,” said Tarzan after a moment, “turn and head toward the tribe of Kerchak, the great ape, so I can ride back home on your head instead of walking.”
The tusker turned and moved slowly off along a broad, tree-arched trail, pausing occasionally to pluck a tender branch, or strip the edible bark from an adjacent tree. Tarzan sprawled face downward upon the beast’s head and back, his legs hanging on either side, his head supported by his open palms, his elbows resting on the broad cranium. And thus they made their leisurely way toward the gathering place of the tribe.
The elephant turned and moved slowly down a wide, tree-covered path, stopping now and then to grab a soft branch or peel the edible bark from a nearby tree. Tarzan lay face down on the elephant's head and back, his legs dangling on either side, his head resting on his open hands, with his elbows on the elephant's wide skull. And so, they made their relaxed way toward the tribe’s meeting spot.
Just before they arrived at the clearing from the north there reached it from the south another figure—that of a well-knit black warrior, who stepped cautiously through the jungle, every sense upon the alert against the many dangers which might lurk anywhere along the way. Yet he passed beneath the southernmost sentry that was posted in a great tree commanding the trail from the south. The ape permitted the Gomangani to pass unmolested, for he saw that he was alone; but the moment that the warrior had entered the clearing a loud “Kreeg-ah!” rang out from behind him, immediately followed by a chorus of replies from different directions, as the great bulls crashed through the trees in answer to the summons of their fellow.
Just before they reached the clearing from the north, another figure approached from the south—a well-built Black warrior, who moved cautiously through the jungle, fully aware of the various dangers that could be lurking along the way. He passed underneath the southernmost sentry, who was posted in a large tree overlooking the path from the south. The ape let the Gomangani pass without interference, as he noticed he was alone; however, the moment the warrior entered the clearing, a loud “Kreeg-ah!” echoed behind him, quickly followed by a chorus of responses from different directions, as the massive bulls charged through the trees in response to their companion's call.
The black man halted at the first cry and looked about him. He could see nothing, but he knew the voice of the hairy tree men whom he and his kind feared, not alone because of the strength and ferocity of the savage beings, but as well through a superstitious terror engendered by the manlike appearance of the apes.
The black man stopped at the first shout and looked around. He couldn't see anything, but he recognized the voice of the hairy tree men that he and his people feared, not just because of the strength and aggression of the savage beings, but also due to a superstitious fear created by the apes' human-like appearance.
But Bulabantu was no coward. He heard the apes all about him; he knew that escape was probably impossible, so he stood his ground, his spear ready in his hand and a war cry trembling on his lips. He would sell his life dearly, would Bulabantu, under-chief of the village of Mbonga, the chief.
But Bulabantu was no coward. He heard the apes all around him; he knew that escape was probably impossible, so he stood his ground, his spear ready in his hand and a battle cry trembling on his lips. He would fight fiercely for his life, Bulabantu, the under-chief of the village of Mbonga, the chief.
Tarzan and Tantor were but a short distance away when the first cry of the sentry rang out through the quiet jungle. Like a flash the ape-man leaped from the elephant’s back to a near-by tree and was swinging rapidly in the direction of the clearing before the echoes of the first “Kreeg-ah” had died away. When he arrived he saw a dozen bulls circling a single Gomangani. With a blood-curdling scream Tarzan sprang to the attack. He hated the blacks even more than did the apes, and here was an opportunity for a kill in the open. What had the Gomangani done? Had he slain one of the tribe?
Tarzan and Tantor were just a short distance away when the first cry of the guard echoed through the quiet jungle. In an instant, the ape-man jumped off the elephant's back to a nearby tree and quickly swung toward the clearing before the echoes of the first “Kreeg-ah” faded. When he arrived, he saw a dozen bulls surrounding a single Gomangani. With a terrifying scream, Tarzan leaped into action. He hated the blacks even more than the apes did, and this was his chance for a kill in the open. What had the Gomangani done? Had he killed one of their tribe?
Tarzan asked the nearest ape. No, the Gomangani had harmed none. Gozan, being on watch, had seen him coming through the forest and had warned the tribe—that was all. The ape-man pushed through the circle of bulls, none of which as yet had worked himself into sufficient frenzy for a charge, and came where he had a full and close view of the black. He recognized the man instantly. Only the night before he had seen him facing the eyes in the dark, while his fellows groveled in the dirt at his feet, too terrified even to defend themselves. Here was a brave man, and Tarzan had deep admiration for bravery. Even his hatred of the blacks was not so strong a passion as his love of courage. He would have joyed in battling with a black warrior at almost any time; but this one he did not wish to kill—he felt, vaguely, that the man had earned his life by his brave defense of it on the preceding night, nor did he fancy the odds that were pitted against the lone warrior.
Tarzan asked the closest ape. No, the Gomangani hadn’t harmed anyone. Gozan, who was on watch, had seen him coming through the forest and had warned the tribe—that was all. The ape-man pushed through the circle of bulls, none of which had gotten worked up enough to charge yet, and got a full and close view of the black. He recognized the man instantly. Just the night before, he had seen him standing firm in the dark while his companions were groveling in the dirt at his feet, too scared to defend themselves. Here was a brave man, and Tarzan had a deep admiration for bravery. Even his hatred of the blacks wasn’t as strong as his love for courage. He would have enjoyed battling with a black warrior at almost any time, but this one he didn't want to kill—he felt, vaguely, that the man had earned his life by his brave defense from the night before, and he didn’t like the odds stacked against the lone warrior.
He turned to the apes. “Go back to your feeding,” he said, “and let this Gomangani go his way in peace. He has not harmed us, and last night I saw him fighting Numa and Sabor with fire, alone in the jungle. He is brave. Why should we kill one who is brave and who has not attacked us? Let him go.”
He turned to the apes. “Go back to eating,” he said, “and let this Gomangani go his way in peace. He hasn’t harmed us, and last night I saw him fighting Numa and Sabor with fire, all alone in the jungle. He’s brave. Why should we kill someone who is brave and hasn’t attacked us? Let him go.”
The apes growled. They were displeased. “Kill the Gomangani!” cried one.
The apes growled. They were unhappy. “Kill the Gomangani!” shouted one.
“Yes,” roared another, “kill the Gomangani and the Tarmangani as well.”
“Yes,” yelled another, “kill the Gomangani and the Tarmangani too.”
“Kill the white ape!” screamed Gozan, “he is no ape at all; but a Gomangani with his skin off.”
“Kill the white ape!” screamed Gozan, “he's not an ape at all; he's a Gomangani with his skin stripped off.”
“Kill Tarzan!” bellowed Gunto. “Kill! Kill! Kill!”
“Kill Tarzan!” shouted Gunto. “Kill! Kill! Kill!”
The bulls were now indeed working themselves into the frenzy of slaughter; but against Tarzan rather than the black man. A shaggy form charged through them, hurling those it came in contact with to one side as a strong man might scatter children. It was Taug—great, savage Taug.
The bulls were now really getting worked up into a frenzy to kill; but they were targeting Tarzan instead of the black man. A shaggy figure barreled through them, tossing anyone in its path aside like a strong man might scatter kids. It was Taug—big, fierce Taug.
“Who says ‘kill Tarzan’?” he demanded. “Who kills Tarzan must kill Taug, too. Who can kill Taug? Taug will tear your insides from you and feed them to Dango.”
“Who says ‘kill Tarzan’?” he asked. “Anyone who kills Tarzan has to kill Taug too. Who can kill Taug? Taug will rip you apart and feed your insides to Dango.”
“We can kill you all,” replied Gunto. “There are many of us and few of you,” and he was right. Tarzan knew that he was right. Taug knew it; but neither would admit such a possibility. It is not the way of bull apes.
“We can kill all of you,” Gunto replied. “There are a lot of us and only a few of you,” and he was right. Tarzan knew he was right. Taug knew it too; but neither would acknowledge that possibility. That’s not how bull apes operate.
“I am Tarzan,” cried the ape-man. “I am Tarzan. Mighty hunter; mighty fighter. In all the jungle none so great as Tarzan.”
“I am Tarzan,” shouted the ape-man. “I am Tarzan. Great hunter; great fighter. In all the jungle, no one is as great as Tarzan.”
Then, one by one, the opposing bulls recounted their virtues and their prowess. And all the time the combatants came closer and closer to one another. Thus do the bulls work themselves to the proper pitch before engaging in battle.
Then, one by one, the rival bulls shared their strengths and their skills. And all the while, the fighters moved closer and closer to each other. This is how the bulls get themselves ready before going into battle.
Gunto came, stiff-legged, close to Tarzan and sniffed at him, with bared fangs. Tarzan rumbled forth a low, menacing growl. They might repeat these tactics a dozen times; but sooner or later one bull would close with another and then the whole hideous pack would be tearing and rending at their prey.
Gunto approached Tarzan with stiff legs, sniffing at him while showing his teeth. Tarzan let out a low, threatening growl. They could try this tactic a dozen times, but eventually one bull would charge at another, and then the entire gruesome pack would be tearing into their prey.
Bulabantu, the black man, had stood wide-eyed in wonder from the moment he had seen Tarzan approaching through the apes. He had heard much of this devil-god who ran with the hairy tree people; but never before had he seen him in full daylight. He knew him well enough from the description of those who had seen him and from the glimpses he had had of the marauder upon several occasions when the ape-man had entered the village of Mbonga, the chief, by night, in the perpetration of one of his numerous ghastly jokes.
Bulabantu, the Black man, stood wide-eyed in amazement the moment he saw Tarzan coming through the apes. He had heard a lot about this devil-god who ran with the hairy tree people, but he had never seen him in daylight before. He recognized him from descriptions by those who had seen him and from the glimpses he had caught of the marauder on several occasions when the ape-man had entered the village of Mbonga, the chief, at night to pull off one of his many ghastly pranks.
Bulabantu could not, of course, understand anything which passed between Tarzan and the apes; but he saw that the ape-man and one of the larger bulls were in argument with the others. He saw that these two were standing with their back toward him and between him and the balance of the tribe, and he guessed, though it seemed improbable, that they might be defending him. He knew that Tarzan had once spared the life of Mbonga, the chief, and that he had succored Tibo, and Tibo’s mother, Momaya. So it was not impossible that he would help Bulabantu; but how he could accomplish it Bulabantu could not guess; nor as a matter of fact could Tarzan, for the odds against him were too great.
Bulabantu couldn't understand anything that was happening between Tarzan and the apes, but he noticed that the ape-man and one of the larger bulls were arguing with the others. He saw that these two had their backs to him, standing between him and the rest of the tribe, and he guessed—though it seemed unlikely—that they might be defending him. He knew that Tarzan had once spared Mbonga, the chief, and had helped Tibo and Tibo’s mother, Momaya. So, it wasn't impossible that he would help Bulabantu, but Bulabantu couldn't figure out how he could do it; and, as a matter of fact, neither could Tarzan, since the odds against him were just too great.
Gunto and the others were slowly forcing Tarzan and Taug back toward Bulabantu. The ape-man thought of his words with Tantor just a short time before: “Yes, Tantor, it is good to live. I should hate to die.” And now he knew that he was about to die, for the temper of the great bulls was mounting rapidly against him. Always had many of them hated him, and all were suspicious of him. They knew he was different. Tarzan knew it too; but he was glad that he was—he was a MAN; that he had learned from his picture-books, and he was very proud of the distinction. Presently, though, he would be a dead man.
Gunto and the others were slowly pushing Tarzan and Taug back toward Bulabantu. The ape-man remembered what he had told Tantor just a little while ago: “Yes, Tantor, it’s good to be alive. I would hate to die.” And now he realized that he was about to die, as the anger of the great bulls was quickly rising against him. Many of them had always hated him, and all were wary of him. They knew he was different. Tarzan knew it too; but he was glad he was—he was a MAN; he had learned from his picture books, and he was very proud of that difference. Soon, though, he would be a dead man.
Gunto was preparing to charge. Tarzan knew the signs. He knew that the balance of the bulls would charge with Gunto. Then it would soon be over. Something moved among the verdure at the opposite side of the clearing. Tarzan saw it just as Gunto, with the terrifying cry of a challenging ape, sprang forward. Tarzan voiced a peculiar call and then crouched to meet the assault. Taug crouched, too, and Bulabantu, assured now that these two were fighting upon his side, couched his spear and sprang between them to receive the first charge of the enemy.
Gunto was getting ready to charge. Tarzan recognized the signs. He knew the other bulls would rush in with Gunto. Then it would be over quickly. Something moved among the greenery on the other side of the clearing. Tarzan spotted it just as Gunto let out a terrifying roar, similar to a challenging ape, and jumped forward. Tarzan let out a strange call and crouched down to face the attack. Taug also crouched, and Bulabantu, now confident that these two were on his side, readied his spear and jumped between them to take on the enemy’s first charge.
Simultaneously a huge bulk broke into the clearing from the jungle behind the charging bulls. The trumpeting of a mad tusker rose shrill above the cries of the anthropoids, as Tantor, the elephant, dashed swiftly across the clearing to the aid of his friend.
Simultaneously, a massive figure emerged from the jungle behind the charging bulls. The trumpeting of a frenzied tusker rang out sharply above the sounds of the apes, as Tantor, the elephant, raced across the clearing to help his friend.
Gunto never closed upon the ape-man, nor did a fang enter flesh upon either side. The terrific reverberation of Tantor’s challenge sent the bulls scurrying to the trees, jabbering and scolding. Taug raced off with them. Only Tarzan and Bulabantu remained. The latter stood his ground because he saw that the devil-god did not run, and because the black had the courage to face a certain and horrible death beside one who had quite evidently dared death for him.
Gunto never closed in on the ape-man, nor did a fang pierce flesh on either side. The loud echo of Tantor’s challenge sent the bulls rushing to the trees, chattering and scolding. Taug ran off with them. Only Tarzan and Bulabantu stayed behind. Bulabantu stood his ground because he saw that the devil-god didn't run, and because he had the bravery to face certain and terrible death beside someone who had clearly faced death for him.
But it was a surprised Gomangani who saw the mighty elephant come to a sudden halt in front of the ape-man and caress him with his long, sinuous trunk.
But it was a surprised Gomangani who watched the huge elephant come to a sudden stop in front of the ape-man and gently touch him with his long, flexible trunk.
Tarzan turned toward the black man. “Go!” he said in the language of the apes, and pointed in the direction of the village of Mbonga. Bulabantu understood the gesture, if not the word, nor did he lose time in obeying. Tarzan stood watching him until he had disappeared. He knew that the apes would not follow. Then he said to the elephant: “Pick me up!” and the tusker swung him lightly to his head.
Tarzan turned to the black man. “Go!” he said in the language of the apes, pointing toward the village of Mbonga. Bulabantu understood the gesture, if not the word, and quickly obeyed. Tarzan watched him until he disappeared. He knew the apes wouldn’t follow. Then he said to the elephant, “Pick me up!” and the tusker easily lifted him onto his head.
“Tarzan goes to his lair by the big water,” shouted the ape-man to the apes in the trees. “All of you are more foolish than Manu, except Taug and Teeka. Taug and Teeka may come to see Tarzan; but the others must keep away. Tarzan is done with the tribe of Kerchak.”
“Tarzan is heading to his hideout by the big water,” shouted the ape-man to the apes in the trees. “All of you are more foolish than Manu, except Taug and Teeka. Taug and Teeka are welcome to visit Tarzan; but the rest of you need to stay away. Tarzan is finished with the tribe of Kerchak.”
He prodded Tantor with a calloused toe and the big beast swung off across the clearing, the apes watching them until they were swallowed up by the jungle.
He nudged Tantor with a rough toe, and the massive creature moved off across the clearing, the apes watching them until they disappeared into the jungle.
Before the night fell Taug killed Gunto, picking a quarrel with him over his attack upon Tarzan.
Before night fell, Taug killed Gunto after starting a fight with him over his attack on Tarzan.
For a moon the tribe saw nothing of Tarzan of the Apes. Many of them probably never gave him a thought; but there were those who missed him more than Tarzan imagined. Taug and Teeka often wished that he was back, and Taug determined a dozen times to go and visit Tarzan in his seaside lair; but first one thing and then another interfered.
For a month, the tribe saw nothing of Tarzan of the Apes. Many of them probably didn’t think about him at all; but there were those who missed him more than Tarzan realized. Taug and Teeka often wished he would return, and Taug resolved a dozen times to visit Tarzan in his seaside home; but one thing after another kept getting in the way.
One night when Taug lay sleepless looking up at the starry heavens he recalled the strange things that Tarzan once had suggested to him—that the bright spots were the eyes of the meat-eaters waiting in the dark of the jungle sky to leap upon Goro, the moon, and devour him. The more he thought about this matter the more perturbed he became.
One night when Taug lay awake staring at the starry sky, he remembered the strange things Tarzan had once said—that the bright spots were the eyes of carnivores lurking in the dark jungle sky, ready to pounce on Goro, the moon, and consume him. The more he pondered this idea, the more unsettled he felt.
And then a strange thing happened. Even as Taug looked at Goro, he saw a portion of one edge disappear, precisely as though something was gnawing upon it. Larger and larger became the hole in the side of Goro. With a scream, Taug leaped to his feet. His frenzied “Kreeg-ahs!” brought the terrified tribe screaming and chattering toward him.
And then something weird happened. As Taug looked at Goro, he noticed part of one edge disappearing, as if something was chewing on it. The hole in Goro kept getting bigger. With a scream, Taug jumped to his feet. His frantic “Kreeg-ahs!” brought the terrified tribe running and shouting toward him.
“Look!” cried Taug, pointing at the moon. “Look! It is as Tarzan said. Numa has sprung through the fires and is devouring Goro. You called Tarzan names and drove him from the tribe; now see how wise he was. Let one of you who hated Tarzan go to Goro’s aid. See the eyes in the dark jungle all about Goro. He is in danger and none can help him—none except Tarzan. Soon Goro will be devoured by Numa and we shall have no more light after Kudu seeks his lair. How shall we dance the Dum-Dum without the light of Goro?”
“Look!” shouted Taug, pointing at the moon. “Look! It’s just like Tarzan said. Numa has leaped through the flames and is attacking Goro. You insulted Tarzan and drove him out of the tribe; now see how wise he was. Let someone here who hated Tarzan go help Goro. Look at all the eyes in the dark jungle surrounding Goro. He’s in danger, and no one can help him—no one except Tarzan. Soon Goro will be devoured by Numa, and we won’t have any more light after Kudu goes to his den. How are we supposed to dance the Dum-Dum without Goro’s light?”
The apes trembled and whimpered. Any manifestation of the powers of nature always filled them with terror, for they could not understand.
The apes shook and whined. Any display of nature's power always scared them because they couldn't comprehend it.
“Go and bring Tarzan,” cried one, and then they all took up the cry of “Tarzan!” “Bring Tarzan!” “He will save Goro.” But who was to travel the dark jungle by night to fetch him?
“Go and get Tarzan,” shouted one, and then they all echoed, “Tarzan!” “Get Tarzan!” “He will save Goro.” But who would brave the dark jungle at night to bring him?
“I will go,” volunteered Taug, and an instant later he was off through the Stygian gloom toward the little land-locked harbor by the sea.
“I'll go,” offered Taug, and a moment later he was off through the dark gloom toward the small, sheltered harbor by the sea.
And as the tribe waited they watched the slow devouring of the moon. Already Numa had eaten out a great semicircular piece. At that rate Goro would be entirely gone before Kudu came again. The apes trembled at the thought of perpetual darkness by night. They could not sleep. Restlessly they moved here and there among the branches of trees, watching Numa of the skies at his deadly feast, and listening for the coming of Taug with Tarzan.
And as the tribe waited, they watched the slow eating away of the moon. Numa had already taken a large semicircular chunk out of it. At that rate, Goro would be completely gone before Kudu came back. The apes shuddered at the thought of endless darkness at night. They couldn’t sleep. Restlessly, they moved around among the branches of the trees, watching Numa in the sky at his deadly feast and listening for Taug and Tarzan’s arrival.
Goro was nearly gone when the apes heard the sounds of the approach through the trees of the two they awaited, and presently Tarzan, followed by Taug, swung into a near-by tree.
Goro was almost out of sight when the apes heard the sounds of the two they were waiting for approaching through the trees, and soon Tarzan, followed by Taug, swung into a nearby tree.
The ape-man wasted no time in idle words. In his hand was his long bow and at his back hung a quiver full of arrows, poisoned arrows that he had stolen from the village of the blacks; just as he had stolen the bow. Up into a great tree he clambered, higher and higher until he stood swaying upon a small limb which bent low beneath his weight. Here he had a clear and unobstructed view of the heavens. He saw Goro and the inroads which the hungry Numa had made into his shining surface.
The ape-man didn’t waste any time talking. He held his longbow in one hand, and a quiver full of poisoned arrows—which he had stolen from the black village—hung at his back, just like the bow. He climbed up a tall tree, going higher and higher until he stood on a small branch that bent down under his weight. From there, he had a clear view of the sky. He saw Goro and the marks the hungry Numa had made on its bright surface.
Raising his face to the moon, Tarzan shrilled forth his hideous challenge. Faintly and from afar came the roar of an answering lion. The apes shivered. Numa of the skies had answered Tarzan.
Raising his face to the moon, Tarzan let out a terrifying challenge. Faintly and from a distance came the roar of a responding lion. The apes trembled. Numa of the skies had replied to Tarzan.
Then the ape-man fitted an arrow to his bow, and drawing the shaft far back, aimed its point at the heart of Numa where he lay in the heavens devouring Goro. There was a loud twang as the released bolt shot into the dark heavens. Again and again did Tarzan of the Apes launch his arrows at Numa, and all the while the apes of the tribe of Kerchak huddled together in terror.
Then the ape-man nocked an arrow to his bow and pulled the shaft back, aiming its tip at Numa as he lay in the sky devouring Goro. There was a loud twang as the released arrow shot into the dark sky. Again and again, Tarzan of the Apes fired his arrows at Numa, while the apes of the Kerchak tribe huddled together in fear.
At last came a cry from Taug. “Look! Look!” he screamed. “Numa is killed. Tarzan has killed Numa. See! Goro is emerging from the belly of Numa,” and, sure enough, the moon was gradually emerging from whatever had devoured her, whether it was Numa, the lion, or the shadow of the earth; but were you to try to convince an ape of the tribe of Kerchak that it was aught but Numa who so nearly devoured Goro that night, or that another than Tarzan preserved the brilliant god of their savage and mysterious rites from a frightful death, you would have difficulty—and a fight on your hands.
At last, Taug shouted, “Look! Look!” He yelled, “Numa is dead. Tarzan killed Numa. Look! Goro is coming out of Numa’s belly,” and sure enough, the moon was slowly appearing from whatever had swallowed it, whether it was Numa, the lion, or the shadow of the earth; but if you tried to convince an ape from the tribe of Kerchak that it was anything other than Numa who almost devoured Goro that night, or that someone other than Tarzan saved their brilliant god from a terrible death in their wild and mysterious rituals, you would have a tough time—and likely end up in a fight.
And so Tarzan of the Apes came back to the tribe of Kerchak, and in his coming he took a long stride toward the kingship, which he ultimately won, for now the apes looked up to him as a superior being.
And so, Tarzan of the Apes returned to the tribe of Kerchak, and in his return, he took a big step toward becoming king, which he eventually achieved, as the apes now regarded him as a superior being.
In all the tribe there was but one who was at all skeptical about the plausibility of Tarzan’s remarkable rescue of Goro, and that one, strange as it may seem, was Tarzan of the Apes.
In the entire tribe, there was only one person who questioned the likelihood of Tarzan’s incredible rescue of Goro, and that person, oddly enough, was Tarzan of the Apes.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!